5 - Kirpal Sangat
Transcription
5 - Kirpal Sangat
© Bhadra Sena First Published: 6th February, 1976 3,000 Copies Published by A.R. Manocha, Secretary, Ruhani Sat sang, India. Printed at Kirpal Printing Press, 29/1, Shakti Nagar, Delhi-110007. Beloved Master: You were often pleased to tell us that a Godman cannot be known by us mortals except to the extent He chooses to reveal Himself. The fragmentary glimpses of Tour Love, Your Grace, Your Compassion, Your Omnipotence that are gathered here, are but part of Your gift to Your little ones. Pray accept from our hands this Wreath of Blossoms gathered from Your own Garden—for what can we offer that is not already Yours? Preface It w a s on 21st August, 1974, that Sant Kirpal Singh Ji entered Mahasamadhi, bringing to an end a life that has already become a legend in our times. About a year later, a general invitation went out to all brothers and sisters to send in contributions for a memorial volume in His honor. The response has been so overwhelming that my chief problem as editor has been that of accommodating them within the covers of a single volume. I do hope that the contributors will bear with me if at times I have been compelled to edit and to c o n d e n s e . In trying to have this volume ready for the Beloved Master's 83rd birth anniversary, one has had to work against time. In a few instances, where contributions arrived inordinately late, it has not been possible to include them in the order which would have seemed ideal. The inspiration for this memorial volume came to us from Beloved Darshan Singh Ji. Such a venture, of necessity, is the fruit of collective labor. Besides my general indedtedness to those who have responded to the invitation to send in material, there are some particular acknowledgements I would like to make. I am deeply grateful to sister Kate and brother Malcolm Tillis for editorial assistance and for seeing the book through the press. My son, Vinod, has helped translate into English contributions received in Hindi, Urdu and Punjabi, while daughter Gloria Smith has been meticulous and indefatigable in preparing the manuscript for the printer. I would also like to thank those who allowed their unique photographs of the Beloved Master to be reproduced for the first time. Last, not least, the zeal of the proprietors and staff of the Kirpal Printing Press has made the production of this book in such record time a practical possibility. 15th January 1976 Sawan Kutir K-91 Kalkaji New Delhi Bhadra S e n a Contents Preface Illustrations Dan Rendsland: Never Any Separation Bibi Lajwanti: T h e Perfect Disciple Iqbal Kaur: The Master's Early Days in Lahore Gyani Bhagwan Singh: Forty-six Years of Grace from the Master Malik Radha Krishna Glimpses of a Perfect Being Khanna: Mata Sheila Dhir: How the Master Revealed Himself Olga Donenberg: The Master's Blessings O.P. Malhotra: Master's First Visit to Germany Brigitte Boehm: My Alpha and Omega Manohar Singh T h e Unbounded Grace of the Godman Duggal: Brij Mohan Sharma: At the Lotus Feet of the Beloved Dona G. Kelley: As I Saw the Beloved Master Bruno Zaffina: Stories of Master's Protection and Blessings Betty Shifflett: My Lord Waits W.S. Mongia: Master's Three Visits to Pakistan T.S. Khanna: T h e Beloved Master's Gift Sharon Shively: T h e Sweet Home of the Father Mary M. Garlich: Blessings Given by the Beloved Ram Sevak Sharma: How Lord Shiva Directed Me to the Master Harbhajan Kaur: With the Master in Rishikesh vii xiii 1 3 7 14 24 31 37 40 45 51 57 67 69 73 74 79 82 88 90 92 The Ocean of Grace Divine X Rameshwar Dass: Mata Savitri Devi Singha: Vimla Bhagat: Allan Hudson: G. L. Kohli: Fay March: Ram Prakash Bahl: Sunnie Cowen: Chandra Batra: Hiro K: Carmen Uribe: Raj Kumar Jain: S. P. Chopra: Michael Grayson: Baba Ji (Mehku Lal): Sushila Devi Sharma: S. Ramalingam Naidoo: Dharam Vir Sharma: S. R. Bhalla: Shirley Tassencourt: Sushila Mehta: Hildegard Loth: B. S. Teji: Naseeb Kaur: Kuldip Kaur Mehta: Jiwan Singh: Ric Finnie: B. N. Mehta: Rudolf Cascone: Michael Ravens: Richard Handel: Sean Sieglen: Ben Ringel: David Helion: S. K. Kapur: Katie Mc Cluney: Captain Singh: Elana Montiero: Tracy Fogg: Y. S. Rajput: Jay and Ricki Linksman: The Supreme Being 97 The Earnings Carried Forward After Death 100 My Year With the Master The Master's Power His W a y s A r e Miraculous The Naming of Jonathan Perfection in All Its A s p e c t s The Grace of the Master Hazur's True S u c c e s s o r T h e Power of a Sat Guru He Knew Everything The Great Experience Fifteen Months at Manav Kendra Sweet Stories About the Master The Story of Master's Gardener How Master Saved my Son T h e Master's Drawing Power 104 109 111 113 115 118 122 125 129 131 135 140 145 150 155 The Story of the Kirpal Printing P r e s s The Master's Saving Grace The Power of Our Simplicity The Merciful Lord Day of Departure and Prayer Mysterious A r e His W a y s He Came to Save the Sinners His Word W a s G o d ' s Word In His Service How we Met the Master The Abundance of Love Coming to His Feet Memories of Meetings with the Master In Wonder and A w e of His Perfect P r e s e n c e The Forming of Manav Kendra of Maine God Takes Care of His Children It Is the Master Who Finds the Disciple Parshad from the Master Extracts from a Diary kept in 1973 A New Life, A New Name An Echo from Sawan Ashram What You S e e Is You Photographing the Beloved Master In Honor of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj 156 160 163 166 167 168 172 174 178 181 185 189 194 198 202 205 206 210 213 221 230 232 235 249 Contents Andrew Vidich: G. van den Heever: R. Krige: Malcolm Tillis: Ajit Singh Mehta: Mufti Atiquer Rehman Usmani: Robert Smith: J.M. Sethi: Ann Grubich: Joseph E. Newman: Dhani Ram Sharma: In the Garden of Non-existence He Revealed Himself in So Many W a y s My Experiences with the Great Master Master's S e n s e of Humor Providential Help Sant Ji Notes on a Pilgrimage to the Master The Embodiment of the Lord Sweet Remembrance of my Master The Lord of Life Blessed Are T h o s e Who Die at the Feet of the Sat Guru Eddie Boon: Precious Moments Vidyawanti Sethi: The Lion of Mercy Harcharan Singh: It Is He Who Draws Us Pir Zamin Nizami: A Tribute to Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj Kate Tillis: The Master's Last Months M.M. Chopra: The Light of the World Hayat Singh: A Servant in His Household A. R. Manocha: In Sweet Memory Gurdial Singh: How I was Taken up in His Fold Bibi Hardevi: A Favorite Poem of the Master Gloria Smith: His Selfless Love Bhadra Sena: The S a g a of Love Rajinder Singh Bedi: Mere Sahib (My Lord) Virginia Vidich: The Last Darshan Leora Herold: Let His Words Be Part of Ourselves Trudy Ravens: God Came to Me Sandra English: Three Flowers for Kirpal Jamna Das Akhtar: The Greatest Miracle Robert Gildener: The Beloved Master Never Left Us James Forte: In Remembrance of Our Master B. R. Misra: Overflowing Grace Prem Chand Gupta: T h e Compassionate One Darshan Singh: The Mission of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj Susanne Horatschek: Flowers of A s h e s at Rishikesh Important Dates in the Life of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj Publications by Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj xi 241 242 244 246 253 255 256 269 273 275 277 282 283 284 289 290 302 303 307 310 313 314 317 325 330 334 337 338 340 342 344 346 347 348 362 363 367 Illustrations 29th May, 1955. Sant Kirpal Singh Ji at a farewell family gathering in the home of Sardar Sant Singh, His nephew, two days before the Master left for His 1st World Tour. Darshan Singh: Earliest available photograph; when about (collection) thirty-five years old. Darshan Singh: Studio portrait; when about forty-five years (collection) old, taken in Peshawar. Y . S . Rajput: Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj, Sant (collection) Kirpal Singh's Guru. Manohar Singh Duggal: Hazur giving Satsang in Satsang Hall, (collection) Rawalpindi, early 1940's; Sant Kirpal Singh standing left of dais. Gurmeet Singh Randhir: Historic group photograph of Hazur at B e a s , about 1940, back row left to right: (collection) S. Harbans Singh (Hazur's youngest son); S. Bachant Singh (Hazur's eldest son); S. Jodh Singh (Sant Kirpal Singh's elder brother); Hira Nand; Malik Radha Krishna Khanna, (advocate); S. Bhagat Singh, (advocate); S a n t Kirpal Singh; Kulwant Manohar Singh Duggal: (collection) iv v xii xiii 6 7 xiv the Ocean of Grace Divine Dhani Ram Sharma: (collection) Dhani Ram Sharma: (collection) Dhani Ram Sharma: (collection) O.P. Malhotra: (collection) Raj Monga: Darshan Singh: Harbhajan Kaur: Malcolm Tillis: Vinod Sena: (collection) Bhadra Sena; (collection): Rai (Judge); S. Niranjan Singh. Front row left to right: Shri Prithviraj; Rai Sahib Harnarain (secretary to Hazur); Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji; Sardar Bahadur Jagat Singh; Pandit Lal Chand. Upper Photo: Surveying site of Sawan Ashram 1951 (Gyani Bhagwan Singh to 30 left of Master). Lower photo: Attending to His papers at 30 Sawan Ashram, 1951. At the beginning of His Ministry, Delhi, 31 1949. Bonn, Germany, 1955, during 1st World 56 Tour. Ramayana Presentation Ceremony, Gandhi 57 Grounds, Delhi, 6th October 1962. On the rock on which He meditated in the 96 River G a n g e s , Rishikesh, 1948. Making chapatis, Rishikesh, 1948. 97 Giving Initiation, 3rd November, 1969, 110Sawan Ashram. In this and the following 11 photograph, the Master is giving a s e c o n d sitting to those who did not receive an experience of Light at the first sitting. Upper photo: Receiving Order of St. John 134 of Jerusalem, Knights of Malta, 2nd S e p tember, 1962 (with Bhadra Sena). Lower photo: The Master with the late Prime Minister Pandit Nehru, Mrs. Indira Gandhi and Baron Von Blomberg, Delhi, September, 1962. Upper photo; Serving food to sevadars, 135 Manav Kendra construction site, 1971. Lower photo: Inspecting the work, 1971. (S.P. Chopra to left of Master). Sawan Ashram, August, 1973. 162 Sawan Ashram, 1962. 163 Passport photograph taken for 3rd World 184 Tour, 1972. Dharam Vir Sharma: (collection) Dharam Vir Sharma: (collection) Jay and Ricky Linksman; Raj Monga: Y . S . Rajput: (Studio A s i a 72, Delhi); Victor Ternes: Europe, during 3rd World Tour, 1972. Y.S. Rajput: Initiating children, Sawan A s h r a m . (collection) Gurmeet Singh Randhir: Master cutting His seventy-seventh birth- 185 220 221 Illustrations day cake so as to distribute it as parshad: Sawan Ashram, 6th February, 1970. Left to right: Harbhajan Kaur, Bibi Lajwanti, Bibi Hardevi, Sant Kirpal Singh, Darshan Singh. Manohar Singh Duggal: Rajpur, 1970. Master is saying, "How do I look in your focusing g l a s s ? " C h i c a g o , October, 1972, during 3rd World Donald & Betty Wiechec: Tour. XV (collection) 252 253 Amritsar, 1962. The Master is seen writing down details of the inner experiences as testified by about a hundred people He had just initiated. The photographer was one of those initiated. Sawan Ashram, during Unity of Man Conference, 1974 (with the Master is Mr. T. S. Khanna). St. Petersburg, Florida, December 1972, during 3rd World Tour. Darshan talk preceding open-air banquet in Sunny C o w e n ' s garden. 282 Robert Leverant: Y . S . Rajput: Sawan Ashram, February, 1974. During Unity of Man Conference, 1974. On dais with the Master are some of the religious leaders. 303 312 Y . S . Rajput: Near Sawan Ashram, 29th July, 1974. The last initiation. Delhi, 22nd August, 1974. Rajpur, 1967. 313 Raj Monga: David Edmonston: St. Petersburg Times: Raj Monga: Manohar Singh Duggal: 283 302 336 337 Never Any Separation Dan Rendsland what You have given cannot be taken by distance by time or by death in this remembrance i am closer to You The Perfect Disciple Bibi Lajwanti It is life's greatest blessing to be at the feet of a Sant Satguru. I was privileged to serve Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj for about forty years. I first came to Him when I was very young, and I was blessed to serve Him to the last. I not only looked after the housekeeping for the Great Master and attended personally to getting and cooking His food and serving it to Him, but also to His clothes, their tailoring, washing, ironing, and mending, and to other household needs of the Great Master. I got to know Sant Kirpal Singh Ji, who we then addressed as Bhapa Ji (respected brother), fairly early—that is about the time He came to the feet of Hazur. He was a disciple of very exceptional devotion to our Satguru. Even if He got just a day's leave, He would travel from Lahore to Beas. Once at the Dera, He would be so lost, so taken up with His Master, that He would lose all sense of whether His clothes were clean or not, neat or torn, or whether His hair was tidy. He would often put His shoes at one place and later be looking for them at another. I once remarked, "Bhapa Ji, if women get lost like this, it is pardonable; but You—You should not be in this condition! What is wrong 4 The Ocean of Grace Divine with You?" He looked to me, and said, "Bibi Ji, I do not know; when I reach the railway station here, it is as though I have lost half my senses, and when I arrive at the Dera I lose the remaining half. When I look into His eyes, there is magic: I am simply lost." Once in Beas, He would stay on as long as was possible. He would be working often up to midnight and return to Lahore by the 1:00 a.m. train. He would reach His destination around 3:00 a.m., and then after getting home He would be off to the office next morning. If when leaving, Hazur would offer to have Him dropped at the station in His car, Bhapa Ji would find some excuse. He would say, "I am not going just yet. Maybe I will be going somewhat later." He would sometimes say to me when I protested, "Why add to the wear and tear of Hazur's car?" Such was His reverence for His Satguru that when departing from the Dera He would almost walk backwards so as not to turn His back upon the Master's home. It was only after He was almost out of sight that He would turn around and walk straight towards the railway station. In Hazur's presence, Sant Kirpal Singh Ji was a man of very few words. Whatever Hazur said, it was always "Yes Sir," for Him there no "ifs" and "buts." If He took a fancy to anything, His first thought was to get it for His Master. Hazur was fond of books, and when Sant Kirpal Singh Ji came across any book which He liked and thought it might please Hazur, He would get a copy and have it very beautifully bound and present it to Him. On one occasion He was very keen to have a silk coat for Hazur. Hazur would never accept gifts, but seeing the earnestness of Bhapa Ji's wish I could not refuse to help Him. The silk piece which He brought was sent to the tailor for making the coat, and when it was ready, Hazur asked about it and wanted to know how much it had cost. I did not know and when He crossexamined me I told Him by whom it had been brought. "So the two of you have been conspiring against me," Hazur responded. When Kirpal Singh Ji came, He asked about the price of the silklength. Somewhat at a loss He replied that He did not quite remember, and Hazur took out a hundred rupee bank note and handed it to Him. Sometimes when Sant Kirpal Singh Ji came to see Hazur, I The Perfect Disciple 5 would laugh and tell Him, "Bhapa Ji, if I let You go up, You would be there for such a length of time. Sorry, today we won't let you go in!" He would quietly turn away and I would have to call Him back and say, "I was only joking. Please go right up. You are always welcome." He had so much humility, and He never endeavored to assert Himself as many others did. Hazur used to rest in His room upstairs and would retire there for the night. Once on a beautiful moonlit night Bhapa Ji was with Him till well past midnight. I was there, too. When we came down, He suddenly wanted to go up again. "Bibi Ji, it was so wonderful! Did you see? His face was so radiant, more radiant than the moon itself. He was so beautiful tonight. I would like to have His darshan again. Just this once—only for a minute." I remonstrated, "We have just been with Him. And if He has stretched Himself to sleep, He would be upset. We should not disturb Him." "Just this once, only a minute. Just a glimpse." Seeing Him insist, I quietly went up to ask Hazur if He could let Bhapa Ji come up again. On hearing me out He said, "Oh, Kirpal is a sieve, just a sieve—and so are you!" I thought He was reprimanding us, and asked, "Hazur are we so bad? Do you mean that we are unable to contain Your grace and whatever love You pour simply drains through?" "No, no, that is not what I mean," Hazur laughed. "When a disciple is truly devoted, He is like a sieve. There is no limit to the love and grace He can receive. Whatever you give, He still thirsts and yearns for more. You cannot fill Him up just as you cannot fill up a sieve." And so I went down and brought up Bhapa Ji. Once having cleaned and washed some wheat, I had laid it out to dry. Seeing it, Bhapa Ji asked me if it was for my own use. Hazur ate very little and I explained that I would be hand-grinding flour for His chapatis for the month. I was particular about attending to such things myself, but Bhapa Ji asked me to let Him grind the flour, saying, "Bibi Ji why can't you allow me to have the blessings by permitting me to do seva such as this?" There were no limits which Sant Kirpal Singh Ji set to His love and service of Hazur. Every month He would bring His earnings and place them at the feet of His Satguru. Hazur 6 The Ocean of Grace Divine would keep back whatever He pleased for seva at the Dera and give the rest for running Bhapa Ji's household. Bhapa Ji never questioned; He never mentioned if there was any special expense He had in mind back home. Whatever His Satguru gave Him from the wages He had earned, He was glad to accept for His family needs. Nothing could deter Him from fulfilling His Satguru's commands and nothing could prevent Him from coming to Beas to see Him. Once when His son was seriously ill and the doctors had almost given up hope, He took the train and came to Beas. "How is the child?" Hazur asked Him, and He replied, "You know what is best." "We can't let Him go . . ." said Hazur, and turning to me asked me to fetch some water and a bag of patasas (sugar-puffs). He dipped two of His fingers into the water and held them there for a considerable length of time. Then giving a bottle of this water and the bag of patasas to Bhapa Ji, He said, "Throw away all the medicines and in their place, from time to time, give the child a sugar-puff and some of this water." There are so many memories that come back that I could go on with such anecdotes without end. But the important thing to realize is the kind of surrender that the Satguru asks of us. He wants us to renounce everything and surrender it unto Him. If we can surrender ourselves to Him, He remakes us in His own image. Baba Jaimal Singh surrendered Himself to Swami Ji and became an image of His Satguru. Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj similarly surrendered Himself to Baba Ji and in due course became one with Him. In His turn, Maharaj Kirpal Singh Ji showed the same quality of devotion and of surrender and became indistinguishable from Hazur in the course of time. When we come to a Satguru, we must surrender everything we have to Him, body, mind and soul. If we do this, there is no reason why we cannot reach His Radiant Form within us, and having reached that Form, He takes us further and does not stop until He has made us in His own image. The Master's Early Days in Lahore Iqbal Kaur I was initiated by Hazur Baba Sawan Singh in 1928. My husband Sardar Hukam Singh was one of His very early initiates. We were living in Lahore and shortly after I came on the Path I had a chance meeting with Maharaj Kirpal Singh Ji. My husband knew Him already and one day as we were walking home, Maharaj Ji was returning on His bicycle from the office. He stopped to greet my husband and we were introduced to each other. Our home was not far from the place where Satsang was held in those days. Maharaj Ji would drop in every now and then to look us up. He would inquire how we were and sit and chat with us. As our home was on the way to Satsang, He would stop over. We would all go together, and when Satsang was over, He would walk us back home. If a satsangi did not turn up for the discourse, Maharaj Ji was so concerned that He would visit him to find out if anything was wrong. Those who were sick, He would help with medicine; those who were indigent He would help with food and clothing. He was always willing to serve the satsangis, especially the ones who were ill. He did not want people to know of the sacrifices He made and much of this help was 8 The Ocean of Grace Divine rendered privately and only a very few of us knew the extent of His generosity and selflessness. Once in Lahore there was an outbreak of plague. When it was at its peak, corpses would reach the cremation ground by the hundreds. Kirpal Singh Ji was not only fearless in attending on those who were ill; He would also visit the cremation ground and help out there. I should mention here that disciples in Lahore had set up two or three separate Satsangs in different parts of the city. Hazur Baba Sawan Singh was not happy with this and around 1929 He had asked Kirpal Singh Ji to hold a central Satsang and bring everyone together. We had no Satsang Ghar (Satsang Hall) in Lahore at the time and a large bungalow with a lawn was acquired for holding Satsang. Subsequently in 1935 land was acquired for the Lahore Satsang Ghar on Ravi Road and the following year Hazur came from Beas to lay the foundation stone. Maharaj Kirpal Singh Ji was entrusted with the responsibility of supervising the construction and He would visit the site every morning before going to His office and every evening on returning from it. He attended to every detail and would encourage the local satsangis to give their free time for seva. Ravi Road was a deserted place then and there were scarcely any buildings in the neighborhood. Hazur would personally visit the site every week and see how things were going. He would quietly arrive and after spending a couple of hours watching the work and giving instructions, He would leave back for Beas. It is difficult to describe His love for Maharaj Kirpal Singh. He was exceptionally fond of Him and would entrust Him with responsibilities which He would not give to others. Kirpal Singh Ji in turn was exemplary in His devotion. Whatever was entrusted to Him He would take up. Any work He had to do for Hazur was sure to be finished in time: no excuses and no delays. In 1932 when work began on the Satsang Ghar at Beas, Maharaj Ji demonstrated to us all the true spirit of seva. Once during this period, while Maharaj Ji sat pounding the bricks into rori, someone asked Him, "Why do You have to bother about seva like this? You do so much intellectual seva for Hazur—do You really need to do all this physical seva as well?" The Master's Early Days in Lahore 9 Maharaj Ji continued with His work and said, "This body must give seva too. It is only right that having it I should make it do seva as well for my Satguru." If anyone expressed respect and admiration for what He was, He was sure to say with great humility, "I am nothing, a mere nobody; it is all Hazur's grace. Whatever I have and whatever you see in me is from Him. He is everything." Once in 1940 when Hazur finished His Satsang discourse at Lahore, some satsangis lovingly complained that He gave them Satsang only very seldom. He visited Amritsar much more often and Lahore was neglected. On hearing this Hazur replied, "Have I not given you Kirpal Singh Ji for the Satsang here? There is no difference between Him and myself." The Sangat was extremely happy to hear this and turning to Kirpal Singh Ji greeted Him with great love. Hazur delivered His monthly Satsang at Beas on the last Sunday of each month and the Monday that followed was initiation day. Maharaj Kirpal Singh would invariably come to Beas for the monthly Satsang and if Monday happened to be a holiday He would stay on at the Dera. On such occasions Hazur would have Him by His side during initiation. Having given the initiation instructions, He would tell Maharaj Ji to clear up any difficulties any new initiate might have. If someone had no experience, or had not grasped some point fully, Kirpal Singh Ji would explain things to him and make him sit again. On one occasion He was at the Dera for a whole week. It was June and it was extremely hot, and He was on leave and spending His holiday as usual at Beas. A group of seekers from Bulandshehr happened to be at the Dera at the time, and one of them prayed to Hazur for their initiation. Hazur had had a very sore throat and for a time had even lost His voice. He asked them to wait for a day and next morning at 10:00 He summoned Kirpal Singh Ji saying, "This man has come here with ten seekers. Please give them Naam." The ten persons in question were initiated by Maharaj Ji as commanded by Hazur the same day. The instructions were imparted at the bungalow of Maharaj Ji's brother and commenced at 11:00 a.m. I was at the Dera myself and speak as an eye 10 The Ocean of Grace Divine witness. I cannot give the exact year, but it was around 1936 or so. I come now to the time when the country was about to get independence. When Maharaj Ji was on the point of retiring, Hazur asked Him during His visit at Beas, "Where do You now propose to live?" He answered quietly, "Wherever You wish me to be, it is only there that I want to live." There was a good deal of unrest at the time and alluding to that, Hazur went on: "If You leave Lahore, it may distress the Sangat. It is best, therefore, that You go back." And so Maharaj Ji returned to Lahore. This was around the beginning of the summer of 1947 and the country was partitioned a couple of months or so thereafter. Even though He had retired He stayed on there, continued to look after the Satsang, and from time to time would travel to Beas to see Hazur. When social disturbances had reached their peak and the family was preparing to leave for Beas, Maharaj Ji's wife began locking the doors. Maharaj Ji ordered her, "Don't lock the doors and add to the problems of those who have to break in. Let all the doors stay open." And so He proceeded to Beas leaving His home unlocked never to return again. It was the end of July and He was at the Dera for Hazur's birthday Bhandara. In August it was virtually a massacre and all nonMuslims had to flee from Lahore and from the whole of West Pakistan. Hazur was ill at the time but He was still at Beas when Maharaj Ji arrived from Lahore. A few days later He proceeded to Amritsar for treatment leaving Kirpal Singh Ji behind to look after the Dera. Beas was on the main route from West Pakistan to India and refugees began reaching from both directions—those fleeing into India and those leaving for Pakistan. Maharaj Ji worked ceaselessly to look after them. One never knew how many or at what time they would arrive. Many would not have had a proper meal for days. He would see them fed and clothed and those who wished to stay at the Dera would be accommodated there. Hazur was very concerned about this and it was on account of the refugees that He left Kirpal Singh Ji behind. Once every week, however, Maharaj Ji would proceed in the morning to Amritsar to see Hazur and return to the Dera in the evening. The Masters Early Days in Lahore As the weeks slipped by the Sangat at Beas got more and more restive. Hazur's illness, especially during those disturbed times, began to worry everyone. When He got somewhat better and Baba Jaimal Singh's Bhandara on 29th December, drew near, Maharaj Ji shared the Sangat's concern and asked Hazur if He would return to the Dera. He answered that He would return a little before the Bhandara and on 24th December He arrived at Beas along with Kirpal Singh Ji. The Sangat was extremely happy and relieved to see the Great Master. They thanked the Lord for His safe return and blessed Maharaj Ji for having been the instrument for bringing Him back. "You have done us a great service," they said. There are many incidents that come to my mind. I will only pick up one here to illustrate the extent of His powers even before Hazur left the body and assumed the form of Maharaj Kirpal Singh Ji. We were still living in Lahore and it was the year 1946. One of my brothers was suddenly struck by pneumonia, took a turn for the worse and died. He was married and only twenty-eight. It was a great shock for all of us. Around 4:00 in the afternoon we took the body to the cremation ground which was quite a distance away. After leaving His office, Maharaj Ji stopped by on His way home, and on learning what had happened, followed us and caught up with us half way. He was on His bicycle and, getting off, joined the funeral procession. After the cremation was over, He accompanied us back and seeing our desperate condition, made us all sit down and gave a sort of Satsang. He told us that whatever had happend was under the Will of Providence. However hard it might seem to us, it was our duty to accept it. Especially if we loved the departed, it was imperative that we stay calm so that his soul might be in peace. His words brought comfort and solace at the time when we were all in great anguish. I had a second brother who was almost ten years younger. He was deeply attached to the one who was gone and so great was the shock of the death that he was beside himself with grief. One day he disappeared and did not return home. We tried to find him but there was no trace of him at all. We all wondered what had happened and thinking of his grief we were doubly distressed. 12 the Ocean of Grace Divine God had taken back one brother, and now the other had gone off, only the Lord knew where! That night Kirpal Singh Ji came by. It was rather late for a visit—around 11:00 or even after—but then He would call on satsangis in distress without regard to the hour. When He saw us He queried why we looked so distressed, and I explained what had happened. He reassured me and said, "Don't worry about Omi. Have faith in Hazur. He will be back home safe at 5:00 in the morning." Sure enough next morning my younger brother returned at the stipulated time. He had a strange tale to tell. Lost in his sorrow and full of the sense of the meaninglessness of life, he had wandered a long distance. Seeing a railway station, he had boarded a train and in it met a group of sadhus. They asked him where he was going and when he explained that he did not know, they invited him to join them. They got off three or four stations before Hardwar and he accompanied them. They lived in a jungle and when they got there, he realized that they were thugs in disguise. When it was time to sleep, to make sure that he could not get away, they placed him in the middle and spread themselves around him. Realizing his danger and feeling completely helpless, Omi could not sleep. It was pitch dark and there was no means of getting away. As he lay restless, he prayed to God for deliverance. In answer to his prayer he saw Light and within it the figure of Maharaj Kirpal Singh. Maharaj Ji commanded him to get up and follow. Full of fear, he said, "But how can I ? They are all around me and will catch me." Maharaj Ji assured him that no one could stop him and he got up and followed Him barefoot. They were in a jungle and it was very dark. But Maharaj Ji was radiating Light, and, following that Light, my brother sped along through the jungle. After about two miles, Maharaj Ji informed him that the railway station was a few yards ahead and asked him to catch the first train from there, and left him. He proceeded as commanded and got off three stations ahead to change for Lahore. At this railway station he once again met Maharaj Ji and Maharaj Ji asked him how he had managed to join those sadhus. The boy explained his state of grief and how he had fallen into their company. "They were dangerous thugs—and what if The Masters Early Days in Lahore 13 they had done you to death?" said Maharaj Ji. "Your brother is gone and you are the only son left," He told the boy. "You must think of your family first and not lose yourself in your grief in this fashion. Now catch the train for Lahore and get back to your home as soon as you can." And so the boy caught the train and returned back to us. I repeat, this happened almost two years before Hazur gave up the body. Even at that time Maharaj Ji could appear in His Shabd Form and help out those whom He loved regardless of where they were. He was already one with Hazur, and Hazur Himself had told the Lahore Sangat that between Him and Kirpal Singh there was no difference. Forty-six Years of Grace from the Master Gyani Bhagwan Singh Remembrance of the dear Master and the pangs of separation fill me with sadness. How a poor man, a sinner like myself who was floating in the world of the senses and struggling along, was picked up by Sant Kirpal Singh Ji is a marvellous thing in itself. From 1921 to about 1928 I was living in Amritsar, the place of the Golden Temple, the place of the Gurus. I was not a religious man by temperament, nor perhaps am I one now; but spontaneously and with devotion I used to pray: "Oh God, please take me to Your Feet, but suffer me not to have want of worldly things." In 1927 I married into a family of standing and religious background. They were living in Lahore, and at that time Bhapa [Elder Brother] Kirpal Singh Ji was also in Lahore. My marriage, and later on my appointment to a good job in the Government, took me to Lahore. I was residing with my in-laws, and there I met Kirpal Singh Ji who used to come to see us as often as three or four times a week. The satsangis there used to gather at the home of my in-laws and we used to listen to the beautiful and wise words of Kirpal Singh. He was about thirtyfour and I was in my early twenties at the time. Forty-Six Years of Grace from the Master 15 As I have said, religion to me was nothing but going to the gurdwara, reciting the Gurbani and honouring one's day-to-day responsibilities. Kirpal Singh Ji would just talk. His words were very sweet yet penetrating. He was kind yet firm, and we all listened to Him. This went on for some time; and then at last I said, "Bhapa Ji, if You say that this Naam is so very good—give me some, I'll have it!" "Oh," He said, "yes, you'll have It, but not from me; Baba Sawan Singh will give It to you." I said, "Sir, all right." You see, even in those early days I had developed such devotion, awe and reverence for Him that I can't begin to explain. I was a naughty fellow, yet He had captured my heart. So I started to go to Beas with Him to see Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji. I had the desire to be with Bhapa Ji on all four Sundays of the month. One Sunday He would give Satsang at Amritsar, one Sunday He would give Satsang at another station, and the last Sunday of the month was for going to Beas so that we could hear Hazur's Satsang and have His darshan. Master Sawan Singh had a big following, but I don't know why I couldn't get attracted to anybody else in His Sangat. I was attracted to Bhapa Kirpal Singh Ji as a girl is attracted to her lord. Wherever He slept I would slowly sneak in there, maybe in the room or maybe outside just to be near Him. Around 1931 I was transferred to Quetta. One day I said to Bhapa Ji after a Satsang, "I have heard that the Master whom You take to be Your Guru is always present in the hills, in the mountains, on the high seas and beyond, and that He is Your protector and benefactor. As I am being transferred to a place full of these Pathans who may harm me, I now wish to take Naam." At this time I was a young man of about twenty-eight years old; quite a mischievious person. So I joined the line of those waiting to be given initiation. I do not remember what experiences I had at this initiation. Later on in the ministry of Master Kirpal Singh I saw so many things that I could never see during the ministry of Baba Sawan Singh. I was one of the thousands of ordinary people who could never have an opportunity to go near Him Perhaps I should say that during the period of twenty years that I had been going to Beas, from 1928 to 1948, I may have had the chance of touching the feet of Baba Sawan Singh, 16 The Ocean of Grace Divine my Master, not more than four or five times. And that too was through the grace of Bhapa Kirpal Singh because I would sneak in along with Him, otherwise nobody would allow me to go in and see Him privately. Anyway, when I came back to Lahore we would always come down to Beas with Bhapa Ji. One time I remember very vividly. It was summer time and we were sleeping upstairs on the roof; Bhapa Kirpal Singh, myself and one or two others. Early in the morning, about 5:00 or so, we got up and I said, "Bhapa Ji, let us go and do our ablutions and have a bath." He said, "Oh, I have already taken my bath." And then suddenly. just as if He had not wanted to say this, He said, "Yes, yes. I will accompany you outside to have a bath." The first bath that He was referring to was the inner bath He had taken—He of course had meditated during the night. So during all those years from 1928 to 1948 Bhapa Kirpal Singh had already instilled in me some understanding of what He really was. I sensed that he would be the successor to Baba Sawan Singh right from the beginning, and saw that there was no one in the big Sangat at Beas who could match Him. It was a very easy thing for me to accept Him as the new Master; I was like a dwarf against a towering personality, and this awareness had bred in me a sort of fear lest I should displease Him in any way. The reverence was there, the devotion was there, and the fear also was there. I couldn't say "No" to Him at any time whatever He asked of me. I always tried to be near Him. He allowed me to come to His house; He allowed me to do small things for Him, which I was happy to do to please Him. There are one or two incidents before 1948—before He became the Master—that I would now like to relate. My brother-inlaw, a young boy of twelve or thirteen years, fell ill. Bhapa Kirpal Singh Ji would come to our house almost daily, tend him, look after him. One day in the morning He said to my mother-in-law, "Look here, look here. Now you must leave off all clutching for the child—he has to go." He then told my wife that the child would leave at 8:00 at night, and that He would return at that time. It so happened that at about 7:00 He came back and He remained with the child; then when the clock struck 8:00, He Forty-six Years of Grace from the Master 17 placed His hand on the boy's forehead, and he went smiling. Bhapa Ji then said, "All right. I will come again tomorrow when the boy is to be taken to the cremation ground." And to the cremation ground He did go. There were a large number of people. Somebody said, "Bhapa Ji, would You say a few words on this occasion?" He said, "Look here, this is a lesson before you all. You must know that this thing has to happen to you also. Be prepared for it. And if you have not prepared for it, think of how you are going to prepare for it." This was said in a very polite way, in a very loving way, yet in such a forceful way that everybody could not but weep over it. As far as I remember, this was as early as 1933. You see, He used to love us like anything, and that is why our respect for Him grew every day. He was always a very noble person, a compassionate one, a man who was given to service. All these qualities had developed in the entire family of ours a sort of devotion to Him; we knew we had a person in Him who was always with us, ready to help us, and to take compassion on us. After all, what was I? I was just a sinner floating about and I cannot imagine any quality or any good thing that I had that could have possibly been an asset to Him, let alone for Him to eventually choose me to work so closely with Him. Every day there was one incident or another which revealed that here was a man on earth whom you could really call God. All the attributes which can ever be given to God were in Him: He was compassionate, He was loving, He was kind, He was helpful. He had the heart of a householder; yet the love of the Master was a thousand times more than that of a mother. We say that the mother's love for her children is immense, but I can tell you, really, that His love for His children was more than the love of a thousand mothers for their children. Such was He who trod the earth and is helping us even now with everything that we want to do. One day at the end of the monthly Satsang at Beas— probably it was on the 31st of March 1948 when Hazur was very ill. Bhapa Kirpal Singh Ji announced to the Sangat that certain arrangements had been made at Beas for the administration, etc. and other such vague information. After Satsang was over, He 18 The Ocean of Grace Divine went to His brother's house and I also went with Him. I asked point blank, "Bhapa Ji, what You said in the Satsang was quite vague, and I want to have the correct meaning. I want to know exactly who is the person whom Baba Sawan Singh Ji has nominated as His successor, to whom He has given the Power to initiate." This was my straight question; and His straight reply was in these few words, "That work has already been entrusted to me." So from that moment everything was clear to me. On 2nd April Master Sawan Singh left His mortal coil. After the funeral rites and a brief stay with His son in Delhi, Bhapa Kirpal Singh Ji went up to the Himalayas at Rishikesh. He remained there, as everybody knows, for about six months. He came back to Delhi some time around December of 1948 and started His work. When Bhapa Kirpal Singh Ji was at Lahore, I was in Service there. Now He had come to Delhi, and I was also working at Delhi. My daily practice was to walk every morning to His place from my quarters which were about three miles away, attend for about an hour or so to the work, and then go to my office. In the evening about 4:30 or 5:00 I would leave my office, go straight over to the Master's, remain there for two or three hours, and then return to my home. The Master had started the work; but there was some confusion and people were not sure as to who was true Master. In this respect Baba Sawan Singh had shown many people where He was working by appearing to them in visions, in meditation, or by manifesting Himself during the Satsangs of Bhapa Kirpal Singh Ji. There was a bit of stiff opposition against the new Master doing the work, and the result was that we couldn't find a permanent place where we could hold Satsang. So the hunt was on to find a permanent place suitable for the purpose. It so happened that the place we found, where Sawan Ashram was built, belonged to a member of Parliament. He came in contact with the Master, or the Master arranged things so that he should come in contact with Him, and this place was surveyed and accepted. While viewing this place, the Form of Sawan Singh was seen along with the Master looking over the site. In June 1951 we started construction, and the first Bhandara of Baba Forty-six Years of Grace from the Master 19 Sawan Singh was celebrated at Sawan Ashram on 27th July— only about six weeks later. The construction of Sawan Ashram was a scene to behold. Young ladies, old women, rich and poor, all offered their services and would go on working sweetly; and Master Himself supervised everything. In the lunch break, He would give everybody food and chapatis under the shade of a tree, rest for a while, and then again go on working. The work would go on till nightfall. You can imagine, the first buildings at Sawan Ashram were built in about a month and a half! My house was built next to the Master's bungalow. One thing is very important. Master Kirpal Singh had left everything in Beas, and had to start everything from scratch. There was not much money about; and in 1949 we had a meeting where the people were happy to pledge money for the Satsang work, and as everybody knows the entire work for the Satsang was based on love; loving devotion, loving service and loving offerings. There was need for the work, and the money just came in. During the construction of the Ashram which had been a barren site, there was a big pippal tree which had to be uprooted. During the felling of that tree, a boy by the name of Ramesh got almost buried under a big bough or the trunk of the tree and he was struck almost lifeless. He was unconscious, and was brought to Master's veranda. His mother came up crying and crying and crying. She said, "Master, if my boy dies, I will never, never forgive You." He said, "Don't worry, let us hope for the Master's grace." And you will be amazed that the boy shortly after, slowly regained consciousness; he is well and kicking, married now and is doing the Master's work in Panama where he met the Master on His 1972 tour. From the beginning of the Master's Mission, I had the privilege to be with Him, or rather He allowed this poor fellow to be with Him, and do all the work of accounting and to attend to His local and foreign correspondence. This was such a pleasing job that although I worked about eighteen hours a day I was always feeling buoyant and happy. This work continued in the Ashram up to 1955, until Sardar Dalip Singh came here on retirement and took over part of my work, namely, cash and 20 The Ocean of Grace Divine accounts. My work for the Master continued; some part was given away, other work was increased. I remember having been with Master up to 1:00 at night and when I left Him and came to my house I felt so buoyant and happy that I can't explain it. It was His compassion and love that He could not see anybody suffering. Once I fell ill and was in my house. Master got news of it and came to see me, sat by my side, and said, "Well, Gyani what has happened to you?" I said, "Sir, I don't know, but I can't get up." "Oh no, no, no. You've got nothing to worry about. Let me see what has happened to your back. Let me see." And He just put His hands over my back and talked about this and that. A little later He said, "Well, look here. I've got a lot of work lying over there, and you have to do it." And He went away. And you can imagine that within about two hours I was quite well and healthy with no pain, nothing of the sort; I went there to do the work and stayed there right up to midnight. Such was His compassion and love that we can't begin to understand it ! Every day there was one incident or another which revealed that here was a man on earth whom you could really call God. All the attributes which can ever be given to God were in Him : He was compassionate, He was loving, He was kind, He was helpful. He had a human heart; yet the love of the Master was a thousand times more than that of a mother. We say that the mother's love for her children is immense, but I can tell you really that His love for His children was more than the love of a thousand mothers for their children. Such was He who trod the earth and is helping us even now with everything that we want to do. The Master had very kindly allowed me the opportunity, even during my service, to take leave and accompany Him on most of His Indian tours. In .1956 we went on a tour to the eastern side and were staying at that particular time at Varanasi (Benares), the holy city on the Ganges. It was raining heavily at that time. All of a sudden Master said, "Gyani, what about the Ashram? And what about your house?" I said, "Sir, it's o.k., it's o.k." Later I was to learn that at about 12:00 noon my son had been knocked down by a truck and was lying senseless. Forty-six Years of Grace from the Master 2l The police had come and wanted to register a case but my wife refused to do anything, and said, "He will be all right; by the Master's grace. You can't help us much." Then the doctors came and were doing all they could. The people in the Ashram advised my wife to telegraph the Master to say that there had been an accident and that He should send me back to Delhi. My wife didn't agree. She said, "No, he has gone there and is with the Master. The Master knows all about this. His coming back here will not help the boy any more than the grace of the Master which can be had from there." On the other hand, after one or two hours, Dalip Singh got a telegram from the Master saying, "What about the affairs of the Ashram and of Gyani's house?" This was a thing which told everybody present that the Master was not unaware of what had happened. On that very night, Brij Mohan Sharma was leaving Delhi to join the Master, and he said, "What message should I give the Master?" My wife said, "Don't say anything about this incident, say everything is all right." He arrived, met the Master, but didn't tell Him anything. But later there was some murmuring between the satsangis about what had happened, and as one of the Master's workers overheard them he told the Master. He called for me. "Oh," He said, "Why didn't you tell me? All right, don't worry, he'll be o.k." He knew. And you can imagine that in a few hours the boy began to recover; in a few days he was quite all right. When I came back he was perfectly well again. The kindness of the Master cannot be expressed by any words of mine. When the Master Was arranging His first world tour in 1955, He asked me to accompany Him, which unfortunately I did not. For the 1963 tour He also asked me to accompany Him, which also I am sorry I declined. In 1971 the tour was almost fixed up and the Master was ready to go, but unluckily as you all know He fell ill, went to hospital, and had to be operated upon. The 1971 tour was therefore postponed. The dear ones from abroad were pressing for the Master to come and meet them personally because, you know, it was not possible for every initiate from the West to come all the way to India as it involved a lot of expense and time. The pull and prayers of the dear ones were really very strong, but the Master was not keeping good health. 22 The Ocean of Grace Divine Eventually a program was fixed for 1972. One day while sitting with the Master, He said, "Look here Gyani, my body is revolting, it is not co-operating. If I listen to my body, I can't make this journey; but the pressure of the dear ones from inside and from their letters is so much that I can't resist them. I can't resist them any longer. So we have to go." A program was fixed up. So four of us, the Master, Bhalla and Harcharan Singh and myself formed the party and we left on the 26th August, 1972. Our first stop was in Bonn where we were met by Master's representative, Bianca Fitting. We remained in Germany, Italy and France for some time, and then went to London where Sant Singh and others were waiting for us. Then we flew straight to Washington. "This tour," the Master said, "is for my children. The first tour was for some dignitaries, and to start the Mission in the West. The second was for the benefit of governments, and to consolidate the work. But this tour is going to be for my children. I want to meet them, I want to be with them, I want to listen to their difficulties, I want to listen to them and talk to them, and meet them; my love for them is so much that I cannot resist going." You may have read the account of the tour given in Sat Sandesh. Suffice it for me to say here that although the Master was ill, He would work from 8:00 in the morning till 1:00 at night, and after retiring, His body would ache like anything; He could hardly get an hour's rest. And then in the morning He would start His work again, seeing people, giving His talks and mediation sittings, answering so many questions, always giving, giving, giving. The effect of this tour was tremendous. The Master's children had the opportunity to be very close with Him, speak with Him, live with Him in as near and dear a way as any child coming to see his father. During the tour the Master was not unaware of the desires and the love of the initiates, the dear ones in India, just as the Master, when He was in India, was not unaware of the aspirations of the dear ones in other countries. Every week or ten days He used to be in contact with Delhi by telephone, sometimes for ten or fifteen minutes, listening to their difficulties; the Forty-six Years of Grace from the Master 23 Master was giving His love and His grace to all of them. When we were in California at Lucille Gunn's house, we received a tape recorded in Delhi and sent over there for the Master. That tape was from a dear one and told the pathetic story of how the people over in India were feeling His absence. The Master was touched to the quick; He was ill and we had a big program ahead of us. When we left for Mexico and after Mexico went to Panama, the Master decided to cancel the last part of His tour. The program for Africa and further East was cut short by several weeks, and we arrived back in Delhi at the beginning of January 1973. Such is the story of a Perfect Man, a complete Man I should say, who came on this earth to remind us of and to help us go back to our Home; who gave us a solemn promise that the Master is always waiting for the initiates to come to Him. Unfortunate we are at this hour that we did not listen to Him, and did not do what He wanted us to do, and take that which He wanted to give us. We kept our bowl covered; the Nectar which He wanted to put into it did not find its way into our hearts. We are now repenting because He is not here physically and we can not now do anything. Glimpses of a Perfect Being Malik Radha Krishna Khanna When I first met Sardar Kirpal Singh, His humility was such that it never allowed me to think that He would ever rise to such spiritual heights. He was regarded as a holy man and the man to whom our Great Master Baba Sawan Singh Ji had entrusted the Satsang work at Lahore (which was then the capital of Punjab) and as we had a very spacious Satsang hall there, He used to give discourses on Sundays. After I came to know Him, which was in the late thirties, He was also commissioned by the Master to hold Satsangs at Amritsar where a beautiful new Satsang hall had been built. I also remember that He went about like an ordinary man with no show or pretentions of any kind. It was widely known that He was always by the side of ailing satsangis at Lahore whenever He came to know about their ill health. He would always go and try to comfort them when they were in trouble. That was all that was known about Him. Once or twice when I was coming from Multan, and having changed trains at Lahore so as to proceed to Beas to be with Hazur Baba Sawan Singh, I saw Sardar Kirpal Singh traveling by train, Third Glass. I knew He was a Government Officer and that He was entitled to travel First Glass and that Glimpses of a Perfect Being 25 He must have been given a First Class pass. But He always made it a point to travel Third Class. When He went to Beas, He made it a point to sit in the last row at Satsang, while I, as an unregenerate soul, or whatever you might say, used to think, "Well, I've come from more than two hundred miles to see Hazur, and attend the Satsang, why shouldn't I avail myself of the best place so that I can hear every word?" And I used to sit in the first or second row. Actually, whenever I sat behind the front row, the Master used to beckon me to come and sit in front. Well, once I met Maharaj Kirpal Singh; we had been talking to each other for some time and when we went to the place where the Great Master was holding Satsang, I thought that I might also sit with Him. And there I found that I had a better darshan of the Master in the last row where Kirpal Singh was sitting, and I also heard more of the Satsang! Now I was astonished. I said, "This is where the true devotee can benefit by knowing things." After that we came much closer together. Some time later we were together at Sikandarpur where Maharaj Sawan Singh Ji's son had extensive agricultural land, and his daughter was getting married. But Hazur fell ill and everybody felt a great deal of anxiety. At midnight I found Maharaj Kirpal Singh, who was staying in the room next to mine, going in to see Hazur almost every half hour. As He was feeling so restless and anxious, I asked Him if the Master's condition was indeed serious? He said it looked like that, and He had prescribed some homeopathic medicine which the Master had taken, and He was just waiting for the result. After some time the Master improved, but He didn't altogether get over it. Later, when the Master fell ill at Dera Baba Jaimal Singh at Beas it was a sort of continuation of the same illness which He had developed at Sikandarpur. Maharaj Kirpal Singh took leave from office and was there to attend on Him. Some people who were close to Hazur, not exactly close spiritually but His relatives, old associates, or members of His family, didn't very much like these repeated visits of Maharaj Kirpal Singh. Although He was in the grip of illness just a few days before His physical departure, I could always see a faint smile on 26 The Ocean of Grace Divine Hazur's face whenever Maharaj Kirpal Singh came into the room. Kirpal Singh didn't disturb Him; He was able to comfort Him. At that time Dr. Schmidt from Switzerland, who was the President of the World Federation of Homeopathic Doctors and an initiate of Hazur, was staying in the Dera and was treating Him with homeopathic medicines. Now Maharaj Kirpal Singh used to have consultations with him because He also knew something about homeopathy. However, it was decided that Hazur had to go to the hospital at Amritsar for treatment. Maharaj Kirpal Singh went with Him and so did I. There also, Maharaj Kirpal Singh looked after the Master. It so happened that one of the satsangis, who was a medical student, was anxious that if there was any transfusion of blood to be given to the Master as the doctors there suggested, it should be his blood. When his blood was tested, it did not quite match with the Master's and, medically, it was not the proper blood to be given. But somehow he got round one of the female sevadars and persuaded her into agreeing that his blood be given. Being a medical student, he told her, "Well, there is not much of a difference." So a bottle of his blood was kept ready, and the doctor was told that it was according to prescription. I came to know of this later along with Maharaj Kirpal Singh. So the blood was given and it had a very serious effect on the Master. He almost looked like losing His life, but He recovered the next day. I was very angry over all this; I was thinking that we should complain to the Master that it was due to this sevadar that the wrong blood was given. But Maharaj Kirpal Singh said, "Well, forgive her. What's the use? Now He has recovered. Whatever had to happen, has happened." Such indeed was His greatness and magnanimity. Some years earlier, when Hazur was giving Naam, He told Sardar Kirpal Singh, "Well, you must do this work today. I don't feel inclined; it is a strain on me, I have been doing a lot of work and you must take over today." He declined with folded hands, saying, "In Your presence I am nobody." The Master smiled and initiated the seekers Himself. Later on another occasion Maharaj Kirpal Singh did give initiation in Hazur's presence. Glimpses of a Perfect Being 27 In 1948 when I lost my Master I felt miserable. But then after some time I had the comfort of Maharaj Kirpal Singh which made up to some extent for that great bereavement. We are to pass the remaining span of life which is allotted to us as best we can. Maharaj Kirpal Singh was a source of great Light and comfort to His initiates, His friends, to all persons who came in contact with Him. After He became the Master He spread Hazur's Mission over several continents. Master Sawan Singh never went out of India; and like Vivekananda with Ramakrishna, it is Maharaj Kirpal Singh who has spread Hazur's Mission and made the name of His Master famous in many parts of the world. Throughout His Service He was completely honest, wouldn't accept any gift or even meals from anybody, wouldn't dine out; from the beginning He had a very clean and very high character. I became Maharaj Kirpal Singh's literary advisor about sixteen or seventeen years ago when He wrote The Crown of Life and The Life of Baba Jaimal Singh. He sent the manuscripts to me, and I went through them—somewhat as a literary man as I have my M.A. in English, but more as a lawyer—so that I could check that there was nothing objectionable. My close association began then. I might mention that I took Crown of Life with me when I went to London in 1961 and presented copies to the British Museum, the Library of the Guildhall, the London University Library, and to Cambridge and Oxford Universities, and they were gladly accepted. I even tried to get it published in London. Many other books passed through my hands. I came to Delhi and set up practice there in 1960. Thereafter, when any legal question arose about Sawan Ashram or the Satsang's affairs, Maharaj Kirpal Singh always sought my advice and acted on it. Now in regard to Sawan Ashram there were land acquisition cases—the Government wanted to acquire some portion of it. I also acted as Maharaj Ji's legal advisor. I think He didn't require my legal consultation so much as I required His grace by doing some seva. So He had set up a show of my service for my own benefit, to give me grace, as our Master had done years before in a case at Dalhousie which was 28 The Ocean of Grace Divine conducted by me. Maharaj Kirpal Singh and I became very fond of each other, and whenever He used to come to my house every month—and He did not come on every occasion to consult me about legal matters —we talked of many things: about His satsangis in America, about the satsangis here, about the situation in the country, about what was happening in Manav Kendra, about what He intended to do, and all that. On several occasions He told me, "Now look here, I have satsangis in this country, and they don't take to their meditations seriously, while satsangis in America and other foreign countries, some of them take to it very seriously. They consider it as serious as any other task in life, and they are making much greater progress than the satsangis here." These are His words, and He added, "Some of them have crossed one or two regions." Now, He was very friendly with me, and I happened to remark, "Maharaj Ji, Your regions must be nearer than the regions of Your Master, because in His day it took much longer to cross these regions." He laughed and said, "Well, they are the same regions, but people in the West take to it assiduously, much more seriously, and I am much pleased with their progress." Maharaj Kirpal Singh sometimes used to say in a jocular vein that I had a greater number of occasions to have the physical darshan of Maharaj Sawan Singh Ji than He had, that I had passed more time with Hazur at Dalhousie and Beas than He because He was in Service those days and could only go when He could get leave. I told Him, "Well, externally I may have seen more of Him than You, but You see more of Him internally. When I went away to Multan I couldn't see Him, but You could see Him all the time, all the days wherever You were. So don't say that—You are in a much higher place in the Master's grace than I am." And He laughed at that. I would now like to tell about an incident that made a deep impression on me. One day I met a satsangi who told me his mother had fallen ill, very seriously, and she said that the doctors told her that she would be dying within a few hours. She expressed a wish to see her younger son, and she also added that she would not die in peace unless she met him, as that desire would linger. This lady was an initiate of Maharaj Kirpal Singh, Glimpses of a Perfect Being so the elder son went to see Maharaj Ji who said, "Well, the doctors are right. She has to go this evening, but now that you have come and conveyed her wishes to me, and you have also been serving the Mission for a long time, I think I'll have to intercede. How long will it take for your brother to come and see your mother?" "It will take two days." The Master said, "All right. Tell her that she will not go before she meets her son." And then He added something which struck me then as significant, "All right, I'll send her by the next train to the other world. Let today's train go with other people." Now this is what Master Kirpal Singh said. These things are there forever to remind us of what He was. I would like to end by telling how the Master showered His grace on me. I met with a serious accident about two years ago and it was extremely cold during those days—it was cold all over the country. It was the 4th of January, 1974, and the accident took place in the evening just before sunset. I could not go to the hospital on account of this extreme cold, and no surgeon would come to my house. They all said; "These operations are carried out in the hospital, we don't go to people's homes." My right shoulder had been dislocated, and there were fractures on my right arm and right leg. I passed that night in in extreme pain. The next day my son again went to the surgeons, and they all refused to come. Then they said, "It must be x-rayed before anything can be done." I couldn't move so I could not go for an x-ray. It was extremely cold those days and I am very susceptible to cold. Then with great persuasion an x-ray operator was induced to come here, and he took the x-ray. The same evening Master Kirpal Singh came to see me. At that time my pain was even more excruciating than on the previous day. I could hardly survive, and in order to do fomentation on those parts, bricks were heated, and applied wrapped up in a cloth. Only extreme heat could give me any relief. But it burnt some of my skin and a part of my bedding also. A few minutes after all this happened, Maharaj Kirpal Singh came and said, "How are you?" I said, "I've met with an accident." 'Yes, yes, I know that," He said and told me the exact time and place. I said, "Yes. But I didn't send You information." He laughed, 30 The Ocean of Grace Divine But then I said, "As You know everything, You could have come yesterday or on the first evening." He replied, "You had to undergo this trouble for some time because the karma was very serious and it was in consultation with Hazur that it was delayed, but We took care that you would not expire during that time." Those were His words. Then I said, "What will happen now?" He replied, "You will see." He stood on the left side of my bed leaning, or rather pressing against the wall; there was hardly space for Him. He didn't want to shift my bed; He said, "No, no, no! I will stand here." He stood with eyes closed for half an hour. Then He asked, "How about your pain?" I said, "It has become tolerable." "All right, you will pass the night more comfortably now. Tomorrow some eminent surgeon will come. Everything will be set, don't worry." I owe my survival to Him. After the plaster had been removed my right arm couldn't move. The plexus of nerves near the arm-pit was injured and the blood didn't flow as it ought. The neurologist who examined me—and he is the most eminent one in Delhi—said, "Your arm will not move for the rest of your life, but try to move it with your left hand otherwise it will get stuck to your body and it could be such a painful thing that your arm may have to be amputated." I was feeling rather distressed when Maharaj Kirpal Singh came again to see me. I said, "I can't move my right arm. I can't write, I can't even withdraw any money from the bank as I can't write out a check." He said, "No, no, no. You can't move?" He took hold of my arm and began to move it up and down. And from that moment my arm seemed to be all right. I have full use of it now, and it is a constant source of wonder to me. Not only that, I may add that I owe my survival to His grace. I know Maharaj Ji told me that all that was done was in accordance with Hazur's wishes, but I know deep in my heart that I owe much to His loving care and consideration. How the Master Revealed Himself Mata Sheila Dhir When I met Sant Kirpal Singh Ji in 1950, I asked Him, "Where is Hazur Maharaj Baba Sawan Singh Ji? I want to see Him." He said, "Well, Hazur Maharaj Ji is here; you will find Him." I went away and two years passed by—I was in bitter pangs of separation since Hazur left the physical body, eating little, living in a sad state. One day an old friend of mine arrived who asked me to give a Satsang; there had been a death in the family. I reluctantly went and started Satsang. Then one of our old friends went to the Ashram, and told Maharaj Ji, "We should have a lady to give Satsang from place to place in Delhi." He said, "Who do you think could do it?" She replied, "Sheila." Master said, "Well, that would be all right, but she doesn't come to me." One night, some six months after having given that Satsang, I beheld a beautiful scene; there was a lovely place where Hazur came in a motor car in a beautiful radiant Light; there was no turban on His head, but He had wooden shoes on His feet which He used to wear in the old days. Gently, lovingly, He got down from the car. With Him was Kirpal Singh Ji. I clung to Hazur, cried and said, "Where were You all this long time?"Hazur then 32 The Ocean of Grace Divine took His seat on a stage and a Satsang was held. Kirpal Singh came and caught hold of me by the arm, and took me towards Hazur. Hazur had told me as soon as He alighted from the car, "Never mind, you will see just now." In His Satsang, Hazur took for His text a hymn: "Satguru is ever present, never think that He is far away." Then I saw that both the Saints merged into each other. Satsang was over and Sant Kirpal Singh Ji again held me by the arm, and told me, "Look, no more crying. Now you have got your Guru, you have got Satsang. Stop crying, there will be no more crying." And at the same time Hazur told Sant Kirpal Singh, "You love Sheila Ji as I did and take good care of her." Even after this I was not fully convinced. Two months went by before I went to the Ashram. There I saw Tai Ji sitting in the kitchen while Master was in His room. I peeped in and saw that the room was full of Light, and Master was attending to His mail with His glasses on, sitting in the very same pose as Hazur used to sit. He then welcomed me with the same words as Hazur used when welcoming me. After this, when I saw such brilliant Light in the room, I absolutely forgot my body; I didn't know where I was. Master kept saying to me, "Look, you have no faith. If you still have doubts, keep on doing Simran, and if it stands before the Simran, then only believe." Then I saw that near the beard of Master Kirpal Singh there was the same black mole which Hazur had. Then I thought, "Oh, this is definitely the same Power!" And then Master put His hand under my chin, and said, "Look up, look up, look up!" When I did, Maharaj Ji's eyes became those of Baba Sawan Singh. He told me, "Now, you must carry on the Satsang." I told Him, "Master, I am sorry; I have no strength left for Satsang. I am sorry, I cannot do it." Master took me to Dr. Mul Raj, and told him to give me a very good medicine. I said, "Master, my medicine is Your eyes. Whatever You say—It's all right." Then one day the Master came for Satsang at a friend's named Satya. It happened to be Divali Day. I was there thinking, "How fortunate is this family—the Master gives Satsang to them. If He comes to my home and gives Satsang I'd give anything for it. I'd be so blessed." Then I heard Master announce, How the Master Revealed Himself 33 "Sheila will be giving Satsang here from now on." I thought, "What is this? Master announced this Himself!" All this happened in 1952 in Delhi. Then Master turned to me and said, "Next now. Should I go to your home?" It was my very wish; and I had thought if He came to my place I would be willing to give away everything. Then Master repeated, "Should I go to your home?" He was answering my innermost prayer. When the Master came, I noticed the room was full of radiant Light. He said, "You want me to give Satsang? Come on, give me some text." And He took up the very same hymn which Hazur had used in the Satsang of which I dreamt: "Satguru is ever present, never think that He is far away." Maharaj Ji then said, "Now, is there anything more? Do you want to give parshad? Come on, take out something, if there is parshad to be given." I said, "I'm sorry Master, there is nothing in the house." I wasn't prepared for all this. Then Master laughed, "Oh, so it was only talk, was it? Just talk." He was referring to what I had been saying to myself in my thoughts. Then He asked for water and had it. I ran to a small shop nearby and returned with burfi, and parshad was distributed. Then, having fulfilled my dearest wish, Master asked, "Is that all? Are you happy now? No complaints?" And He went back to the Ashram. All this was in the early days of Maharaj Ji's Mission. From then on I became actively associated with Maharaj Ji's work and went to the Ashram regularly. Maharaj Ji did a great deal of traveling, and occasionally He would ask me to join Him on tour. Once Maharaj Ji told me that He was going to Amritsar and asked me if I could go ahead, take the keys with me and get the place where He was to stay ready for Him and His party. Before leaving I told my husband that as Maharaj Ji would be away for over a week, he would do well to have His darshan next morning. When he went to the Ashram and met Him, Maharaj Ji said something about an oncoming illness in the family. My husband did not comprehend Maharaj Ji's meaning; he came back wondering what calamity lay ahead. Meanwhile I got to Amritsar, got everything ready, and Maharaj Ji arrived. After the program there He had to proceed on tour. I was not scheduled to go with Him but when 34 The Ocean of Grace Divine it was time to depart Tai Ji told me there was room for me in the car. What greater blessing could one pray for! To be with Maharaj Ji is to be in eternity and time slips by so imperceptibly. The days flew past and we were already on our way back to Amritsar and from there back to Delhi. I was in the car, sitting in front with Des Raj and Master Pratap Singh; Kuku, Tai Ji, and Maharaj Ji were sitting behind. Suddenly Maharaj Ji asked me, "Can you tell what hymn will be taken at Satsang at your place today? Why don't you close your eyes and try to see if you can tell?" Tai Ji interrupted at this point, "Maharaj Ji, if You go about getting people to turn within while we are on the road, how will we get them out? Please don't get started on things like this." Maharaj Ji changed the subject, but as we drove on I fell asleep and I found myself at home with a body laid out and people surrounding it in deep mourning. When I woke up, the scene was still vivid, but I decided to stay silent, Maharaj Ji asked if I had seen anything; I did not answer. The car suddenly stalled. We all got out. Des Raj fiddled around and then got back behind the wheel and the engine started up again. We scrambled in, Kuku and Tai Ji in the back and Maharaj Ji getting in last by the left hand door; Des Raj, Master Pratap Singh and myself in front. I was the last to get in, and as I banged my door shut, I did not realize that Maharaj Ji had placed His hand in the way and four of His fingers got jammed inside the bolted door. Imagine our shock and confusion! I was too paralyzed to even think of opening the door. Tai Ji was beside herself at my carelessness, and Kuku was in tears. Des Raj jumped out of his seat, ran around, and opened the door. Maharaj Ji, as His left hand got released, sank back into His seat holding it in His right hand. He went pale, almost ashen white, and it was as though He had given up the body. He lay in that posture for what seemed an eternity to us then, but it could well have been in actuality five minutes or more. He then came back, and was all energy and cheer. Like a lion He bounded up, face glowing: "Why are you all crying?" He asked. "Look, my hand is quite all right, just look, not a scratch, not a drop of blood! Why all this confusion? You see I'm perfectly fine. Stop crying and be done with it. I assure you, just look at How the Master Revelated Himself 35 me, I am absolutely all right!" And indeed there was not a scratch, not a sign of what He had gone through. His fingers should have been crushed by the door, but they were in perfect shape as though nothing had happened. We started off again, but I was absolutely shaken. The dream I had just had, and now seeing what Maharaj Ji had suffered at my hands, I wondered what it was all about, what calamity it was that He was taking upon Himself. It was fairly late in the evening when we got back to the Ashram and Hans Raj, who had gone to our place to conduct Satsang with Maharaj Ji's tape, quietly whispered to Him that my husband was seriously ill. Maharaj Ji called me in and asked me if it wasn't best I return home. He did not tell me a thing, but as I was departing with Hans Raj, who was to drop me at home, Maharaj Ji casually pulled out a small bottle of homeopathic pills and said, "Why not take this? It might come in handy, headaches and things like that, you know." When I reached home, it was an agonizing scene. My husband, who had been wondering all these days about Maharaj Ji's mysterious words about a family illness, had suddenly been taken ill that very day when he had gone to office. He had a very acute pain in the abdomen and, taking a taxi, returned home. On the way he stopped at Sir Ganga Ram Hospital but they had no spare bed for him. He stopped to consult some doctors, but all said he needed to be hospitalized, and they could not help him. Very possibly he needed an operation. There he was in great pain, and with no doctor willing to help. I got one of our neighboring medical practitioners to come out and do his best. He sat by my husband's side all through the night. He was neither passing stools nor urine. We decided to move him to one of the larger hospitals in the morning. As the night wore on, I thought I would go and ring Maharaj Ji to let Him know. Just as I was leaving, I remembered the homeopathic pills and put some of them in my husband's mouth. I dashed off to phone. When I dialed the Ashram number it was Maharaj Ji who answered. I hurriedly told Him what had happened and that we were taking my husband to hospital. "But surely you could delay it a little. I will be there in no time and you must wait till then," 36 The Ocean of Grace Divine He told me. I hurried back, and to my astonishment my husband was feeling better. The pills worked like magic and he passed his stool and urine. He was sitting up when Maharaj Ji arrived, and on entering, He walked straight up to my husband and placing His right hand on his chest, and cheered him with the words, "Now, what is wrong with you? What is all this talk about going to hospital? You seem quite all right. Now look into my eyes, you're perfectly all right. This will soon pass and you will be well again." He instructed Dr. Mul Raj to carry on with homeopathic treatment, and cheering us all up, patted me and told me to be brave like the young one of a lion, and as He left, I thought of the scene I saw while half asleep in the car, Maharaj Ji's hand caught in the door of the car and His ashen face, the homeopathic pills that He had given me on arrival at Delhi and my husband's dire condition when I returned home. Oh how can one sing of the marvelous grace of a Satguru! The Master's Blessings Olga Donenberg This incident happened to me in July 1954 when I was living in Wilmette, Illinois. It was before I was initiated. I used to meditate, and one day I had a vision. I saw a man all in white with beautiful Light all around Him, and He said, "I'm coming for you. I need you." I though it was my time to go—to leave the body. But I was so filled with the peace and Light that He had been radiating, I wasn't worried. That Light was so bright that it was dazzling, and it stayed with me for a long time. Exactly one year later, in July 1955, I received a phone call telling me that there was going to be some Master appearing in Chicago. I thanked the person, and I knew I was going. I didn't know anything about the Master, but I went. I remember it had been extremely hot, but before the meeting there was a refreshing downpour of rain. Now, of course, I know it was the special blessings of Hazur. As I was waiting for the elevator to take me up to the meeting hall, the door opened and out came Master. I looked in surprise, and I thought here was the vision I had last year. And I rushed up to Him and said, "Master, I saw You." And He replied, "Yes, I know." I was dumbfounded, and we went up to 38 The Ocean of Grace Divine the meeting place. What He said after I can't recall because I had become so enamored of Him, I just felt as though I was in the presence of God. It was a beautiful feeling. At the end of the meeting, Master thanked us for coming. That overwhelmed me; He just reached the bottom of my soul, every bit of me vibrated. This meeting had not been advertised and I didn't know anybody who was there, but when I was leaving I heard someone say something about initiation. I thought, what would they be getting initiated into? So I asked when it would take place and I was told it would be held the next day. Then I asked if I would be allowed to attend, and, on being told I could, I went. I did't know what it was, but I guess I knew I had to have it. When I arrived I remember looking around; I didn't know a soul there; there were eighty to a hundred people. I had been given a card and just sat on the floor in the hotel room and waited. Well, that's how I took my initiation, but I can tell you what the Master promised, I received. Then I heard that He was going to give a meditation sitting the following day, and as I was greedy, I asked if I could attend, and they said yes. The next day I sat in a corner, and things became very clear to me: a man with a white beard, wearing a turban came and took me up—such an exhilarating ride I will never forget. This was Baba Sawan Singh, but at the time I did not know. He told me, "Kirpal is my Son, He is the one I have appointed to carry on my work." I thought to myself, 'Yes, but He must know this." But Hazur went on, "I want you to tell Him this." After the meditation was over I saw Mr. Khanna who showed me a photograph of the Great Master Baba Sawan Singh so I could then identify who He was. But then I thought to myself, "Kirpal Singh must know He is the Master, He doesn't need me to tell Him," and I was preparing to go home. Then I heard Baba Sawan Singh's voice telling me, "Oh no, you go up and give Him my message!" I felt ridiculous. My mind kept telling me, "But He must know He is the Master." Anyway although I felt foolish I did go to His room, knocked on the door, and said, "I have a message." He was so gracious, He let me come in and I told Him that His Master had taken me on an The Master's Blessings 39 exhilarating ride and had told me, "He is my Beloved Son," and that Hazur appointed Him to carry on the work. And you know what He did? He thanked me. I almost fainted. Later on I realized why I had been given this experience and the full story. So that is the story of my first physical meeting with Master Kirpal Singh, and the meeting with Sawan Singh. And since then I could not differentiate between them; They had become one, inside and outside. So many wonderful things happened over the years to show Master's guiding hand and grace. Here is just one incident which happened to a woman initiate in Chicago. One day she told me that as she had several children and was expecting another it was very difficult for her to keep going to the laundromat. She only had $25 so she couldn't afford to buy a washing machine and asked me, "Would it be wrong to request Master to help me?" I replied, "Master always said there was nothing too little or nothing too big." So she said, "I'm going to ask." Then she called me and told me that she was going to get a washing machine. She didn't know how, but she knew that Master was going to direct her. Well, He told her to get into the car and directed her to turn here, turn there until she stopped in front of what appeared to be a second-hand store. There she could see a washing machine, and it was priced at $25. She said, "That's my washing machine!" But the assistant said, "I'm sorry. I'm holding that for another woman." She immediately pulled the $25 out of her purse, and said, "Here! You've been holding it for me." The assistant was rather surprised, but perhaps in a order to get rid of her, said: "Okay—it's yours!" That machine worked for a number of years and goes to show that there really isn't anything too big or too small. The Master's First Visit to Germany O. P. Malhotra I have been at the feet of the Master right from my childhood. One of the first memories I have is of my father who would not begin a new month without having the darshan of his Master, Baba Sawan Singh Ji. I came to Delhi with my sister where I was initiated by Baba Sawan Singh Ji at the age of about fourteen. After partition in 1948, Sant Kirpal Singh Ji also Came to Delhi, and my whole family, both maternal and paternal, was always at His feet attending His Satsangs from the very beginning. It was in 1955 on the way back from His first tour of America that Master planned to visit Germany for the first time. At that time I was the private secretary to the Indian Ambassador in Bonn. The Master had written to me saying that He would stay in Bonn for a few days. At that moment the atmosphere in Germany was such that it was difficult to get many people interested in the subject of the Path of the Masters. I must say that although I was very nervous that I would not be able to arrange a good audience, it was with His grace we were able to start the first meeting with the hall completely full. It was held at the University. It gave me great satisfaction that there were univer- The Master's First Visit to Germany 41 sity students, professors, outsiders, businessmen, and all types of people present to hear the Master. They listened with rapt attention. We had arranged for the Master and His party to stay at my home in Bonn so we could look after Him. Of course I told my Ambassador about the Master, and he came and called on Sant Ji. The Ambassador was so impressed, that he along with his colleagues from other embassies wanted to meet the Master and take His guidance and advice. This was such an important event for me, and for everybody, that I cannot explain it in words. After the Master had spoken two or three times in the University some two hundred people asked Him to give initiation. The Master told them that the first requirements for initiation were that they had to be vegetarians, teetotallers, non-smokers, and live a life of self restraint. I was so surprised to see that all of them at once agreed; and from that time onward they pledged to be complete vegetarians and to follow the Path of the Masters with all devotion. And I must say here, that the German people have kept their word. After the first talk in the University Hall, two ladies came to my home and knocked at the door, saying, "We have heard the afternoon talk given by an Indian Saint. Can we meet Him? We have been told that He is staying with you. Would you kindly allow us to meet Him?" I said, "Certainly, you are most welcome." This was Frau Fitting and her companion. Right from that moment onward the Master spent much time talking to Frau Fitting every day, morning and evening. Whenever we had Satsang she was present, and it was because of the Master's great admiration for her devotion that He chose Frau Fitting as His representative in West Germany and Central Europe. At the time of initiation some of the candidates had good experiences of the Divine Light and Sound Principles. They testified to this in the presence of the Master. He also asked them whether they had Hazur's inner darshan. When He showed them the photograph of Baba Sawan Singh Ji, some of them immediately said, "Oh, this is the Saint we have seen." Frau Fitting once explained to me that two years before the Master had come 42 The Ocean of Grace Divine to Germany she had been having very vivid darshan of the Master without having seen Him. As soon as she saw the Master she told Him, "Oh Master, You have been coming to me for the last two years. Today I see You in person." I would also like to mention that one of the German satsangis had come to the Master after listening to the Satsangs, and after receiving initiation he told the Master that he was unable to concentrate in his meditations as he was not able to get rid of the old habits of food, drink, etc. Then the Master told him, "You have given me your word, you have promised, and you have signed on your application that you would lead a vegetarian life, and you must therefore follow those things and there will be no difficulty. You had better sit with me." Master gave him a second sitting. At the end, we were all surprised to find that this particular gentleman, with folded hands came to the feet of the Master saying, "Oh Master, please forgive me. Now I have seen clearly that whatever You have instructed me is correct. In future I will abide by Your instructions." He is now one of the best satsangis that we know in West Germany. I would now like to mention one small interesting incident which happened during the Master's stay which I can never forget. Everybody had gone out to do some shopping. The Master stayed at home in His room attending to His mail. In the other room was my small child, about four months old, who had been left behind sound asleep. It seems that the women were away longer than they intended, and my baby boy began crying. When they returned they found that the Master was writing letters with one hand and with the other He was rocking the cradle so that the child would be quiet and not cry. (This was a great benevolence for the child. I think the child will ever be grateful to the Master for His kindness to him.) With regards to the Master's food, He was always very particular about what He ate. Tai Ji used to cook for Him everywhere He went. My wife asked the Master what His" instructions were about His food. The Master replied, "Of course, it is Tai Ji who usually prepares all the food, but in your house I will leave it to you. You will be in charge of my kitchen. And you will see that I get my proper food." It was a great life-long The Master's First Visit to Germany 43 honor for my wife that she was given this privilege. I cannot help mentioning one small point here which my Ambassador told me after visiting the Master. He said, "Malhotra, you have such a great spiritual Master. What are you doing here? Why don't you join Him? His is the most perfect Mission. I have heard Him, I have talked with Him. I am so much impressed, I think the work of an Ambassador of India is nothing as compared to the Master's Mission. He is bringing souls together, and is preaching the gospel of truth and good living, and people have joined together whether they are Christians, Muslims, Hindus, whatever they are. I am very happy to see that your Master, Sant Kirpal Singh Ji, has such a positive power in Him that people are attracted to Him, and not attracted to the ordinary Ambassador of India. As a matter of fact, in the presence of your Master I found that the real representative, or the real Ambassador of India, was Sant Kirpal Singh Ji and not me." When Master had reached Bonn we were not sure how long He would stay; He had only stayed two days in Berlin and not given an initiation sitting. People began inquiring how long the Master would stay. As the days passed they began pressing the Master, "Please stay another day, please stay another day." In all, He stayed ten days in Bonn; He left because so many of His children in India were pressing that He should return to them. On the day Master departed for India, He was to leave from Dusseldorf; it was about half an hour or forty-five minutes drive from our house to the airport. The time of departure of the flight was nearing and we had duly informed the Master how much time it would take. Everything was ready, but till the last moment satsangis wanted to speak with the Master; everybody wanted one minute with the Master before He would leave for India. Therefore it was getting late. I was getting jittery. The driver said, "Please tell the Master the distance is long. The plane will not wait for Him and He must hurry up." I went to Master and told Him, "Maharaj Ji, please, it is time for us to leave." He said, "Don't worry. We will leave. My first task is to attend to these satsangis. The flight can wait. You don't worry." Then I told Him, "Please, these are international flights, and they want us to be there a little earlier as some formalities 44 The Ocean of Grace Divine have to be attended to. Some of the satsangis can meet You at the airport." He said, "Many of them may not be able to go, but let me talk to anybody who comes." And He was talking to them right up to the last moment with the result that we had only about half an hour at our disposal. He said, "You need not worry about it. We will reach there in time." And to our great surprise, when we reached Dusseldorf Airport we found that the plane was about an hour and a half late. Many of the satsangis in their cars followed the Master's car; we all reached the airport fearing that the Master might miss the plane. Master smiled, and asked me, "What time is the plane starting? Has it already left?" Everybody was laughing and so happy. We all sat down on the lawn chairs, and for one hour the Master was able to talk to all the satsangis at the Airport. After the Master had returned to India, my house became a place where we would sit for meditation on Friday evenings for the entire night, and for the entire day and night on Saturday and Sunday. Early on Monday morning, everyone would go to their homes or to their duties. For two and a half days Satsang was held continuously, with meditations; Master's instructions were read, and this was the best time we could ever have spent in our lives. Every week, two and a half days were spent completely for the Master's work wherein large numbers of satsangis used to join together. When I eventually returned to India, Master used to always tell me that I should remain in contact with my West German friends; whoever used to have any difficulty would write to the Master, and the Master used to ask me to make translations. He used to reply to everyone. You can well imagine what a great impact the Master's visit made on that country; in West Germany so many Satsang centers have sprung up which have spread the great message of the Master. My Alpha and Omega Brigitte Boehm Oh my Master—I miss You so— even although You are closer to me than myself. Oh my Master—I miss You so— Whenever I sit in sweet remembrance of my Beloved Master Kirpal Singh Ji, my eyes cannot but well up and my heart is aching. Within His sweet Holy Naam and at His Holy Feet I found consolation, rest and peace. My Beloved Master Kirpal gave me so much of all those wonderful divine valuables I hardly dared to dream of, and He does it still now in more and more abundance. Who can ever comprehend such Love, such Grace and such Mercy. Meeting my Beloved Master Kirpal was the fulfilment of my life. When I was a child I felt very much attracted by the Teachings and Life of Jesus Christ. My adoring him was growing from year to year. At fourteen years, I was glad to get confirmtion in the Christian Church and during the celebration when the priest was blessing me I could experience for the first time that GOD IS LIGHT. It was so overwhelming for me that I got rather afraid of the greatness of the Lord. There was only one point I was very sad about, that God 46 The Ocean of Grace Divine had given me human birth just in these times and not at the living time of Jesus Christ to question him personally about life and death and the true reality what to do further. Besides searching after truth I had always the inner urge to learn English as much as possible. At twenty-three I left my parents' home and moved to the towns Fuerth-Nuremberg. There I found good friends in helping me in my search and I attended many talks and lessons about religious subjects and studied several spiritual ways. In my search I met a very good companion and we married in 1961. In May 1962, my husband came home one day telling me that one of our friends had found a real Living Master of the Highest Order. I could hardly believe that, but within a short time we found out that it was true. This friend was and is still the group leader of the Satsang group of our Beloved Master Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj at Nuremberg. While studying Sant Ji's circulars and books a joyous remembrance came up, as if all that would be known to us. In September 1962, we wrote our first letter to Sant Kirpal Singh Ji and He answered us very quickly to contact the representative in Germany, Mrs. Fitting. My husband and I were overjoyed to get His precious gift of Holy Naam on March 9th, 1963 at Bonn, Germany. That was the crown of our life and we came now to know what to do to reach the object of our longing: Self-knowlegde and God-knowledge. In the same year, 1963, our so Beloved Master Kirpal Singh Ji came to the West. We could hardly comprehend this great fortune, but He really came in June 1963 to Germany. My first meeting with Him physically was at the railway station at Nuremberg. Until the last minute I could not believe that we would really get this rare, rare privilege. The train arrived and I remember it as if it would be just now how our Beloved came out of the train, tall, powerful, radiant and most beautiful, like the King of all Kings, like the Heavenly Father visiting His earth. My husband had the great luck to be the driver of Master's car for the next fourteen days. No one could express our grateful and happy feelings to have this Great Sant amongst us. The same day in the afternoon, the Great Master called us to sit with Him together in the garden of that house, where He stayed. It My Alpha and Omega 47 happened that I was sitting just in front of Him. While sitting there a deep gratitude to God came up out of my heart. The gracious God had given me human birth at the living time of the Christ now sitting so close to me, in front of me. After questioning us about our spiritual experiences the Great Master looked suddenly at me quite straight into my eyes and I could not but also look into His luminous eyes. Although He was looking at me very powerfully, I thought within me, I would never take away my eyes from His, even if I would die just now. The Great Master kept on looking at me, pulled me up in no time and showed me in abundance that He was nothing but strong Divine Light, God-Power manifested on this Blessed Human Pole. I was overwhelmed. People around the Master started to ask questions. Later I said to them, don't ask so many questions just look at Master's wonderful eyes and forehead and you will have wonderful experience. I was of the opinion that everyone would see that, but learnt later on that such kind of experience was a very rare blessing of the Master Himself. The following fourteen days in the physical Presence of our Great Master were filled to the utmost with His gracious Blessings. One of our friends reminded me at that time: "Do you know now, why you always felt forced from within to learn English?" When the Beloved Master went back to India in January 1964, I felt very very sad. Always when I sent Him my diaries, I wrote Him that I would be longing so much for His Darshan. In September 1964, I received a letter from Him in which He mentioned: "You will meet with your wish in due course." I was more than happy about this answer, but I had no idea how this would be possible. At that time there were hardly any favourable charter flights to India, and we were also rather short of money. But by His grace it became true in February 1965. The gracious Master Power arranged everything. I was allowed to stay with my so Beloved Master in India for three months. This was my most blessed time, during which He educated me lovingly and strictly and taught me in practice to realize many important facts for spiritual growth, for example: (1) God Power, Master Power is working overhead every- 48 The Ocean of Grace Divine where, no matter where a disciple might be, and that receptivity to Holy Naam—the Master within — would be the foremost necessity for an aspirant. (2) The Love of a Master-Saint for His disciple is very much greater compared with the love of thousands of worldly mothers and fathers put together. This my Beloved Master showed me practically—through the following incident: After about six weeks stay with my Master I got a letter from my mother, in which she asked me very urgently to come back to Germany to my husband and my child who was just three years old. I became confused, because I had gone to my Master with the firm intention to go back to Germany only when my Master would tell me to go. But now a thought struck my mind: "I am sitting here in the lap of my Beloved Master as in Abraham's lap, enjoying His Divine Bliss and my mother would have to work for my family." I felt very selfish and guilty and did not know what to do. At evening Darshan, Master came immediately to me asking me what had happened to me. I reported the contents of my mother's letter. Master looked at me very strong, asking at first, "Anybody sick at home?" "No Master," I replied. Then He said to the others sitting around Him, "Oh yes, the mothers..." turning to me again He spoke very strongly, "Go, go, I do not want to stand between the love of your mother and you." I got terrified and said quickly, "But Master, I do not want to go, I would like to stay with You " With an indescribable look of Divine Love He spoke to me, "Do you want it from me in writing (and He wrote with his fingers on His hand) that you can stay here? Don't you know how happy the father is when his daughter has finally come to him? The love of the Master for His disciples is much greater than the love of thousands of worldly mothers and fathers together." I am unable to describe my feelings when the Beloved Master was revealing this to me in this most My Alpha and Omega 49 clear and wonderful way. What a Love—how can one even dream of the reality of such a love! After two days or so the Master came to me asking softly, "Are you stronger now?" (3) Glad acceptance of sickness however painful, as the Master knows best how to pay the karmic bills. At the end of March I became rather sick with an abscess in my throat. When the Great Master heard about it, He said to me," Don't worry, you have to go through that." During the worst hours of this aching sickness He came very often to me, Himself giving me homeopathic medicine on my tongue. He also called for two doctors and both looked at me very seriously. One of them gave me penicillin injections. Well I must admit, I was not very fond of this awful pain, I had lost my speech and could not swallow, the throat got closed more and more and then I prayed to Him, "Oh Master, I cannot stand it any longer." At once I heard His footsteps approaching my room, The moment He entered the room, the pains flew away like a bird from a tree. Although I had lost my voice I could whisper this incident to the Master and He smiled graciously. At about midnight of this day, the abscess had not yet opened, I came to accept the sickness and I prayed to the Master within, "Oh Master, if You want me to have this still longer, I would not complain any more." The next moment I had to cough and the abscess burst and matter flowed out of my mouth for about forty minutes. One hour later I felt quite clearly my Master had given me my life anew. In the early morning He came to my room sweetly and lovingly asked, "Are you feeling better now?" (4) The Great Master taught me very strictly always to think positively. A few days after, Master asked me, "How are you?" My answer was, "Well, Master, the throat is not yet quite all right." The Beloved quickly instructed me, "Never say that, always answer you are all right. How are you?" I said, "All right, Master." Master smiled, "So it's good." Several times He turned to me asking, "How are you?" And I always answered, "All right Master." He nodded 50 The Ocean of Grace Divine satisfied. When I got another abscess in the throat several years later in Germany, I became a bit afraid, because I was not in the physical presence of my Beloved Master. In the night I got more pain so that I could not sleep, so I sat for meditation. Suddenly I fet my Master standing at my beside, speaking so softy, "Now it is enough." Again I had to cough immediately and the abscess burst and the throat healed very quickly. Really countless are the blessings of our Beloved Master no matter where the disciple would be. (5) And then there was another point the Great Master taught me to consider: — to live independent of everybody, no matter how advanced another initiate may be and no matter what position another initiate may have in the cause of the Master. Nothing should stand between the Master and the disciple. Everyone has to go his own way to the heart of the Master. Otherwise one cannot be true to one's own-self to reach the ultimate goal, for which our Beloved Master drew us to His Holy Feet, to guide us to our Eternal Home. One can find no end to praise the limitless Grace and Love of the Great Beloved Master Kirpal Singh Ji. He has made me His own for ever and all eternity—never-ending praise to the LORD, Holy Naam. The Unbounded Grace of the Godman Manohar Singh Duggal When Master Kirpal Singh was at Rawalpindi in about 1930, one of His nearest relatives, a boy of fourteen years, was critically ill in hospital. One evening Master went to see him. The mother of this boy respected the Master so much—the family had always regarded Him as a saint—that she begged Him that if the child had to die He should make it easy for him because the suffering he was undergoing was too much. Master of course knew immediately why the boy was suffering and why he could not leave the body. Master said to the mother, "You'd better call his aunt." The aunt was called. When she arrived, Master took her aside and said to her, "You took fifteen rupees from under the boy's pillow; until you return that money the boy cannot die." She replied, "Yes, I did take fifteen rupees from under his pillow. Because..."—here she became rather embarrassed—"because I was afraid someone else would steal it." Master then insisted, "Until that money is returned he cannot leave." She put the money back under the pillow, the boy's agony subsided, then he closed his eyes and was gone. My father, the elder brother of Kirpal Singh, was very seriously ill at Peshawar in 1939. One night he was on the verge 52 The Ocean of Grace Divine of expiring. I was sitting by his side; I knew the worst was coming, the doctor had given up hope. When the end was near I was just repeating Simran, helpless, just watching what would happen. After a time I suddenly realized that he had started to move—my father's soul had come back into the body. He opened his eyes and I could see they were filled with tears. He called my name, and told me to get pen and paper as he wanted to write a letter to his younger brother, Kirpal Singh. The letter said, "You know and I know what has happened. Unless you come, I cannot get up from this bed. I request you to come as early as possible." He then closed his eyes as if in meditation, but after another fifteen minutes he opened his eyes and said, "Send somebody to the railway station at nine o'clock as my other brother will also come." He had seen this in meditation. So actually both brothers arrived; they embraced each other and came straight to see my father. Then my father explained what had happened in the morning: Baba Sawan Singh Ji had come to take him but Kirpal Singh Ji had requested that he be spared. Because of this request Hazur had sent him back. My father's face was shining; he told us, "I cannot describe what it was like —I cannot describe that place. I was with Baba Sawan Singh Ji and Kirpal Singh Ji. We went and crossed that golden mountain and went to the other side which was full of Light." Due to the long illness of my father the expenditure was very great. My father, although he was so seriously ill, worried very much about the cost. One night during sleep, Kirpal Singh appeared to him and said, "Brother, why are you nervous? You just look at your coat hanging on the bed and that will look after your needs." Next morning at five-thirty when I came to my father's room, he said, "Look, Kirpal Singh has just appeared to me—just check the pockets of the coat lying over there." When I went through the pockets I was surprised to find they were full of currency notes. This was all His grace and this happened long before He became a Master. I was in Rajpur during 1955 visiting my mother. One evening the Master told me to come to His house in the morning. So early in the morning I went to the Master's house, and sat outside to wait for Him. The Master opened the door and said, The Unbounded Grace of The Godman 53 "Why are you sitting out here? Why did you not come in?" I said, "Sir, I was just waiting for you." He said, "No, no, I need somebody's company; now let us go and walk." He led me to the garden at the back of the house. As we were walking, I happened to see a beautiful mango lying under a tree. I felt like taking it, but I hesitated, and we passed by. We continued to walk, and the Master was talking about one thing and another; it was just beautiful to be with Him. At the end of the walk was a cement platform; when we reached it we stopped, and the Master laughed. I said. "Sir, what's the matter?" He told me, "One of the disciples from Jullunder was here, and we were walking like you and I, and when we reached this place there was a cobra sitting here. The moment that man saw the cobra he jumped behind me, as if to say that if the cobra was going to strike, let it not bite him. On one side they claim to be devotees and on the other side they're so disrespectful. I asked him if he was nervous, and he said, 'Look, that is nothing less than death!' He was very nervous. I told him, 'All right, don't worry.' And I told the snake, 'Well, you may go now.' And the snake crept slowly away towards the other side, and left. But that man was still very nervous; when we turned to go back he was walking in front of me. And when he reached his room, he rolled up his bedding, and returned to Jullunder." Presently we went back towards the house, and as I didn't want to pass that mango, I gently directed the Master away from it. But the Master could read my thoughts, and He went straight ahead towards that tree, Then He stopped, looked at me and smiled. He said, "You see that mango?" And I said, "Yes Sir." He said, "You felt like taking it?" I replied, "Very much so." He asked, "Why did you not take it?" I said, "I didn't think it proper in Your company." He said, "Now you take it." And He laughed. In 1957 when my daughter was twelve years old, she became seriously ill. She had a high temperature and she was delirious. I went to see the Master at the Ashram and He said, "I will come to see her tomorrow." She had been crying all night and all day, but five minutes before the Master arrived she fell into a deep sleep. On seeing this the Master said, "Look here, 54 The Ocean of Grace Divine you say she has been crying all the time and not able to sleep, and here she is fast asleep!" Someone said, "This is all Your miracle; You put her to sleep before You came." Then the Master put His hand on her head. She looked into His eyes, and He asked her, "What do you want?" And she, being a child, said, "Five rupees." He gave her five rupees and promised her, "When you recover I will give you another five rupees." Then He left. But the following day her condition worsened— we had to take her to the hospital. She was almost in the lap of death. The doctors complained, "What can we do if you bring patients to us in this condition? What can we do when she is dying?" I immediately ran to see Master and I told Him, "She is expected to die in half an hour." But He said, "Don't worry, nothing will go wrong. I'm going away to Rohtak but I'll be back the day after tomorrow." I began to wonder as the doctor said she was dying but the Master said nothing will go wrong. Meanwhile, the doctors gave the child some treatment and she got a little better. The next day when I went to the hospital I noticed from a distance than the Master was moving in one of the wards—I couldn't understand it as He had told me He would be away at Rohtak. So I immediately ran up to Him; there were other disciples there calling out, "Maharaj Ji's here! Maharaj Ji's here!" I asked Him, "How is it You're here? I thought You were away." He said, "No, no. I've come to see her." I took Him over to the girl; she looked again into His eyes, and He again asked her, "What do you want?" She replied, "You told me You'd give me another five rupees if I got better." "So you want to get better?" And she said, "Yes." Then He gave her another five rupees, and He took a phial out of His pocket, and gave her some homeopathic medicine. Then she slept for ten hours and she was perfectly well the next day. Once in 1964 I was at Rajpur visiting Beloved Master. In the evening He was sitting in the open outside His bungalow. One of His disciples came looking very much worried. He told the Master that his son was in hospital and the doctors had declared there was no hope of his survival as he was in a state of coma. On hearing this, Beloved Master told him that there was The Unbounded Grace of The Godman 55 nothing to worry about because he would be all right. After this Master accompanied him to the hospital to see his son. On reaching the ward he went straight to the child's bed. Beloved Master asked them to turn him over. Maharaj Ji then started rubbing his spinal cord from neck to hips. After about five minutes, the boy who had been in coma, opened his eyes. After another ten minutes the boy changed his position and sat up and bowed before the Beloved Master. Those present were astonished to see this miracle, and the news spread like wild-fire throughout the hospital; the Senior Physician in charge of the hospital came running, and told Maharaj Ji, "You have performed a miracle." Maharaj Ji told him that He had done nothing special. He had massaged the vein which had direct connection with the brain. On this the doctor replied that no treatment could save the child and coma had already set in, and he was not responding to any treatment. The boy was discharged from the hospital the following day. In 1971, when Beloved Master was not well, I was attending Him at night. One night I received a telephone call from Holy Family Hospital, New Delhi, intimating that one of the devotees of Maharaj Ji, Mr. Mahan Singh, was seriously ill and had been put under an oxygen tent. They further said that Mr. Mahan Singh had forgotten the Simran and there was pitch dark inside, and he wanted them to inform Maharaj Ji about his sad plight. On hearing this I was perplexed as to what to do as Beloved Master had been restless; at that particular time He was resting and I did not want to disturb Him. I was thinking over the matter when Maharaj Ji called me and enquired as to who was calling. I told Him. On hearing this He said it was 1.00 a.m. and Mr. Mahan Singh would be leaving at 3:30 a.m., so there was nothing to worry about. He directed me to tell them that they should put a thumb on his forehead between the two eyebrows and repeat the five Names in his right ear— Hazur would take care of the rest so he need not worry on that account. After that Master was in meditation and I was sitting by the side of His bed. Exactly at 3:32 a.m. Beloved Master opened His eyes and said, "He has gone, he was a good man. 56 The Ocean of Grace Divine Anyway, it is His Will." At 1:00 a.m. He knew that his time of departure was 3:30. At about 3:45 a phone call came. The man on the other end said that Mr. Mahan Singh had expired. Before I went to attend the call, Beloved Master said that he passed away exactly at 3:30 a.m., but the doctors must have taken some time to announce the death. In the morning some relatives of Mr. Mahan Singh came to see Maharaj Ji. They said that they had repeated the five Names in his right ear after putting a thumb on his forehead between the two eyebrows. Immediately after this Mahan Singh, who had been so dejected, smiled and said, "If one has a Master, he should be like Him!" Apparently there was Light inside and the Master appeared within to take care of him. According to them, he never opened his eyes after that and he expired in meditation. This shows that though Maharaj Ji was physically unwell, spiritually He was as strong as ever. At the Lotus Feet of the Beloved Brij Mohan Sharma Since the age of six I was very fond of spirituality, and I used to get members of my family to tell me stories about Lord Krishna and Lord Rama. When I grew up I became a businessman. In 1952 when I was thirty-three years old there was a great crisis in my life; I knew I had to find God—I could not rest until I found Him. My wife became worried that I would leave home. In October of that year, one day at five in the afternoon I told my wife that I was going to see a Saint. I may mention here that since my childhood I used to hear an inner voice guiding me and telling me what at do—for instance it would give warnings of accidents or of a snake in my path. Somebody would catch my hand and lead me out of danger. So on this day I heard the same voice which said, "Today let us go to see a Saint." I reassured my wife that I would be back soon, but that I didn't know where I had to go. The voice directed me until I found myself standing in front of a gate. There I could read a notice saying that the place was called Sawan Ashram. I remember thinking, "This is a very nice name." So I walked in. In those days Master's house was very small and there were only a few buildings in the Ashram. I asked someone if there was a 58 The Ocean of Grace Divine Saint living there. He said, "Yes, go upstairs." When I went upstairs, I saw twenty to thirty people sitting in meditation, and also saw an impressive figure sitting in front of them whom I took to be the Master. I also sat down in meditation, but after a few minutes I opened my eyes and saw that the Master was still sitting there, but He was not speaking. I thought that as soon as He spoke I would talk to Him. After ten minutes someone came and put his hand on my shoulder and asked, "Will you do some service?" I was very happy to be asked — here I was, a new person and they were asking me to give service! After it was finished, I returned to the roof, but I found that the Saint had gone. I asked the people there, "Where is the Saint who was sitting here?" But they told me He had not been there at all. At that moment I saw green, red and white Light circling the people sitting in meditation. Then I thought there must be something here, so I asked, "Where is the Master?" They told me He was standing in the compound. There I found Sant Kirpal Singh talking to a lady about her meditations. When He finished He came straight over to me and said, "Well, you have come." As soon as He uttered these words, my whole body was charged with Light and filled with happiness. I knew at once He was a great man. Then we sat down face to face, and He asked me why I had come. I replied that I had come to have bhakti — the loving devotion which leads to union with God. "I've got father, mother, wife, children, shop, house but I am not yet satisfied — today I've come for bhakti." He said that I should first grasp the theory, then I could have it. But I replied, "No, no. I want it right now." He again insisted that I should grasp the theory and attend Satsang. But I again refused. I then told Him that I wanted to talk to the Master who had been sitting on the roof. He sent for a photograph and asked me if this was the person I'd seen? When I replied that it was, He told me. "This is my Master Baba Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj. He left the physical body four years ago but He is still working — I am an empty pipe and whatever water He sends I give out." The people around the Master then said, "Why don't You give him something?" I also asked again with folded hands for inner experience. He re- At the Lotus Feet of the Beloved 59 plied, "All right, come tomorrow morning." The next day the Master was holding initiation. I remember when I arrived Tai Ji was standing in the doorway and she told me to go inside. Master was lying on a bed. He looked towards me and His eyes were full of red Light. He said, "Have you got faith?" I said, "Yes." He then told me to go outside and sit in the veranda. There were about forty people there, so I took my place in the men's row. When the Master came out He gave us the theory; afterwards He put us into meditation. I had a very good inner experience of Light and Sound. For many years I had been giving two and a half hours each day to the worship of Lord Krishna and Lord Rama. As the Master had told us to do two and a half hours meditation this meant that I began giving five hours each day to my spiritual practices As I had not attended a Satsang I was not aware that there was no need to carry on with my former practices. After nine days I suddenly heard the bell ringing so strong that I thought the whole of Delhi had gone mad—ding-dong, dingdong! But then I remembered that the Master had said that the bell Sound was one of the highest—so I started jumping about and dancing. When I went to bed I completely left the body— Master was taking me by the hand just like a father taking a five year old child. He showed me the higher planes and the deities whom I was worshipping. The next morning I collected all my idols of brass, went to the Ashram and cast them into the well. From then on I started attending Satsang—in fact I went twice a day as the Master gave meditation sittings morning and evening. This went on for three months. Then one day I asked the Master if He could give me more inner experience. He laughed and said, "Gome tomorrow." I may mention here that from the very first day I was never prevented from entering the Master's house, even when He was sleeping or eating—I was being brought up just like a baby. So the next day when I arrived the Master took me to the meditation room, and put me into meditation which lasted five hours. After that I told the Master I wished to give up my worldly life and leave my business, but He was very insistent that I should carry on with my obligations 60 The Ocean of Grace Divine in the world. After another three months I again begged the Master to give me more. He put His hand on my shoulder, and He said, "You are like a sheep bleating 'Baa-baa'." The result was that whereas up to then I had enjoyed up to five hours continuously in oceans of Light, then I became like other people and the Light only lasted for fifteen to twenty minutes—the pot was not ready. People used to complain that I was always telling my inner experiences. Well, it all started one day when Master told me to take two men with me in the car to see Him at Rajpur, and He whispered in my ear that I should make them happy. So all the way I told them my inner experiences. I used to see showers, heavy showers and flowers of Light and Master sitting on the moon. There were rows of suns, thousands of suns. Once on this plane I saw Baba Sawan Singh showering His love on many satsangis, and I thought, 'Oh, He's not coming to me." But as soon as I had this thought, He came towards me, embraced me, but as He was doing this He changed into Baba Jaimal Singh. Two months after I was initiated I saw Swami Ji, but when Master asked me what I had seen, I said I had seen Lord Krishna. Master laughed and laughed but it wasn't until I went back to my house that I saw a picture of Swami Ji and I knew then whom I had seen. All this time the Master was drawing me nearer and nearer to Himself, allowing me to serve Him closely and showing me great love. Whenever I passed a fruit shop and saw any excellent fruit I would buy it for Him. He always accepted it. We eventually got a house within a few minutes walk of the Ashram and also a house almost next to His in Rajpur. My wife often cooked special dishes for the Master which He always ate and enjoyed. I attended all the World Fellowship of Religions Conferences with the Master. The Prime Minister at the time of the first Conference in 1958 was Pandit Jawahar Lal Nehru. He was not a spiritual man, that is not until he met the Master. He was not prepared to attend the Conference, but he came and he spoke; He was dragged by the Master. In his speech he criticised some of the holy men attending the Conference, but he praised our Master. When this Conference was over the Master invited all At the Lotus Feet of the Beloved 61 the foreign delegates—there were about thirty—to the Ashram for lunch. Master was overjoyed to see them. There was one priest from Russia who was also overjoyed to be there. Master told them they could ask for anything they wanted. Only the Russian priest spoke up. He said, "We have seen so much of war we beg you please save us from more. We want peace." Master was very moved. He went into His house and came out carrying a photo of Hazur which He gave to the priest. The priest said, "I will honor Him, my family will honor Him, my country will honor Him." The Third Conference was held in Calcutta and Master was extremely ill. I remember we were staying up on the third floor and Master could not even move one step. On the fourth day Muni Sushil Kumar came up to see the Master and said, "The Conference is a failure, all is lost. The Buddhists refuse to agree to the final resolutions because they will not agree to 'God' being mentioned in it. What can be done?" Master said, "Don't worry, I will come tomorrow." But the next day the doctor said that if the Master left the room He would collapse. Master insisted, so He was carried all the way down in a chair. Before He went on to the stage the doctor said, "You are extremely sick, please speak slowly." But the Master asked the doctor to examine Him again. The doctor did so and said, "Oh, you are perfectly all right, totally all right." Master walked on to the platform and spoke for one hour. At the end all the problems were solved and everyone signed the resolutions. But when He got back to His room, Master became so ill again that the poor doctor said, "I don't know who you are—one minute you are seriously ill, the next perfectly well, and then seriously ill again. Please excuse me, but I see that I am unable to help you." According to my experience this much I can say, the Master used to take over the illnesses of others. Once I was with Him at Rahon. He was to give initiation to about one hundred people. He had refused three people, but someone in the Sangat there begged that they should also be included. Master allowed them in again and all were given Naam. Master was already unwell, but the next day Master told me He would now have to be ill for ano- 62 The Ocean of Grace Divine ther three days. From this I realized we should never press the Master to give initiation to people He rejects. One day when Master was out, two ladies came to the Ashram. I spoke with them and they told me they wished to see the Master and to have initiation. I told them that if they came back next day the Master would surely see them and give them initiation. After Master got back that evening, I was with Him; there were several people in the room, and I was massaging Him. Suddenly He sat up and said, "I cannot give initiation to those two people!" No one in the room except me knew what He meant. When those two ladies came again next day I had to tell them the Master could not see them. The Master alone knows who is acceptable for initiation. In the early days Master hardly ever refused anyone initiation. But later on when He saw so many take it and not do the practices He became more strict. He would just tell them to continue coming to Satsang. If anyone, however, told the Master he had seen Hazur inside, He was so overjoyed, He would say, "How can I refuse you Naam? All right, please sit down." Sometimes the Master was very kind; I once said, "I would like to see the place at Rishikesh where You stayed after Hazur left the physical body." He kept silent. The next day at six in the morning Ram Saroop, Master's driver, arrived at my house, and told me the car was ready and Master was waiting. We all went to Rishikesh and Master was so jolly, and showed me every place—where He used to sit, where He used to wash, where He used to eat. Then He said, "Let's stay and have some lunch." He ordered me to get drinking water from a special well from where He used to drink. I brought the water, but when He tasted it, He laughed and said, "This is not the right water." There were several wells and I had gone to the wrong one. Master knew at once. One day a young sadhu came into my shop and we began to talk. I asked him if he saw Light; he said "Yes." I asked him if he heard the Sound; he said "Yes". Then he questioned me. So I said, "By the grace of my Master I See and hear the Light and Sound." I could see his face turning color, so I asked, "Did you tell a lie?" He said, "Yes. Can you help me?" I closed the shop and At the Lotus Feet of the Beloved 63 took him to the Ashram. The sadhu was very thirsty at the time but I did not know this. As soon as we saw the Master, He said, "Oh, you are just in time, tea is ready." We went inside with Him; there were three cups of tea on a table, one for the Master, one for the sadhu, and one for me. Then the Master began to question the sadhu: why had he left his home and come to Delhi? He said he had left Bihar because he had a fight with his elder brother, that he was married and had two children, and that he had been the manager of a factory. Master said at once, "Look here, I can give you Light and Sound, but you must go back to your family, ask forgiveness, and fulfill your obligations. If you promise to do this, I can give you Naam." He promised, and he was initiated the following day. Once a group of us were at Master's house in Rajpur doing seva (service). Master had just bought the house and the garden was in need of clearing. We were a group of about twenty-five; we were clearing stones. It was a very hot day. Every few minutes I kept stopping and saying, "Oh, it's too hot to do this work!" But I was doing my duty. Suddenly Master came out—we were all resting under the shade of a tree—and He said, "What is wrong?" Someone said, "Oh, it's Brij Mohan, he's saying it's too hot to work." The Master then sat down with me; He picked up a stone, looked at it, and said, "Oh cloud, my Brij Mohan is feeling very hot." In a moment the sky was full of clouds and we were able to work under these clouds until late in the evening. The next day as we went on working the Master came over to me and pointed to some tenacious roots of a big tree clinging to the earth by many hair-like minor roots. He said, "Brij Mohan cut them!" He gave me an axe. I cut them, and He said, "Look, Brij Mohan, people in the world are like these roots; if we cut away our desires we can be free." Master would teach me things at every turn. Once He asked me, "Who are you?" I replied, "I'm Your servant." He said, "No, you are the servant of your mind." One day when I was setting out from Delhi to see the Master at Rajpur, my son wanted to go with me but he was very weak with typhoid fever. My wife asked me not to take him, but I said I would ask the child and see what he wanted to do. He 64 The Ocean of Grace Divine said he wanted to go. But as we were about to leave, his condition became worse. The child insisted on going so we all left together. But once we started the journey the fever was gone. When we reached Rajpur, Master was eagerly awaiting us at the gate. He came and embraced my son and kissed him and took him in His lap. He told me, "This also used to happen to me. My son Darshan used to have a high fever like this when we were going to see Hazur, but as soon as we got into the train everything was all right." Once when I was in my shop a dog came in and by intuition knew he was saying to me, "I am dying, can you save me?" So I called out, "Is there anybody who can save this dog?" Then a porter who was passing said that the dog had probably been given some poison, and that if he was given curd he could be saved. So I got some curd and gave it to him. He vomited everything—he was all right; he wagged his tail and went away. I was afraid, so I went straight to the Ashram. The Master was waiting for me. He said, "What's the matter with you?" I explained what had happened, so He replied, "You can bring dogs to life—I can bring men to life. All right, don't worry." When the construction work at Manav Kendra started in the autumn of 1970, Master was in a very happy mood. He ordered Tai Ji to make some sweet-meats, and fruit was bought to give as parshad. I did not know about this so I came very late. Tai Ji said, "Why are you late? Master has been waiting for you." I found Master was sitting with a big basket of fruit which He had arranged in a very beautiful way. He was all smiles, and He said "Here is a shop—come on buyers, take any fruit you like!" He was talking like this. Then He distributed the fruit; parshad was give to everybody. He was so happy He even gave parshad to the birds also. Once when the Master was away He asked me by letter to give money to someone who was in difficulties. I gave him some money, and then when Master came back He returned the money to me, but the way He returned it was very strange; as He was counting out the money He would open one eye and close the other eye, then close both eyes, then take the money back and re-count it all over again. This went on for about ten minutes. At the Lotus Feet of the Beloved 65 I wondered what He was doing. Then He gave me that money, and I put it in my cash box in my house. Every day I would take money from it, but every time I noticed instead of getting less that money increased. I thought Master must have given me too much, so after ten days of this I took it back to Him. When Manav Kendra was still under construction an Army engineer came to see the Master, and wished to help install the pumping machinery which would fill the water tower. Master asked him to wait, assuring him He would go with him later on. But the engineer was impatient and insisted on going off to inspect the pump in spite of Master's repeated requests that he should wait for Him. As he was inspecting the diesel engine, he fell forward and was in danger of losing his life. Some great force jerked him back, but his hand was cut off. A satsangi who was there immediately clamped his hand round the stub of the arm to prevent the engineer from bleeding to death. Master came, and he was rushed to the military hospital. The man who was holding the stump held it in such a fierce grip that he was unable to let go, and it took four soldiers to get his hand off before the doctors could operate. Master's comment was that on that day, the engineer was to have lost his life, but he had been given pardon and had only lost his hand. I was always fond of meeting sadhus. I used to know an old sadhu who helped me before I met the Master. Of course, once I found the Master I was so happy that when I met this old sadhu again I told him all about Master. He was overjoyed, and asked me take him to meet the Master. When I took him to the Master He didn't say a word. He just went over and put His hand on the old sadhu's head — he went into samadhi for three hours! When he came back he started weeping, "Why have You brought me back? I was sitting with Baba Sawan Singh and He was talking to me." Then Master told him. "You belong to Tulsi Sahib's family." He replied, "I came from Hathras, but I didn't know that." A year later the sadhu came to see me and he touched my feet. I jumped up and said, "No, you are more than my father!" "No, no, my dear son, I got everything through you, and I've come to tell you a story. I was living in the jungle at Vrindavan; there was also a man who had gone there for worship, 66 The Ocean of Grace Divine but his son got cholera and died. He brought the body to me. I was in meditation at the time; the Master appeared to me inside and told me to sprinkle the body with water, otherwise people would say sadhus have no power. I did this and the boy came back to life." The next day we both went to see the Master. But the Master appeared to be very much annoyed; He warned the old sadhu never to do this again. After the old man had left, the Master said to me, 'Look, Brij Mohan, I had to reprimand him to make sure that he didn't do that again. It was all right the first time, but this must not be repeated again." Very shortly after I had been initiated I went to ask Master to give me more experiences. Tai Ji asked me to wait outside. Suddenly Master came out but I could only see a golden Light standing in front of me for about twenty seconds. Then He spoke, "What do you want?" I said, "Master, I want to see You," but as I was saying this I realised He had just shown me who He was—He was not a physical body but Light. \ As I Saw The Beloved Master Dona G. Kelley Just as a diamond's many facets are needed to produce its brilliance, so was Master Kirpal a Spiritual Gem, whose many "facets" delighted all who knew Him. One outstanding facet was His sense of humor. When He stayed at my home for several days during His 1955 tour, He would question all of us, after the morning meditation, as to what we saw inside. One elderly lady said, "I saw Your bare foot, Master." "Did you see my foot, inside?" Master asked. "Oh no, Master, I saw it outside." Master rocked with laughter. "Any child could have seen that," He said. On another occasion, He was giving instructions regarding meditation. "When you prepare for meditation, see that you have nothing in the belly," He said. One of the ladies said, "Master, the right word is abdomen." "All right," said Master, "See that you have nothing in the abdomen-belly, when going into meditation." When He was at Anaheim during His 1972 tour, morning 68 The Ocean of Grace Divine meditation was held upstairs in the Disneyland Hotel. Ordinarily, all of the elderly satsangis would ride the elevator up to the big hall. On this particular morning, the elevator broke down, so we had to walk up two long flights of stairway. As I was struggling upward, hugging the rail, Master came along. "All right Dona, hop on my back and I will carry you up." During His 1963 tour, Master was returning from Baldwin, Michigan, to Chicago, Illinois. En route, our motorcade stopped for lunch along Lake Michigan. It was a hot day, and most of us took off our shoes and went wading along the shoreline. Suddenly, we saw Master, His white pajamas rolled up to the knees, wading in the chilly water. He was enjoying Himself with the abandon of a child—not one iota of false "dignity" in His make-up. At Rajpur, He would hold Darshan on the grass. One morning as He was speaking, an infant came crawling up to His chair and smiled happily, saying "Gah-gah-gah." Master leaned forward, smiled joyously and said, "Yes?" Of course, His outstanding characteristic was Love. Like Jesus, He loved all children—He showered Love upon all children who came near Him. It is not too much to say that He was Love personified. Who among His satsangis can ever forget His admonition, "Love, and everything shall be added unto you?" I count it as the greatest blessing of my life to have had the privilege of serving Him for almost twenty-six years. I regard Him as my Brother, the Holy Son of my Master, Sawan Singh Ji. I could have said much more about His radiant personality but the Chinese say, "In many words, there is much confusion." I could, for instance, have spoken of His joyousness, His rippling laughter, His erect, graceful carriage—He walked like the King that He was. However, words have their limitations—it is enough to know that He will live forever in our hearts. Stories of Master's Protection and Blessings Bruno Zaffina Hazur used to say if you want to see how a Master works, you should watch an initiate die. I know of a case in Mexico where a young lady of about twenty-one years old was initiated. Although her father came to Satsang several times, he did not take initiation. About six months after she'd taken initiation, her father died of cancer. Someone in Mexico said that when this man was dying, Master Kirpal Singh met him on the inside and took him up, even though the man was not initiated. When I heard this story I wrote to Master to ask Him if it was correct, and for permission to tell this to the others. He wrote back, "Yes, it's due to the grace of the Master that this blessing was extended to the girl's father." Here is another outstanding case of the Master's mercy and protection. A lady in Kentucky who was a devoted initiate of the Master had a husband who was an alcoholic. She took care of him—I guess he was basically a good man. Once in meditation she saw that Master was in a boat with her husband. The boat was on a golden sea, and Master was taking this man across the sea. So she wrote to Master to ask if this vision was correct, that he would be taken to the other side and never have 70 The Ocean of Grace Divine to reincarnate again? Master said, (I saw His letter at the time) "Yes, you have interpreted your vision, the inner experience, correctly; because of your devotion, Master's grace has been extended to your husband—and he will soon pass over." And a short time later he did die; she saw a kind of blackness leave his body, and he was met by the Master. The man who was to be the instrument for me to find the Path lived in Chicago, and was called Earl Fishman. He had a friend called Dr. Schval. I never met this doctor but he seemed to be an advanced person. After I'd gone to live in Mexico I received a letter from Earl saying that Dr. Schval had died. His wife had told Earl the circumstances of his death. Dr. Schval had seen the Master inside two or three days before he left the body, and the Master told him to prepare his papers because he'd be leaving permanently. So he just told his wife that he'd be leaving and that his Will was in order. And he told her, "I want you to sit at the bedside after I leave the body and don't call the mortician until two or three hours have passed." She later came to Earl Fishman and told him that she had done this after her husband died, and after half an hour she was filled with joy. So when the Master came to take the doctor, the radiations were so strong that even the wife was engulfed in peace and bliss. The group leader in Kingston, Jamaica, told me that when her husband was dying of cancer, just before he left the b o d y he also was not an initiate—he said, "Your Master and His Master are both in the room here with me." And then he died a short while later. There was a man living in Arkansas who was a hermit; he was an initiate. When he died, two initiates in separate parts of Arkansas were meditating and they both saw him going up in a blaze of Light, and he was in ecstasy; Master Kirpal Singh was on one side and Baba Sawan Singh was on the other side. He said, "Please tell my daughter she should not feel sad. You see how happy I am. Extend my love to her and also to the dear initiates." Neither of those two realized they'd both seen the same thing until they got together much later. Mrs. Gordon Hughes was dying round about 1928; she was very thin and weak, and her family had even made preparations Stories of Master's Protection and Blessings 71 for the funeral. But as she hadn't found what she wanted in life, she wanted to continue living. She saw this blazing Light in the corner of her room and Hazur appeared and walked through her; she became well again. So she got up an d walked down stairs to the amazement of all the family. But when she saw this Light and this Form she was really afraid. She said she didn't know what it was. After this she started meditating, and she began seeing two Forms—one was Sant Kirpal Singh and the other was Hazur. And she made a painting of Sant Kirpal Singh before she knew He was walking this earth in physical form. When she was initiated in 1954 she asked Mr. Khanna if he'd show her a picture of the Master, and she was amazed to find it was the same Master she'd been seeing inside. This is how I heard about the Path. I had to watch my wife dying in childbirth in 1956. I was married to a Mexican lady, and we lived around the Chicago area. When we were to have our second child, I drove her to the hospital early in the morning. I already had a little boy of two named Mario; we hoped to have a family of four, but before 11:00 in the morning we were back to a family of two. But the amazing thing was that I found that she had knowledge of her death one year before it happened—she had told a lot of people, but she never told me. And when I mentioned it to this friend of mine whose name was Earl Fishman, he said casually, "Some people are told beforehand when they are to leave the body." I asked him how he knew—I realized that this man had great peace. Then he began telling me how he had searched all his life, how he was born Jewish and how he loved Judaism. However, Judaism didn't give him any of the inward things which it referred to. He tried Christianity, but it also failed to give him inner experience. So he went from one school of thought to another. One day he met a woman in an elevator going up to his office in Chicago. They began talking of these things, and she said, "Incidentally, are you going to hear the Great Living Saint? He is here now." This was in 1955. He said, "I don't know of any living Saint, but I'll be very happy to hear Him." So he went to the lecture, and Master Kirpal Singh was talking. This was during the Master's first world tour. He was answering every question 72 The Ocean of Grace Divine Earl had in his mind. Earl was amazed that here was a man up on the stage giving him these answers he'd never been able to find for himself. Master talked of Light and being reborn in Light. So Earl took initiation. After Master left Chicago, Earl was so intoxicated that every morning precisely at 3:00 a.m. he would be awakened and he had to meditate for four hours. He said he was making marvellous progress. And then he became so busy in his work that he started putting off his meditation—he thought that after the work got done he'd have more time to meditate—and first thing he knew he lost years of progress. Maria Estella was living in Mexico with a dear friend. When her friend died Maria was grief stricken. She had been as deeply attach to this man as if he'd been her husband. A friend of mine, called Carmen, who was working for Master in Mexico, told Maria, "You should not be too attached because this causes misery." Carmen began to tell her about the Path. Maria got interested and eventually she became a vegetarian and requested initiation. I was given permission to convey the instructions to her, so I asked her about the theory and the diet. We decided to hold initiation the day before Christmas. I asked her if she'd like it in the morning at about 8:00. But she said she wanted it at 5.00. I said, "But Maria that's so early!" But she had a little shop selling buttons and Coca-Cola and so on, and she wanted to open it at 8:00. I said, "Maria, what you're getting kings and queens and scientists have been after—it's the greatest gift of all." She said, "Nevertheless, I'd like to open up my store at 8:00, and I'd like to have initiation at 5:00." Well, I thought if Master's a servant of all mankind I must be a servant too. So I decided when I went to bed that night that I must not oversleep as this was to be the most important moment of her life. So four of us had agreed to meet. I was to pick up Leora Herold, the group leader, and Maria a little before 5:00 in the morning, At 3:00 in the morning I was awakened—I didn't wake up softly, it was like I'd been shaken. So I thought I'd get some more sleep, but no, Master had wakened me and I had to meditate; it was very very beautiful. So I then drove over to Carmen and she told me: "Something very strange happened to me. I was awakened at 3:00 and I had to meditate." I told her the Glimpses of a Perfect Being 73 same thing happened to me. Next we went and picked up Leora Herold and she told the same story! Then we picked up Maria, who was not yet initiated, and she had also been woken at 3:00 a.m. So the question I put to anybody who reads these words is: What is that Power that is so all-pervading which wakens four people in the sleepy town of Cuernavaca in Mexico to prepare for initiation? That Power is the Christ Power, the God Power, the Guru Power, the Master Power. People wonder how It works? It's incomprehensible how It works. We who are on the Path, we know It works—what more do we want? Except to turn to It as best we can. My Lord Waits Betty Shifflett Unto the Mount I lift my gaze Looking for my Lord. In radiance He is waiting there Waiting for me alone. Daily I seek in the quiet hours To see His Dear Face, Through the open door of earth's domain By the light of his Grace. He's waiting, my Lord is waiting To receive His child. He's waiting, My Lord is waiting And His voice is calling me Home. Master's Three Visits to Pakistan W.S. Mongia First Tour In early 1956 it was decided by the Master that He would undertake a visit to Lahore, Pakistan, where our fellow satsangi brothers could make arrangements for His stay, Satsang, and where all satsangis initiated by Baba Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj before partition would gather. Arrangements were accordingly made to secure passports and visas for the Master, Madam Hardevi (Tai Ji), Gyani Bhagwan Singh, myself and my wife. As soon as we crossed the Indian border (customs, police, and military at the border), we reached three similar check-posts on the other side at Wagha in District Lahore. When we reached the Custom at Wagha, the Superintendent, Mr. Hafeez, a fine young man with a band of his subordinate officers, received the Master very respectfully stepping a few paces outside his office. As Hafeez was an old friend, I asked him to show due respect and courtesy to the Master. His reply was that since the Master was now in their country it was their duty to treat Him well and in a befitting manner. He requested the Master very politely to grace his office on the border. When the Master reached there Master's Three Visits to Pakistan 75 Hafeez and party requested Him to kindly accept their invitation to a cup of tea which they said would be prepared by a nonMuslim, meaning thereby a Hindu. Master laughed at this suggestion and He said that all human beings were His brothers and He would prefer to have tea from a Muslim. Across this check-point hundreds of Muslim satsangis were waiting for the Master's darshan. They were permitted by the Customs officer to come through the barrier and enter the Customs enclosure. They were very pleased to touch the Feet of the Master and shower blessings on the Customs people who gave them an opportunity to see the Master earlier than it would otherwise have been possible. From there we drove to Bungalow No. 31 in Shalimar Garden-Town, the residence of Mr. Mahmud Shaukat who was Master's chief representative in Pakistan. All those satsangis who couldn't come up to the border, paid their homage to the Master at the house of Mr. Mahmud Shaukat which was very commodious, having a large number of rooms. He had also arranged for their stay in houses adjoining his own. Among the satsangis was an old lady named Bibi Amina who had been initiated by Master Sawan Singh Ji many years earlier. When the partition of the country between India and Pakistan took place in 1947 and the Muslim satsangis residing at and near Dera Baba Jaimal Singh felt obliged to leave for Pakistan, Bibi Amina was very adamant and wouldn't leave. The Master, then at the Dera, entrusted as He was to see to the safe escort of immigrants, persuaded her to go to Pakistan as she could no longer stay in the changed circumstances. After a good deal of persuasion she agreed to go to Pakistan on the explicit condition that Hazur would visit her in Pakistan in physical form before her death. She was in tears and said that she firmly believed that the Master was God on earth and had to keep this promise. It was to redeem this pledge that Master Kirpal Singh made this first trip to Pakistan to see Bibi Amina and tell her that according to the promise made by His Master He had come to see her in His physical form. There were many rejoicings and a large number of Muslim non-satsangis also came to see the Master and hear His discourses. The local C.I.D. police officers who posted reports on the 76 The Ocean of Grace Divine activities of the Master heard the Satsang which was, of course, not held in the open. They were very much impressed by the teachings of the Master and said that He alone told them of God as recorded in the Holy, Quran. The Pakistan Police reported very favorably in their confidential reports about the Mission of the Master, with the result that many religious and political leaders, including the Pakistan Ambassador in U.S.A. then in Lahore, came to pay their homage to the Master. As a matter of fact he had met Him on one of His tours in the States and actually offered a handsome donation which the Master, as was usual with Him, had very politely declined to accept. Second Tour It was in the year 1959 that the Master undertook His second tour to Lahore. This time Mrs. Narendra (Kuku), myself, my wife, and Tai Ji, proceeded to Lahore from Amritsar by train because there were certain restrictions on road traveling by private cars. The Master and His party got into the train at Amritsar Railway Station at about 12:00 noon. As chance would have it, Mr. Hafeez who was previously Superintendent of Customs at the Wagha land border, was now in charge of the Customs office at the railway station, Lahore. The moment he saw the Master and His party coming from the railway station he ordered that the Master be accorded V.I.P. treatment and nobody in the Master's party should be checked or searched. Shorty after, we reached Mr. Shaukat's house where hundreds of satsangis from various parts of Pakistan had collected for Master's Darshan. There were tears of joy in their eyes and they were dancing with delight. Third Tour The third tour to Pakistan came in April 1963. This time the party was limited to the Master, Tai Ji, myself and my wife. Once again we had to travel by train from Amritsar to Lahore, and stayed at the house of Mr. Shaukat. As usual, he made very good arrangements for the stay of satsangis in and around his. Master's Three Visits to Pakistan 77 house. There is an old friend of mine, Mr. Sufi Mohammed Aslam Gondal. When he came to know that I was in Lahore he came to see me and we went to buy some articles for use of the guests. Sufi said that he saw a very bewitching man meaning thereby Master Kirpal Singh at Shaukat's house whose beautiful face fascinated him greatly. He then turned back and brought a basket of maltas (special oranges) to be presented to the Master. It was spontaneous love between the two, and when he presented the basket of maltas to the Master and touched His Holy Feet, the Master distributed all the maltas (about one hundred and thirty-two) to all satsangis. Out of compassion the Master took him to one small room in the house which was empty and gave him initiation from the Holy Quran; Sufi was in meditation a couple of hours, having crossed various stages of Light and Sound. When he came out of the room he told me that this holy man was a wonderful person and in spite of Sufi's previous worldly life the Master had taken him up many stages. Throughout all His tours in Pakistan, the whole day Master would make half a dozen people sit in each room of the house and initiate them, and the old satsangis, who now had sons and grandsons with them, brought them to the Master for initiation. On this last occasion, Bibi Amina's husband, who was an old railway retired employee, came along with his wife, and Master initiated him with the result that he lay flat on the earth having lost all sense of the body. He was in this exalted state of intoxication for about four or five hours. Then the Master brought down his soul into the body, and the man said, "What have you done? I don't want to come back to this earth. I was very happy above." At this Bibi Amina said to the Master, "What a strange justice. This man who has been beating me for going to Dera Beas has been taken to the higher stages in one sitting, and I who have spent the whole of my life as a devotee have never had such an experience." And the Master said, "This is my sweet Will." Then there was another young man, son of Master Mohammed Shafi. Rufi is his name. He said, "Master, why don't You take us to this stage?" Master replied, "If I take you to this 78 The Ocean of Grace Divine stage, who is going to look after your wife and children? I have to see that your family doesn't starve." I need hardly add that the labor in the vineyard of the Lord never goes unrewarded, but in diverse ways He more than compensates the laborer beyond his wildest dreams. The Beloved Master's Gift T.S. Khanna I relate a few instances showing the greatness, compassion, extraordinary personality and love of Great Master Kirpal Singh for the initiates of Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji. He was the living example of His teachings and brought home the Science of the Soul of the Great Master. Mrs. Khanna and I had the privilege to bring His Message to the West in the close of 1949. The Master came to the United State in 1955, along with Kuku (Princess Narendra) and Tai Ji (Mme. Hardevi). The Master, myself, Mrs. Khanna and Bibi Hardevi were traveling in an automobile from San Francisco to Redwood City. Great Master Kirpal Singh was kind enough to say, "It is due to the presence of Khanna Ji that I am here in the U.S.A., otherwise no one knew me." I told the Master that it was due to the grace of the Master that the work of Ruhani Satsang started and that the Master brought His own working staff. The Master said, "Khanna is my younger brother." I thanked Him for such blessings. Master graced me to be the first one to have the authority to conduct initiation on His behalf in the West. Mrs. Willoughby was accepted by the Master for initiation. She was in Las Cruses, 80 The Ocean of Grace Divine New Mexico. She could not afford to come down to Washington, D.G. and I could not travel there. She was desperate to get initiation as she feared that she might pass away due to heart failure. She was alarmed because her mother died of a heart attack and felt she might meet with the same fate. I encouraged her on the phone to have full faith in the Master Power. It was not necessary that she should die due to a heart attack because her mother had. She begged that she would like to have initiation before anything happened. The same evening I meditated on the Master and thought that Mrs. Willoughby could be initiated on the telephone as the Master Power can work, regardless of time and distance. I called her and advised that she should take a bath and sit down comfortably in a chair, and relax completely. Next morning she called and was given the five holy Names. She memorized and repeated them easily. She was requested to sit in silent meditation for an hour and then listen to the Sound Current coming from the right side. I asked her to call me on the phone about her spiritual experience and confirm the same in writing. She told that as soon as she went into meditation, her nerves were calmed down. She felt great peace and kept on repeating the charged Names. By the grace of the Master she was healed completely and had no fear of death. She saw the Radiant Form of both the Great Masters, Hazur Baba Sawan Singh and Param Sant Kirpal Singh. Her initiation was perfect, even transmitted through the telephone. She was very grateful for the quick action and marvelous result. I submitted her report to the Master and apologized for giving initiation on the phone. The Master wrote back that He approved my conducting initiation on the telephone as a special case, but I should not do such a thing again. He added that I reposed all hope in the Master, therefore Master Power worked and took care. I thanked the Master for His grace. In 1963, the Master stayed with us at Delafield Place, N.W. Washington, D.C. Mrs. Khanna used to cook for the Master. The Master would eat at the table, and also bless the food. Before leaving Washington at the end of the tour, the Master was having His meal and I was in the next room with the door closed. After having His meal the Master knocked on the door the Beloved Master's Gift 81 of my room. I was surprised. Upon opening the door, the Master immediately embraced me and gave me the sum of $350.00 stating that it was for the food He took from the kitchen. I requested the Master that it was not necessary to pay as all belonged to Him. Furthermore, the Master barely used food worth $50.00 and I was being paid $350.00. The Master gave a smile and asked me to to keep it. It was a blessing to have the money from the Living Master as Parshad. The Sweet Home of the Father Sharon Shively I was an unhappy child. I was always afraid. I slept on the edge of my bed so I could get out fast if the house caught on fire. I never had many friends. I believed in God until I grew old enough to ask impossible questions which those around me could not answer. As a teen-ager, the question of God never entered my mind. I only wanted to be happy. I sought happiness through art, school achievement, and friends, but nothing worked. In college I didn't care about learning anything, I just wanted to be happy. I was moody, depressed, confused and "strange." As a result, I was very lonely. I got almost all "A" grades, but it didn't matter to me very much. I dropped out of college, and worked full-time. At this time I first tried drugs. I had enough money to buy everything I wanted, and my clothes and apartment seemed perfect to me, but I was still miserable. My search led me to civil disobedience and deeper into drugs and sensuality. I sometimes had flashes of a world of love, where people walked fearlessly as if in bright sunshine. And I knew I was living The Sweet Home of the Father all wrong, but I didn't know what to do. On one drug trip I realized in despair the totality of my ignorance and debased condition. I saw the same things in the world around me. Nothing seemed to be in order; we were polluting ourselves, our air, our water and I felt helpless. I wanted desperately to be "right," to live the "right" way, but I didn't even know what that meant, I just knew I was at the very bottom. I hallucinated that I was talking to God. I said, "You are God, so You can do anything. Please help me. PLEASE HELP Me!" And since I was talking in thought, not words, my "me" meant us, our whole world, as well as myself. God promised He would help me. I felt relieved, but as I was on drugs at the time, it became very negative and confused quickly. I returned to college. I thought perhaps I would be happier if I could earn my living in a more fulfilling way and I felt I needed a degree for this. I was given complete tuition and expenses through a scholarship loan program—a highly unusual circumstance. In one of my first classes I met the person who was to tell me of the Master. I was not drawn to this person at all, but circumstances threw us together. One afternoon during a break in an assignment we had to carry out for our class we decided to get some coffee. As we sat over our coffee, talking, the subject of yoga came up. I had been interested in yoga on and off but I had never felt that it was possible for me, because all of the yogas I had heard of demanded self-discipline and the rigid avoidance of sensual pleasure, two things I felt I was not capable of. So, when people talked of yoga I envied them, I sensed something beautiful, but far beyond my reach. As the person I was with continued talking I found myself listening just to be polite. I had tried Transcendental Meditation which had never satisfied me and I mentioned this to him. "Well, I practice a yoga," he said. That's nice, I thought. "Yes, it's Surat Shabad Yoga, the Yoga of attention to the Light and Sound of God. And I have a Master. A Perfect Living Master. His name is Kirpal Singh and He will take me back to the Sweet Home of the Father from which we have been gone so long." 84 the Ocean of Grace Divine It was amazing. It was as if he had spoken in some code that part of me recognized instantly. And the part of me that recognized the code burst out and overwhelmed the rest. I was not the same person I had been seconds before, I was more like the person I had been on rare occasions as a child playing with sunlight and dreaming of fairy lands. I didn't even realize that I was different at the time because all I was aware of was that I had to hear more about the Master and more about the Path. I had always loved the words "sweet" and "home;" here they were where they belonged, as if they had been present in my former life just to be welcoming signs into this life, because it was a whole new life that I entered joyously from the very second that I was told about it. All of a sudden this person I was sitting with was the dearest person I had ever seen. Everything he told me was like clear, cool water to someone really thirsty. He told me about the Master, the God in Man, who was here on earth now as He had been in the past. I had always believed in rainbows as a child, they were signs of wonder; this was the most rainbow thing that had ever happened. He told me about meditation and that the Master's Way was made so easy, by His Grace, that anyone could do it. He told me about the vegetarian diet and the need to avoid drugs or excessive sensual indulgence. Somehow, I knew that now things were possible because of the Master. Here was a way—a Perfect way—out of the misery in which I had been for so long and it would be made possible because I would not be doing it alone, or on my own strength of will or discipline; the Master would be with me and He would pick me up if needed, and carry me like a mother does her child. I was so happy. It was like a fantastic dream, a dream that had always been just beyond my awareness. I felt like I had been waiting all my life for this moment even though I had never known I was waiting at all. I felt like a great king had sent an older brother to rescue a child of His Kingdom who had been lost since birth, and now I was found and listening to stories of the places I had forgotten, and the customs and ways I had forgotten consciously but evidently never completely. The Sweet Home of the Father 85 It was like discovering a new world, and yet a tantalizingly familiar world in feeling. I felt like I belonged here. I felt like at last I found my place and understood why everywhere else I had been out of place. It was a new world of incredible sweetness and beauty. The Master's Words were so gloriously beautiful and His wisdom was so simple and complete. I was allowed to apply for initiation three or four days after I first heard about the Master, even though I hadn't followed the diet for three months. I promised sincerely that I would never eat the non-vegetarian foods or take drugs again. It was as if just hearing about the Master was enough to lift me out of the darkness I had been in. I can remember one time I had been "smoking" with my friends and I had felt time seemed to stop, and I had thought that I would never know the true sweetness of timelessness while doing dope but at the same time there was nothing else to do instead, so I just went on with it. In the beginning it had all been exciting and an escape from the meaninglessness of the rest of life, but by the time I heard about the Master, it had become nothing but a dreary habit I felt powerless to break. I really felt as if I was leaving one country and entering a a new one—a hidden one of sunshine and happiness somehow within the one I had always lived in. I still lived in the same apartment, went to the same classes, and walked the same streets; but now I knew the same secret the flowers knew. Now I knew the Truth. Hadn't it been told that the Truth would set us free? And I felt free. I heard the birds singing, and they were singing about the wonder of the Master. The sun was s a y i n g Son, Son of God—Kirpal. One night I heard a tape of the Master speaking. It sounded to me as if His Voice was ringing through space and time, as if the voice I heard was only a part of the total sound His Voice was making. It was the Master who taught me to love the word God, because for so long that word had had no meaning. But as I waited to hear about my application, I read as many of the Master's books as I could, and I learned that God was Love, Light and Truth, and that His laws were for the good of each 86 The Ocean of Grace Divine and all. Only as I read them in the Master's words did the common morals of all religious make sense. Here was the mystery of life, death and fate revealed as simply as a story for children. And there was no flaw anywhere. They held true throughout. For the first time in my life I began to trust someone. It was someone I had never seen Or met but I felt closer to Him all the time. For the first time in my life I knew beyond a doubt the way to be "good," I had somehow always yearned to be good, to be "right" but I had never known in the slightest what this might mean in terms of behavior, and so I had never even allowed the yearning to become very conscious. As I read the Master's books and circulars and attended Satsangs I began to understand what goodness was. The Master made it so clear. The joy of waking up to a clean life was overwhelming. All of the beauty in nature was His beauty. All of the love that I had not appreciated in family and friends I could now begin to appreciate because His Love was melting the ice of fear which had formed around my heart. All of the happiness I felt was His gift. I learned that I could "talk" to Him and He would answer, not directly usually but somehow, and I learned to recognize His answers and they made me glad. One day my initiation acceptance arrived in the mail box. I was happy and excited but also nervous about initiation itself. I didn't know what to expect and I felt very anxious about it. I was so used to concealing much of my inner feelings from myself and others that the anxiety of the situation prevented me from realizing with full conviction what I was actually seeing and hearing within. I could not relax enough to let myself fully experience what was actually happening within. Nevertheless, I was sure that I had seen and heard something, and I had the five charged Names and my new life had officially begun, although really, my life had truly begun that day I had first heard of Him whom my soul would love. Since then my life has become progressively happier. Although there are downs as well as ups, the constant misery and The Sweet Home of the Father 87 despair of my past is gone. I know that I don't realize or appreciate the blessing of Naam Initiation, but the little of it I do realize makes me see how incredibly merciful a Perfect Master is. He takes care of every sparrow with His Great Love. Blessings Given By The Beloved Mary M. Garlich It was 1963, and I was in Chicago to be initiated. When I wrote out my application for initiation I had said that I was interested in both spiritual and physical healing. It may have happened during my initiation or in the Satsang later, but when I came back to my room at the hotel to take off my clothes and rest, an egg-sized lump had disappeared from my side. This was a very painful lump; but, after having gone through several surgeries, I had decided to do nothing further about it. I had already told God that I was willing to go unless He had work for me to do—if there was something for me to do then He might keep me alive. After arriving home I was in the habit of getting up at two a.m., bathing, and going down to the living room to meditate. I had so much pain in my lower abdomen that I could scarcely concentrate on meditation. This time I didn't ask God to give me a healing, but while I was in meditation I felt a strong tingling sensation in the finger tips of my left hand and arm traveling down my chest to my torso. There was a flash of light in my lower abdomen—a hard painful lump in the groin area disappeared. Since that night I have never had pain in that area, and Blessing Given by the Beloved 89 there have been no more lumps. That was twelve years ago, and I have been able to work for Master in the capacity he has given to me. In 1972, Master was to arrive in Washington, D.G. I had dreamt of His coming, and of going on His tour for a long, long time. My ninety-two year old mother was in a convalescent home. I talked to the head nurse and told her of my hope to go on a tour. Her answer to me was that my mother's lungs were filling with fluid, but that perhaps if I kept in touch by phone I could be informed if she took a turn for the worse. Every time I contacted this particular head nurse I found that my mother's condition had improved. As it turned out I went on quite a large portion of the tour, and came home to find my mother in better health than she had been for some time. She never again had any problem with her lungs, and she lived to be nearly ninety-four years old. Master's tour had taken Him to Chicago. A dear friend and I left by plane and arrived in Chicago about noon. On coming into the Belmont Hotel, I found Master sitting on a davenport. He looked at me and said, "Yes, what is it?" I said, "Master, here is this dear lady" (pointing to my companion). "She loves you very much, plays your tapes, and yet she isn't initiated." Master was looking right at me when He said, "Master does not accept everyone." When we left the room, Malka was elated. She said, "Mary, did you hear what Master said to me? He looked right at me (Malka) and said, "You have God too." Master apparently was looking at two different people at the same time, and gave two different messages. Then Malka went on to say, "Mary, you always thought I needed initiation, didn't you? Well, you see I do not." The climax of my story is that in the summer of 1975, Malka called me and said, "Mary, I have seen the Master within, and He told me to be initiated as soon as possible." Malka has been coming to Satsang for at least twelve years—since I have known her. It seems that Beloved Master Kirpal was not to pick her up, but that the One who would come after Him was to be her Master, How Lord Shiva Directed Me to the Master Ram Sewak Sharma To begin with I was a devotee of Lord Shiva and for five or six years I continued to be a great devotee of his. I then went into the jungle, and for three days I was without food or water, lost in inner practices. This was in the Badiargarh district. During my meditations there Lord Shiva manifested himself, and said I needed a guru and directed me to Sant Kirpal Singh. This was in the year 1955, and I was twenty four years old at the time. After this I proceeded to Sawan Ashram. When I got there and sat for meditation I saw the form of Maharaj Ji, and behind Him stood Lord Shiva; he told me that Maharaj Ji was to be my Guru. I then requested Maharaj Ji for initiation, and He asked me to come two days later at the start of the month when it was initiation day. At the initiation after Maharaj Ji had given me the five charged Names, when I sat for meditation Baba Sawan Singh appeared within and told me that Kirpal Singh was of His very essence and that He was working through Him. Lord Shiva too appeared and took my hand and entrusted me to the care of Maharaj Ji. I was also blessed with a rich experience of the inner planes. When I related my experiences to the Master He patted How Lord Shiva Directed Me to the Master 91 me and congratulated me for being thus blessed. "You have got all that you could have wished for," He said. In those days. I could see the Master bathed in light before me wherever I was. In 1960 Swami Ji Shiv Dayal Singh began to appear within and I now had His Darshan along with Baba Sawan Singh and Maharaj Kirpal Singh. On the Master's instructions I was allotted some seva for the Sangat and continued to serve the Satsang to the best of my ability for the next ten years. In 1970 Maharaj Ji once remarked to me in Dehra Dun, "You have served the Sangat with great devotion; may you continue to do so to the end of your life in the same fashion. On 21st August 1974 at about 9:10 p.m., on closing my eyes I saw my Guru going away. An hour later the telephone rang and Mr. Kohli informed me that Maharaj Ji had indeed left the body. At that very moment Maharaj Ji manifested Himself before me and told me of the one through whom He would be carrying on His work. Earlier I had gone to see the Master on the 18th August. I saw the Radiant Forms of Swami Ji, Hazur Baba Sawan Singh and Maharaj Ji's successor, and They reassured me that all would be well. When I went in Maharaj Ji met me with great love and took my hand in His. As He lay so ill during those last days, Baba Sawan Singh in His Radiant Form would be beside Him and touch Him and bless Him and pat Him for the great and wonderful work He had accomplished. The three Great Masters, Swami Ji, Baba Sawan Singh, and Maharaj Ji, are still active, and They are now carrying on Their work. With the Master in Rishikesh Harbhajan Kaur When the Beloved Master, my respected Father-in-law, retired from Service in March 1947, after some time He went to live at Beas to be in the service of the Great Master. One year later Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji left the physical body, so Maharaj Ji came to stay with us in Delhi. After He had been with us for about two and a half months He started for the Himalayas, telling us that when He found a suitable place He would write to us and we could join Him there. After fifteen days of anxious waiting, the letter arrived telling us that Maharaj Ji was staying at Rani's Kothi in Rishikesh, and that we could join Him there. So Darshan Singh Ji, my husband, took leave from the office for one month, and together with my respected mother-in-law and our one and a half year old son, Raji, we went to stay with Him. There we found a simple house with a very calm atmosphere overlooking the river Ganges. Each day Maharaj Ji not only did a lot of meditation Himself but put us all into meditation also for long hours at a stretch, generally totalling six to eight or even ten hours a day; He would put His hand on our foreheads, and lovingly make us sit. In the breaks between meditations He With the Master in Rishikesh 93 would be with us, and we would all enjoy the natural beauty of the place glorified by His Divine Radiance. Sometimes He would humor us by doing a little household work. One day He told us that we should make the most of this time with Him because there would come a time when we would not be able to be with Him like this. Occasionally He would cook the vegetable for us. One day He said, "Now, let me make some chapatis for you," and we laughed as if He couldn't do it; but He said, "No, let me just try." And to our great surprise He made beautiful chapatis, and we all enjoyed them. He would ask us to bring large leaves from the trees for plates. It was a period of pure enjoyment. It was at this time that my husband took the photograph of Maharaj Ji sitting on one of the rocks in the river where He went to meditate. To get this photograph my husband had to wade into the river up to his waist. Photography was also my hobby, and Maharaj Ji very graciously allowed me to take a photograph of Him making chapatis, a photograph which has only turned up again after having been mislaid for twenty years. Sometimes Maharaj Ji would take us around to show us the beauties of nature, and on one occasion He took us to see Haridwar, the other nearby holy place on the Ganges. He also took us to see Dehra Dun which was later to become the place where Manav Kendra was to be built. At twilight Maharaj Ji would take us to sit outside the house and ask us to sing shabdas in praise of the Great Lord. I would sing, and Respected Tai Ji, who was also there at this time, would also sing. Afterwards, He would explain to us the inner meaning of the shabdas which was very illuminating. While we were staying in Rishikesh, the Beloved Master took us to visit many Ashrams; He was always looking for holy men and saints who could go to the higher planes inside. Although He met many holy men and sages there, He didn't come across anyone who could go very high inside except one; this was Yogi Raghuvacharya Ji who Maharaj Ji told us was a very high soul. Maharaj Ji was fond of walking, and sometimes in the mornings He would go for long walks alone, and sometimes He would take us along with Him. Whenever we got tired He would make us sit down and tell us some humorous stories about the 94 The Ocean of Grace Divine people of Rishikesh and its history. When He would (come across) Sadhus who had been living in the jungle for many years, He would tell us in His own way that if these Sadhus were still performing rituals—even in the jungle, and had not risen above in meditation—it was better to lead a normal family life. He would explain that wearing saffron robes and doing other superficial things would not help a person spiritually. The main part of Master's daily routine was taken up by meditation. As He was fond of very simple food no time was wasted in preparing the meals; there were only two meals a day; one in the morning and one in the evening. We always ate together with the Master. He used to play with Raji and amuse him by giving him different colored flowers which the child very much enjoyed. He would shower the child with love, and look into his eyes, and make the child look into His. My Respected Mother-in-law who was with us, was a very noble and loving soul greatly devoted to the Master. She used to relate to me the different aspects of His early saintly life, how He used to go out of the house at night to still His mind in lonely places, and sometimes would immerse Himself in tanks of water. She had great love and respect for the Master and she had great faith in Him. When the Master took charge of the spiritual work, He told my husband that the responsibility for looking after the family would now fall on him; this he accepted gladly. At that time my respected Mother-in-law came to live with us. She told Maharaj Ji that she would stay with us from now on if it was His wish, but she would very much like to die at His holy Feet. Her request was accepted; in fact she told me that Maharaj Ji had assured her that she should spend the last two years of her life with Him. This indeed came true; she lived with us for about twenty years—until her last two years—which she then spent at Sawan Ashram where she left the physical body in 1970. At the end of that month spent with Maharaj Ji in Rishikesh in 1948, we had to return to Delhi as my husband's leave was up. After some time the Master also left and rejoined us in Delhi, staying in our apartment. People then started visiting With the Master in Reshikesh 95 H i m early in the morning and they would stay until late at night, and He would pour out to them His spiritual treasures; His Mission had started. After a while He decided to build an Ashram. The number of people coming to the house had increased so rapidly that one day He told us in his own sweet words that His stay in our house had been very nice, and He appreciated our service to Him, but He told us that it was not possible to run an Ashram in the house, it was necessary that He should go and start an Ashram and work for the uplift of mankind. One day the Master was returning to our home where He was staying after coming back from Rishikesh. Our small son Raji was standing on the dining table. He loved Maharaj Ji so much that when the Beloved Master came in he rushed to meet Him, forgetting he was on a high table. He would have crashed to the floor had the Master not caught him in His arms. Maharaj Ji caressed the child and then He told us, "This is how you should throw yourself into the arms of your Guru; then the Guru must take care of you." As Maharaj Ji's Mission grew, it turned out as He had predicted at Rishikesh—we could never spend so much time again with Him in private; however, He would have His own way of showing His love for us whenever we went to see Him. Even when He was extremely busy He would shower us with His love in His own sweet way. Something I can never forget happened several times over the years. Maharaj Ji would call me into His room in the Ashram I would wait as He would go to the bookshelves and pick out a certain book, open the book, and show me a photograph which He kept in there; the photograph was of my husband and myself side by side when we were married. He would say, "Who is he? Who is she?" Such were His ways of showing His great love for us. Although the Master became extremely busy with His work, He would sometimes find time to come and visit us. We always ate simple food, and as He did not like spiced food we always knew what to serve Him. Even when He called unexpectedly I would hurriedly prepare a meal, and He would ask us to eat it with Him. We would like to have served Him on His own but 96 The Ocean of Grace Divine He always insisted that we sat by His side, and sometimes He Himself, with great love and affection, put the vegetables and chapatis on our plates. After taking His meal He would just sit calmly in His own way appreciating the atmosphere of the house and the simplicity of the food. And then He would tell us the benefits of leading a simple life and eating simple food. Sometimes Maharaj Ji would even come to visit us without informing us; He would immediately make Himself at home as if He was still living with us. The first thing He would do would be to sit in the drawing room on the sofa, and read the headlines of the newspapers that might be lying on the table. On one occasion he brought with Him a Jain Muni who picked up one of my husband's books; it was a rare book not easily available. The Muni became so fascinated with it that Maharaj Ji said, "Do you like this book?" The Muni answered that as it was such a rare book it had given him much pleasure to glance at. Maharaj Ji replied, "If you like it so much, and as it's not easily available, please take the book home with you." The Muni remarked that it was not only rare, but also a costly book, so before taking it he requested that the owner of the house be consulted. The Master asked, "Who is the owner of the house? I am the owner of the house, and I tell you to take it!" So that man took the book with pleasure, and our joy knew no bounds when we heard that the Master considered our house His own. The Supreme Being Rameshwar Dass Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj was no common saint. He was the Supreme Being in human form. Accordingly, He was possessed of all the attributes that we associate with the Creator. No one can describe His ineffable love for His disciples. I narrate here a few anecdotes which bring out some of the depth of His love and His Divinity. I received my initiation from the Master as early as 1949 at His residence in Radio Colony, Delhi. I had come from Rohtak with one Surat Singh on the assurance that Maharaj Ji would give me a glimpse of our Eternal Home. There were some twenty or more persons who were initiated with me, and after Naam, Maharaj Ji served us lunch. At initiation I failed to have any inner experience, and when everyone was gone, I told Surat Singh. Surat Singh encouraged me to bring up the problem with Maharaj Ji. I told Maharaj Ji, "My friend here assured me that You would give me a glimpse of my Divine Home. But that has not been my experience." "As for taking you up there," He said, "it could be done, but in your present condition you will not be able to stay there; nor when you come back would you be able to carry on The Ocean of Grace Divine with your normal life on earth." I then asked, "But would you indeed take me there at the time of my death?" Maharaj Ji said that assurance He had already given at the initiation. However, I need not have to wait till then, and He advised me to carry on regularly with my meditations as instructed. I returned home and sat down for meditation that evening. I soon entered into a state of samadhi and the Sound Current was so strong and so sweet that the three hours within seemed as three minutes. This went on from day to day, and a month later I visited Maharaj Ji. He asked me what I heard inside, and one by one He Himself mentioned the names of various musical instruments for me to confirm. That evening when I returned home, I could not here the Sound Current at all; it was the same from thence onwards: It was clear that whatever I had received, came from the Master by His grace, and He knew all that I was going through. Maharaj Ji once visited us at Rohtak. My wife and I felt privileged to serve Him. When serving Maharaj Ji with some rice pudding, I added salt in place of sugar. He ate it and said not a word. I realized my blunder when I had some myself and I felt terribly guilty. But our Sat Guru was very happy. Turning to my wife He said, "You can ask whatever you wish for." My wife replied that it was new moon that day and since it was dedicated to one's ancestors could Maharaj Ji secure their salvation? "Done!" said Maharaj Ji, and I was soon to have testimony of what He said. In vision one night my father's astral form came and embraced me. I began repeating the five charged Names; no sooner had I done this than his soul gave up its ghostly body and he was free to be reborn in the human form. On the same day, when He granted that boon, Maharaj Ji gave my wife a ten rupee bank note at parting. She said, "Maharaj Ji, if You must give it, then give it in in a way that it never runs out." He said, "All right." She went and placed it in a box, and whenever she was in need of money she would help herself from there and it would never run out. This went on for quite some time. One day she took the box for repair, and when she went to collect it later, the repairman giving it to her handed her four ten rupee bank notes which he had found inside. The Supreme Being On getting them she told him the story; thereafter there were no more bank notes! Some fifteen years ago Maharaj Ji visited Rohtak. He gave Satsang at our place, and was to grant initiation next morning. A local lawyer also came who was given not only to cheating his clients but also shopkeepers and trade-men. On seeing him arrive, I thought to myself: "A guru is said to take upon himself the karma of his disciples. With someone having such heavy karma, which guru would be ready to carry his load?" Maharaj Ji then turned to me and remarked that there was a lawyer in the group; I proceeded to warn Him against his misdeeds and enlarged upon all his ways. When I finished, Maharaj Ji said, "It is God Himself who grants Naam, and can any karma attach to God?" When the new initiates sat for meditation, this man was blessed with the Sound of the drum. Some ten years ago at the peak of summer, my daughter Sushila and her husband came to stay with me. Their son Sudhit, who was two and half years old, was out all day, playing in the sun. It was very hot and he probably got sun stroke. My sonin-law kept the fact from me and took the child in a room at the back. The boy showed no signs of life: the pulse had gone, the eyes were motionless, the head hung limp from the neck and the hands and feet had gone cold. I took the child and laid him out on a sofa in front of Maharaj Ji's photograph in our living room. I prayed intently and silently to Maharaj Ji: "If the boy does not survive, we would be shamed forever. Maharaj Ji You are our only hope. Please Maharaj Ji, save us." I then took the hand of the child in mine and began repeating the charged Names. A minute later, I could feel his pulse coming back, and a little later his eyeballs began to move. The child was then given a drink of water which he took. My son-in-law was extremely attached to his son. At the anguish of losing him he was knocking his forehead against the wall, and it seemed as though he would not stop till he had collapsed. His wife ran to him and announced that the child had revived. The child is still alive and well—and is a living testimony of Maharaj Ji's power and love. The Earnings Carried Forward After Death Mata Savitri Devi Singha After the Partition in 1949, my husband was transferred to Jamalpur in Bihar. He had a colleague, Mulkraj, who was a very dear soul. After we had been in Jamalpur six months I went to visit his home as he invited me to come for Satsang on Sunday morning. I was very interested in spirituality so I went. Mata Shiva conducted the Satsang, and there flowed such love from her that it filled me with sweetness. I now began going every Sunday, and took my children with me. One day on returning home I was filled with deep anguish. On sitting for meditation, something seemed to flow from my feet upwards. I began repeating the mantra I had from my previous guru and after some time I felt better. Next morning I visited Mulkraj Ji and related what had happened. He reassured me and asked me not to worry as such experiences were not unusual on the Path of Spirituality. "You will meet a great Master shortly," he told me. "And He will grant you initiation." My husband was then transferred to Bengal. Before we left I took Maharaj Kirpal Singh's address. But my husband fell ill and kept ailing for the next year; he was then transferred to Lucknow. It took some two months for my husband to recover. The Earnings Carried Forward After Death 101 His illness had prevented me from attending Satsang; but now that he was better, I found there was no local Satsang I could attend. I decided to write to Maharaj Ji. In six days I received a reply in His own hand. He asked me to carry on with whatever practice I had been doing. At the appointed time there would be an opportunity to meet, He assured me, and it would give Him much joy. I kept on writing to the Master and He always assured me that He would be glad to meet me when the time came. And so in 1952 the appointed moment arrived; the Master visited Lucknow. I went to meet Him and told Him of my problem— "Maharaj Ji, is it a sin to change from one guru to another? I have already been initiated, and I do not know what to do." He answered me saying, "An elementary school teacher cannot teach students in high school, can he? Whatever your first guru could give has already been given; it is no sin to seek initiation into something higher." When I came home and told my husband of my intention to get Naam, he told me that he would not permit it unless he was satisfied himself. And so that evening he went to meet Maharaj Kirpal Singh. When my husband got there, Maharaj Ji made him sit by His side and for the next two hours they were discussing spirituality. Meanwhile, I was anxiously awaiting my husband's return, and you may imagine my surprise when on coming home he announced that he too would take initiation. My son who was nineteen, also decided to join us; and so the three of us, along with six others from Lucknow, were all initiated by Maharaj Ji on that visit. The day we received Naam, an initiate of Baba Sawan Singh Ji came to see the Master. She wept and said that she would eat nothing unless, through His grace, He could enable her. to meet Hazur within. She sat down with us when the Master began giving His initiation instructions and went into meditation. When our initiation was over, she sat on for almost five hours. Finally, Maharaj Ji pressed her spine just below the neck and she came back to body consciousness and began weeping. "Why have You brought me down?" she sobbed, "I was with Hazur and was talking to Him." "It's all right," Maharaj 102 The Ocean of Grace Divine Ji reassured her, and turning to my husband remarked, "This is an inner science and not mere make-believe!" The Master visited Lucknow again in 1955. When His program was being discussed, every satsangi wanted to have the Master come and visit his home. The secretary of the Satsang brushed aside all the requests and declared that the Master would only visit the one who would meet all the Satsang expenses covering the Master's visit as well as being able to accommodate Him. I nudged my husband, and he offered to host the Master, and arrangements were made accordingly. We had a large bungalow and we prepared it for the Master's visit. On His arrival He looked at me, smiled and said, "You are happy now that I have come!" The next three days went by like a dream. Satsangis had come from far and near and we would have Satsang every day. In the evening Satsang on the last day, the Master remarked that wealth honestly earned and spent in the service of the Satguru was indeed an earning that one carried forward even after death. After dinner that night, with all the satsangis gathered there, the Master asked about the arrangements and the cost. The secretary explained how they had worked out things. "But you should all share the expenses," said the Master, "the burden should not fall on one man alone." Thereupon the satsangis present offered to share half the expenses, but my husband declined, and turning to the Master said, "But Maharaj Ji, You Yourself told us in the Satsang today that whatever we spent on our Guru was our sole earning after death. Whatever I have is by Your grace, so do not press me to part with the little that I have earned through this service." My husband had great love for the Master, and the Master was pleased to bless us with His grace. In the summer of 1956, Master was staying in Rajpur at His bungalow. It was Guru Puja Day on which devotees honor their gurus. Remembering my own Master, I walked over in the early morning to have His darshan, and sat down quietly on the front veranda. It was 7:00 in the morning, and Tai Ji soon emerged in a huff. "You disciples don't let the saints be in peace," she scolded me. "You hold them in perpetual bondage!" I was touched to the quick and quietly got up, returned home and wept The Earnings Carried Forward After Death 103 copiously. I said to myself that after this reprimand I would not even go for Maharaj Ji's evening darshan. To my surprise the young girl living with me at that time came running to announce at about 4:00 in the afternoon that the Master was approaching with three others. I rushed to welcome Him. On seeing Maharaj Ji all my anguish and heartbreak was forgotten. He was all grace, and looking at me said, "You are always welcome at my place. You come whenever you like. Don't take what Tai Ji said to heart. Her words were not really meant for you." He spent a whole hour with us that day. At the end He said, "You are happy now, are you not?" Once in 1962 when the Master was returning from Rajpur to Delhi, I had gone to have His last darshan, and stood in the veranda while His car waited ready in the porch. When the Master came out He turned to me and said, "You are unable to come to Delhi, and I am unable to stay here in Rajpur." With these words He went in, and a little later, was out again, got into the car and was off. I kept wondering to myself over the Master's words. It was true that I wanted to be with Him but I was also tied to worldly obligations. I wished to go and yet felt obliged to stay on. But there He was drawing me to Himself, and such was the urge I felt to be near Him that within three days I found myself at Delhi too. When the Master saw me He exclaimed, "So you have come!" I stayed at the Ashram for several days and partook of His boundless love and grace. On another similar occasion, when I reached the Ashram the Master welcomed me with great warmth. Turning to Mohan, His driver, the Master said, "Please see that Mata Singha has her food." I had a packed meal with me. "Oh," said the Master, "I will have your food instead. I want you to have a freshly cooked meal." I laughed and went off. It was only when Mohan reminded me that I should obey my Master that I returned and had my meal at the Master's house. My Year with The Master Vimla Bhagat I was among one of the first batches of initiates of the Master. In the first half of 1949, when I was seventeen years old, I decided to go in for Naam. I told myself that if there was no Supreme Being I would lose nothing; and if there was one I would be the beneficiary. The Master, one was told, takes care of all our burdens and does not leave us till the end of the world and beyond. But why Maharaj Kirpal Singh for a Guru? My father who had searched far and wide, assured me this was the highest path. He himself was an initiate of Baba Sawan Singh and was now helping with the Master's Mission at Delhi. As for myself, I saw nothing special in the Master. To me He seemed to be a human being just like anyone of us who had received parshad or some gift from his Master and had started distributing it to others. After initiation I hardly ever sat down for meditation with the full confidence that whatever we may do the Master never deserts His disciples. And so the years rolled by. I completed my education, got a good job, settled in marriage, and had children. Though I was in Delhi, it was only occasionally that I would visit Sawan Ashram for His blessings and parshad. Every time I would meet Him, He would inquire My Year with the Master 105 about the time I gave for meditation and would sweetly exhort me to give some time to it. I would just nod my head but do nothing about it back home. The Master lets you have the world to your fill. When the cup breaks with the burden of the world, then you start seeing around you—seeing something more than the mere space enclosed by the cup. It was in the beginning of 1973 that I finally turned my face towards Him, and behold, I found in Him the Master who is more than a human being, the Father of all mankind, nay God Himself come down on earth in the garb of man to lead us back Home. In fact, I now realized that He had made His mortal frame a perfect instrument for His Will, responding to the call of each one of His disciples, be it in Satsang, at a personal meeting or even while you are working away at your own hearth. Any amount of praise that I may shower on Him would fall short of His glory and grace. He would not only talk, but also convey His mind to us at a distance through His glances and loving looks, as if He had established a deep rapport with each one of us and had the welfare of each one at heart. Seeing His glory, my only regret was that I had come to Him, in the real sense of the term, rather late. He had entered the evening of His life and would keep ailing. Something in me told me that He would not be with us for long. Still it was a great blessing to have begun to perceive first hand His Godliness. When I got the news of His passing away on the evening of 21st August, 1974, it did not shake me; it was as if the foreseen event had come about in due course of time. It is only now that I miss His presence. But whenever I am miserable, He sends feelers and reassures me that He is always with me. And so my experiences of Him as the Master range over a period of no more than a year. During this time I started calling on Him once a fortnight. Every time I would go there I would get something unique from Him. What it was cannot be described in words. At best one can only point to a few incidents. Whenever I had any doubts or any questions He would answer me from within. It quite intrigued me. On a few occasions, I found that something in me other than myself was giving directions and guidance in my day-to-day life. Whenever I was 106 The Ocean of Grace Divine on the point of making a mistake or a slip, He would come to my rescue. This sense of outside guidance began to bother me. I wondered If I was becoming possessed. Was I being reduced to a puppet through such outside manipulation? I was no longer my own master but someone else had taken over control of me. I was very much perturbed by these happenings. As usual, I went to see the Master after a few days. While He was going through some papers and talking to someone else, He looked towards me suddenly and s a i d : Oh tuhada naukar hai. Dhela paisa vi nahin lehnda, te tuhada kam piya karda hai. Oh naukar changa hai na, jehra bagair akhe de tuhada kam karda hai. He is your servant. He takes no wages and is working for you. Isn't He a good servant, who works for you without even being asked? He repeated it a second time, then a third time till it sank home and set at rest all doubts about the nature of my relationship with the Master. Soon afterwards preparations began for the World Conference on the Unity of Man, which was to coincide with the Master's birthday. Having witnessed His greatness, it made me wonder why the Master was celebrating His birthday on such a scale, when He should be above such things. This idea kept rankling in my mind. When I went to the Ashram next, the Master was busy with the preparations and was giving instructions. In between He turned to me and said, as though directly answering my question: "The Sangat wants to celebrate my birthday on a grand scale. After all, what is there in a birthday celebration? It isn't becoming. So I thought of calling a World Conference on the Unity of Man. This way the sentiments of the Sangat get respected, and it does not sound odd." On another occasion, when I went to the Ashram, my father had asked me specifically to inquire after the Master's health on his behalf. There was a small gathering of around fifteen people, most of whom were foreigners. I joined them in a semicircle in the veranda where the Master was sitting. He inquired about me, my health and my father's health. As I was about to open my mouth to convey my father's solicitations, He started My Year with the Master 107 talking to someone else. After a while He again inquired about me and my father's health. Just as I was about to speak He started talking to another satsangi. It went on for some time like this and I thought He was too busy to listen to what I had to say. After all, I could see how well or ill He was. In the end, when I looked around, I found that I had moved towards the centre of the semicircle while making attempts to convey the solicitations; everyone else was at a distance in the semicircle. During my next visit when He saw me, He gave a chuckle with a twinkle in His eyes as if He said, "See how I played with you last time." Now when I look back at my association with Him over the last year, He seems to be the Krishna who would tease the gopis and play little pranks with them. He was the Flute Player who had thousands of gopis dancing around Him whom He enchanted with the music of His eyes. On another occasion, when I had gone to see Him, I had to wait outside in the veranda. He was calling the visitors in one by one who wanted to talk to Him. I seldom had anything specific to say to Him. In my mind I was cross with the Master— "He is sitting inside," I said to myself, "calling in one by one only those who want to talk to Him. I have nothing to say. Why doesn't He come outside and talk to them here? Then people like me can have His darshan and listen to what He has to say to others." Just then Mata Sheila came with two ladies who brought a box of sweets to be blessed by the Master. All those ladies went straight in. I felt even more frustrated and cross and said to myself, "So there goes my chance of parshad today for they have gone in with the box of sweets and I am sitting outside." Just then the Master got up from His seat, brought those ladies outside where we were sitting, gave them His blessings and two sweets each from the box. Then He asked them if there was any other member of their family to whom He should give parshad. As He was talking He picked up one ladoo and stealthily threw it across to me right in my hands in an underhand manner and returned the box to the owner. Mind you, there were half a dozen others who were sitting around me and I was the only one who got a ladoo as parshad that day. I occasionally prepare Sohan Halwa, a rather special 108 The Ocean of Grace Divine North Indian sweet, and it comes out very well. One day as I started cooking it I remembered the Master and began talking to myself, "I will carry it and offer it to Him as parshad...But He doesn't eat anything of others. It is so tasty and I make it so well. He should eat it and pay me in cash for it if He must. No, He won't pay me in cash, He will have to pay in kind. When He eats one piece of it, He will get burdened by so many of my karmas and He will have to pay for it through His own goodness. So that is why He does not eat our food. . .Anyway, I will give it to Him and tell Him to take at least one piece." When I called on Him the following day I carried the box of Sohan Halwa with me. He was sitting in the livingroom. After He had talked to those present, they left one by one. The next batch was being called in. When I saw that no one was around, I quickly took out the box from my bag, opened it out before Him. Without my saying a word, He picked up a small piece and started eating it. On coming out of the room, my father who too was with me, remarked, "I have never seen Him eating the sweets that the disciples bring, but today He took your Sohan Halwa." May father, of course, knew nothing of my heart-to-heart talk with the Master while I was preparing the Halwa the day before. The Master's Power Allan Hudson The best tribute I can offer is to describe the Power of the Master. I had searched diligently for thirty-five years to find the Truth. I had been to many churches and had been a member of the Theosophical Society for many years and had read all the literature I could find on the subject, when early in 1963 I was given a copy of "Divine Life Magazine" in which there was an article about Master Kirpal Singh. I tore the page out and kept it. Since there had been so much talk in the Theosophical Society about clairvoyance, I decided to go to Rishikesh to see Swami Sivananda who was head of an Ashram there, and with this intention I took a ship from Australia on September 2, 1963, calling enroute at Ceylon, Several days later I was informed that Swami Sivananda had departed this world. I was rather bewildered, but cabled to Bombay to have a seat reserved for me on the train to Rishikesh. On arrival in Bombay I was informed by the agent that he had only booked me as far as Delhi. Arriving at Delhi on the evening of September 14th, 1963 I felt very strongly urged to go to Master Kirpal Singh's Ashram; it seemed the logical and intelligent thing to do. Arriving there I was perplexed again; the 110 The Ocean of Grace Divine Master was away on tour and would not be back for three months! I soon discovered the reason for this. I had not been eating meat, but had been eating eggs, and there these months were my cleansing period so that when Master returned I was ready for initiation, which Master gave me in a special sitting two days before His birthday. I had some excellent experiences. Two days later I sat in on initiation of some three hundred people. It was my very Special privilege to sit at His Holy Feet for a further eight months. I then returned to be His representative in Australia, and by His grace, I passed on the holy teachings to fifteen others. When I left Australia I had no intention whatever of going to Delhi, but the marvelous Power and Will of the Master drew me to Him against my own puny will. Now, instead of lamenting His passing, let us thank the Almighty God that He led us to His Holy Feet. It is for all disciples to help others to break their "bondage in Egypt" so that "Moses" the Master, may call them to freedom also; He would rend the "Temple veil" and their two selves would meet each other face to face. His Ways Are Miraculous G. L. Kohli Maharaj Ji used to say that if we knew how much He loved us, we would dance with joy. How can a child comprehend the love and protection of the Father! In 1966 I developed kidney trouble and suffered constant pain in the left kidney. On x-ray examination it was found that there was a stone there. I went to Maharaj Ji, showed Him the x-ray, and begged for His mercy. He advised me to take up homeopathic treatment, which I immediately started, but there was no relief. A satsangi sister who knew my trouble, brought a prescription and gave it to me in the presence of the Master. The Master bade me to try it—it was a mixture of some herbs to be boiled and then taken a glassful at a time. I took it for three to four days, and on inquiry from the Master about its efficacy I said that the medicine was of a very bitter taste. The Master said, "If by my drinking this bitter medicine you get cured, give it to me—I will drink it for you!" Every time He went outside Delhi He would, on return, tell me that He had brought some new medicine for me. In short, in this way, a full year passed by. Then one day I urinated blood, and seeing this, I resolved that I must go in for an operation. So I went to the Master and beg- 112 The Ocean of Grace Divine ged Him to permit me to undergo the operation. He lovingly consoled me and gave the required permission saying that there was nothing to fear—it was just a minor operation. The day I had to enter the hospital, I went to the Master; He was sitting in His room. I told Him that I was entering the hospital. He gave me such a loving glance that I was over whelmed. He stretched His arm, and pointing with His finger, told me that they will cut like this and take away the stone. The next day I was operated upon. In the evening the surgeon who had performed the operation came to the ward, and standing beside my bed told me, "Mr. Kohli, in normal cases this operation takes about three hours, but in your case it took us just thirty-five minutes!" And then stretching his arm and pointing with a finger exactly as the Master had done, he said, "We cut like this and took out the stone." Like lightning it occurred to me that it was THE MASTER SPEAKING. I was so overwhelmed I could not speak a word, and my whole body was charged with His loving divine radiation. With great difficulty I could only thank the doctor. After a week I was discharged from the hospital. On reaching home I told my wife that I would go for Master's darshan. So in spite of the surgeon's instructions not to walk, I went all the way on foot to the Ashram. When I reached the Ashram and was about to enter the Master's gate, He came out and inquired why I had come in that condition—He was Himself coming to see me! He took out a piece of paper from His pocket and showed me. My name was written on top of some other names. He was going to visit that day. He then brought me back in His car to my place. On the way, I told Him what the surgeon had said. Master smiled and replied, "Why should they take long? They did not have to look for the stone." The Naming Of Jonathan Fay March When the Great Master Kirpal Singh Ji sent a telegram with all His blessings and the name for our son Paul, Olga wisely counselled not to say anything in order to avoid the possibility of troublesome outsiders. As it turned out, the trouble came from my own husband whose initial love and wonder quickly turned to hatred for this unusually beautiful boy. He began by being jealous of the visitors and satsangis who came to the hospital to see me and the baby. Despite the fact that our family has been blessed in hundreds of ways, the seeming antagonism by his earthly father toward the innocent child Paul increased, even as he grew into a most precious toddler. And so it happened that little Paul begged our Father God to send down his most beloved friend. The request was granted and a younger brother was soon to be born. As the day for delivery drew near, I longed for more meditation time in order to figure out how to avoid repeating the unpleasantness, yet wanting Master's blessing, and again the proper name for the babe. However, managing a large active family, and preparing for my absence made each day seem fuller than the last. As it turned out, false labor gave me an undis- 114 The Ocean of Grace Divine turbed ten hours in the hospital, where my husband dozed peacefully and I gratefully meditated. Bathed in Master's Light, we were at last sent home. My mind was at rest for I knew all would go well. A Holy Presence stood beside me that night when we returned to the hospital for delivery. The miracle of birth itself is always accompanied by religious revelations. And this was no exception. When a clear familiar voice announced, "His name is Jonathan," my heart was filled with joy. But having been a skeptical scientific person, I thought—what if He is referring to some attendant in the room—so I asked, "Whose name?" Those who know Master can hear this answer, "Tisk! The baby's!" We had no long list of preferred names ready this time, but I left it all up to the Master, while my husband wrote down combination after combination, which he rejected. After three days, he came up with the finalists, which included Jonathan. When he showed me the piece of paper with everything crossed out but Jonathan, I silently gave thanks once more that the Grace of the Master is always overhead guiding all things, large and small. And due to being admitted to the hospital twice in one day, no record was made of my presence, so I had no visitors —no cause for jealousy—and plenty of time alone for meditation. Thank you again Beloved Master. Perfection in all its Aspects Ram Prakash Bahl I was initiated by the Master at Sawan Ashram in May 1964. At the time of initiation, He put me a direct question, "Have you understood the teachings and are you convinced that this is the right Path?" With all humility I replied, "Yes," and I was accepted and the dream of a lifetime was fulfilled. From the day of initiation, I began working hard on the Path by putting in regular time for meditation, maintaining the self-introspection diary and attending Satsang. All this resulted in abundant and bountiful grace of the Master in all spheres of my life. My meditations were fruitful and I was blessed with wonderful visions, especially of the past Masters. That was all in the beginning of my spiritual career, but now the effort has somewhat slackened with the passage of time—though not the grace. In my family, I was the first to be initiated. Subsequently, Master's grace was extended to other members as well, thus creating a congenial environment for me to pursue the path. After initiation I had a great longing for selfless service in the vineyard of the Master, preferably for some literary work or help with the Master's correspondence. I did not get an oppor- 116 The Ocean of Grace Divine tunity for a long, long time. But when the opportune moment came, there was a call from the Master Himself at Satsang: "Some educated person is wanted who can give an English rendering of my Satsang talks." This was in 1968 when the English Sat Sandesh was being started in India, and with His grace, I could begin to fulfill my dream of seva. Two years later when the magazine began being published in America, I was asked to help with the correspondence work. Master reads our hearts and graciously accepts what we have to offer. My work for the Master brought me nearer to Him, and I got the unique opportunity to understand something of His towering spiritual personality from different angles—of course, only to the extent to which He chose to reveal Himself. Otherwise, who can understand a Perfect Master? Maharaj Ji would always encourage those who helped with the Satsang work. I vividly remember the day when I showed Him my first set of correspondence drafts for approval. He patted me warmly on the back and said, "The trend is o.k. Go ahead with the work." That was boost enough for me to carry on with the office work in the Ashram in the years that lay ahead. Whenever I carried the typed correspondence to Him for His perusal and signature, I would take a corner seat in the room and listen to Him with full attention. Left alone, the Saints utter very important Truths. I still remember how on one occasion, the Master in response to a question, said: "Women and Gold are the greatest hindrances on the Spiritual Path. Even if you find them in a jungle, never lay your hand upon them." He could be amazingly frank and direct when answering satsangis about their problems. Once a person complained about his own ill health, and the Master straight away replied, "Observe brahmacharya (continence) and everything will be all right!" He would not mince His words and would repeatedly warn those around Him against the materialism of the world. "Wherever you go you will only find business," He would say. "No truth, no reality, and no spirituality. There is only vested interest." The Master Power affords constant protection to the disciple. Once I had gone to the Ashram for Satsang and during Perfection in all its Aspects 117 my absence a burglar tried to break into my home. He attempted to force the lock, but thanks to the Master, he was unsuccessful in spite of his best efforts. Twice in my life I was saved from what could have been a fatal accident—and this only by His boundless grace. If anyone was in the grip of suffering or had suffered some misfortune, the Master was there to give His ineffable sympathy. Once a satsangi came to the Ashram with four sons suffering from polio. His eyes were overflowing with tears, and the Master in His graciousness gave him great consolation and massaged the legs of his children as if to tone down the severity of their past karmas. I remember a lady suffering from terrible body pains praying to the Master for relief The Master smiled and said, "The elephant was gone through and now only the tail remains" —and it was not long after that the lady died. But for all His gentleness and compassion, the Master could be stern and firm when the situation demanded. He would reprimand initiates who would give various excuses for not getting on with their holy meditations. Once a lady, giving such excuses, said to the Master, "It is perhaps the Higher Will that we are not in a position to do Simran and Bhajan." The Master immediately retorted: "Please do not deceive yourself. It is the will of your treacherous mind, and not the Master's. He always wishes the satsangis to progress on the Way by putting in all their efforts." Long before the Master left the earth-plane, I was granted a vision of His physical departure. I, however, did not take it to heart because I never thought that I would live to see the day. But in different ways, especially during the final phase, He was preparing us for what was to come. One evening, while addressing a group of foreign satsangis, He warned them, "Time is very short. Develop inwardly as far as you can. This is the true achievement. Intellectual understanding and bookish knowledge, however great, will not help. They are all wilderness!" Just as we cannot do justice to the glory of God, we cannot likewise do justice to that of a Godman like our Great Master. He was Perfection in all its aspects and His life is an example for each one of us to illumine our way. The Grace of the Master Sunnie Cowen At the end of November 1963 when the Master was on His second tour and visiting Chicago, He was asked to stay at my home at St. Petersburg Beach, Florida. Truly I was happy to be having Him and His entourage. He called me into His room one evening—I believe it was the day before I left for St. Petersburg. He said in His sweet beautiful way, "Sunnie, do you have any help there?" I replied with ego, "Oh, yes Master, don't worry about it!" And He merely smiled and said, "That's all right." When I came down to St. Petersburg, I telephoned the woman who helped me two or three times a week and asked her on the phone, "I have just returned to St. Petersburg, and I need your help as the Great Master will be coming." She answered me saying, "I am sorry, Mrs. Cowen, but I have my regular families and I cannot come now for this is Christmas time and they will be giving me gifts." I answered her, "What will these gifts mean to you when it is the Great Master who is coming with such blessings to bestow on you?" But she said, "No, I must work for them." Then she said, "Wait a minute. My sister-in-law from Georgia came in last night and I'll ask her if she'll help you." I could hear much discussion going on while she talked to The Grace of the Master 119 her sister-in-law. Finally, she came back to the phone and told me, "My sister-in-law can give you only one day a week as she has come to Florida to help some other family." I thanked the Lord and Master Power; one day a week was better than nothing. Time was short and I wanted to get ready for the Beloved Master and His entourage. She came about 9:00 the next morning, and with her arms folded, said, "I can only give you one day a week as I'm to take care of some other family daily!" I replied, "Good. Here is everything." I told her to go to the first bedroom, and that I would help her immediately. Before I had a chance to get to the bedroom, I heard all the things drop on the tile floor. Running in, I exclaimed, "What happened?" She was sitting on a chair, and pointing to the Beloved Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj's picture on the dresser, she asked, "Who is He?" I explained, "Why, that's the Master! It is because of Him that I want this place perfect!" Controlling herself, she said, "If you promise never to tell my sister-in-law, I will tell you why I am here." I promised her I would not reveal her name or her sister-in-law's name, and so, now, I will call her Mary. This is her story. Mary told me she dreamed of the Master for three nights in a row. He said, "Go to St. Petersburg—there is a woman that needs you. Help her!" She told me she had either five or six children (I can't remember how many) and a husband. She had never left the State of Georgia and she was working at Christmas time for her families there; but, after the third night, she left her husband, children and the families she served to come to St. Petersburg, for she felt that she must. When I think of this my heart overflows with love of how the Great Master knew and knows when we poor mortals think that we are aware of everything. Our egos—how they must be killed! Mary came about 7:30 a.m. every morning, and that dear soul never left until 10:30 or 11:00 at night. We not only turned mattresses over, washed windows, and aired the place; we worked outside on the lawn in seeding the earth, watering it, and doing many other things. With the time passing so quickly, before we knew it, Master telephoned me and asked if He could come the next day as He wanted to stay at our house on the beach. 120 The Ocean of Grace Divine The day that Master arrived dear Mary looked so beautiful in her spanking white apron, while I, as usual, had on slacks and my hair was in curlers. When the Master came in the door, the first words I heard Him say were, "Well, Mary, I see that you got here." Later Master spoke to her for a half hour. While He was talking to her, one of the satsangis interrupted and said, "Master, Master, the Mayor is waiting for You in St. Petersburg." And Master replied in such a beautiful way with His wonderful smile, saying, "All children are important." I will never forget that. When they went on to the Mayor's office, Mary's face was radiant. Mary wanted to tell me what Master had said, but I told her no; I felt His words were just for her alone. We left for Miami on New Year's Day in 1964, but this blessed soul worked with me and some other friend of hers until about 11:30 on New Year's Eve with such joy and happiness that my soul still thrills as to what the Master Power does in such a loving and kind way. Those were such beautiful blessed moments. I'd also like to relate another incident which illustrates the grace of the Master. A few years ago in New York I was in meditation when Master spoke to me inside. He wanted me to call Ruth Carr, who is a disciple of His in St. Petersburg. I telephoned Ruth, and she was crying. She explained that her son, Dr. Carr, was dying from cancer of the throat, and they were taking him to the hospital to give him severe treatment. She was extremely upset but I said, "Ruth, have you forgotten what our Master says? He takes care of seven generations past and seven generations to come. Now you have faith, and telephone any news later." The following morning she telephoned, and I'll never forget what she told me. She said that they had taken her son into the hospital and strapped him down on a bed. A nurse was standing by him who was about to pull the lever to start this intensive cobalt therapy which would burn through his throat. As she was about to pull the lever, a voice came from the microphone which was placed above the bed. It said, "Rescind that order!" Now Dr. Carr heard it, and the nurse heard it. She still tried to pull the lever, but could not press it down. She tried again, but at the same time the voice came again, "Rescind that The Grace of the Master 121 order!" When Dr. Carr heard that, he said, "I'm signing out of this hospital, and left. The doctors attending him pleaded with him to come back, explaining that this was a serious matter and that this intensive treatment had to be given. But he had heard the voice, and he had seen that the nurse couldn't pull the lever. The doctors persisted in their requests to readmit him to the hospital, assuring him that they would give him any treatment he wished. When he later signed himself in again, and when they were taking more tests, the doctors found that the cancer had been cured. Dr. Carr is alive and well and an example of the mercy extended by the gracious Master to an initiate's family. Hazur's True Successor Chandra Batra It was a long time after my Guru Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj had left the physical body before I started going to Sawan Ashram to see Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj. During the intervening years there were all sorts of difficulties. It was not until about 1953 that I went to see Sant Kirpal Singh, although He had sent me several messages. But I was stubborn and ignorant of the fact that the Master Power was working on earth at that time through His Holiness. So I refused to go and see Him. The inner desire of being close to the Master and attending true Satsang was very strong, but outwardly I just wouldn't go. I thought Sant Kirpal Singh was a great soul, but not my Guru. One day I was in a bus passing some houses when I saw an old brother satsangi from Beas sitting in one of those houses — I immediately jumped off the bus and went to talk to him. I was so happy to see again my brother in faith; I asked him where in Delhi I could get good Satsang. He whispered to me, "Dear Sister, If you want real Satsang then go to Sawan Ashram—Sant Kirpal Singh is the only one who has the Guru Power." This old man was an initiate of Baba Jaimal Singh Ji Maharaj, and I Hazur's True Successor 123 used to see him very close to our Satguru Baba Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj. I believed his words. I went twice to Sawan Ashram without being able to see the Master—I felt this to be a kind of punishment for me because I had been refusing to go for so long. But the third time I went He was there, and He gave me such a warm welcome—I can never describe it. I apologized to Him for not coming to have His darshan for so many years. He replied so sweetly, "If a child leaves home in the morning, and returns late having been delayed on the way, won't the father wait patiently and greet him lovingly when he returns?" I explained that some of the satsangis had told me that he was not the true Guru but Kal—the negative power. The Master gave a big smile of love, and told me, "Then you should be repeating the five charged Names!" I replied, "There is no need for that. Now I am satisfied and I will never make such a mistake again." The Master assured me that there was always a place for me and that I was welcome to come for His darshan any time I wished. So I began going regularly to the Ashram. Shortly after this I felt very sad to think there was no one left in this world to call me by my first name—only Baba Sawan Singh and my husband used to call me Chandra, and both of them had left this world. Next day when I went to see the Master, I found Him busy with His mail. But He immediately took off His reading glasses, and started talking to me. The first thing He asked me was what I wished to be called: "What did Hazur call you?" Tai Ji then said, "Don't you remember, Hazur always called her by her first name?" The Beloved Master said, "All right, I will call you Chandra." I felt so deeply moved to think that my longing would be fulfilled. During an initiation at the July Bhandara in memory of my Master Baba Sawan Singh Ji, I was quietly standing at one side and I was praying intently that I might have the darshan of my own Master Baba Sawan Singh, although I knew I was quite unworthy to receive such a great gift. Suddenly the Master Kirpal Singh passed close to me and told me that I could sit in with those being initiated if I wished. So I went in and sat through the initiation, and there I was blessed with the Radiant Form of 124 The Ocean of Grace Divine Baba Sawan Singh within. Master asked what each person had seen within, but He did not ask me. But in the evening when the Master visited the langar (kitchen) where I was serving He very sweetly came up to me and asked me what I had seen that morning. When my son was a college student there were some disturbances in which he became involved against his will. The Principal penalized him and other students by not recognizing their examination papers and withholding the certificates. This was done even though my son sent in a written apology. It was of course a terrible blow, and I went to the Master for help. The Master told me I should go and see the Principal who was a missionary, and point out to him that he had come to India to help people, and to reconsider what he had done and not ruin my son's career. But the Principal would not listen to my plea. On the Master's advice I made a second appeal, but it was as fruitless as the first. The Master then told me, "All right, don't worry, God is over your head." A few days later the newspapers carried the news that the authorities had decreed that all missionary teachers should leave the country within thirty-six hours. When my son and I showed this news to the Master He calmly and smilingly said that there was still time for this man to change his mind, and we should make a last appeal to him. This we did, and he gave my son his certificate. When we went to thank the gracious Master He told us a story about Baba Sawan Singh. A widow whose son had been falsely accused of murder came to Hazur weeping bitterly to beg for His help. The Judge in the case was a satsangi, and Hazur asked him to review the case. The Judge said that when he was at Beas he was a satsangi, but that when in Court he was the Judge, and that he could not remit the death sentence. Hazur told the widow to lodge an appeal; the case was reopened and her son found innocent. When the mother and son went to Beas to thank the Master, that Judge was also there. Hazur lovingly said, "Bibi, it is all due to the grace of my Master, Baba Jaimal Singh. You know, we never depend on worldly Judges, we have our own Lord, the Supreme One overhead." The Power of a Sat Guru Hiro K I think it was in 1957 that I took to liquor. I was a little over twenty at the time, and word reached my father. When I returned one night I found the door bolted and my father told me, "I dislike a drunkard son in the house." Next morning I promised my father that from that day I would neither drink nor have meat, and asked for his blessings in this. Two ladies in our neighborhood had given me two photographs, one of Baba Sawan Singh and the other of Maharaj Charan Singh of Beas. When after work I went to bed, I would look at the picture of Baba Sawan Singh. From then on I would pray to Him; and after the way my father reprimanded me and the rest of the family made fun of me over liquor, I prayed to Him to save me and to bless me. During the same year, Maharaj Charan Singh visited the Bombay area. A satsangi told me of this and knowing my keenness, informed me that though no group initiation was planned, he had arranged for me to have Naam by myself. "There is going to be special Naam for brother Hiro," he said. I was happy and we agreed to depart by the morning train from our town, Ulhasnagar, for Bombay. I got up early next morning and had my bath, and seeing me bathe this early my father asked me 126 The Ocean of Grace Divine what I was about. I told him of my intentions, and he said very firmly, "Now stop it. You aren't going, my good fellow. You are still young and not even married. If you want Naam you may have it when you get old." So I went to my friend and told him that my father would not grant his permission and that I would not go. He looked rather sad and said, "All right. You must be an unlucky person—it was being granted specially for you." A few days later it so happened that Sant Kirpal Singh Ji also toured the region and came not only to Bombay but to Kalyan. I found myself helping with the langar, cutting vegetables, cleaning rice, washing, etc. The others thought I must be an initiate, working in that manner, but were surprised when on the third day they found me among the candidates for initiation. With the blessing of the Great Master, I saw Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji along with Him at initiation and was overjoyed. When taking Naam I was rather worried about returning home. I pictured my father losing his temper and abusing me. My problem was postponed because, on the suggestion of one of my satsangi brothers, I went off to Bombay with the satsangis who had come with the Master. This way I was able to spend a night with the Master. When I came back five days later, to my great surprise, my father said not a word about my absence. Such was the grace of my Sat Guru. As I was apprehensive about having taken Naam without my father's permission, I made it a point to sleep by myself so that no one would see me meditating early in the morning. If my parents were sleeping in the open outdoors in the summer, I slept inside; and when they moved in during winter, I moved out. I would often pick up a photograph of my Master and pray, "Sat Guru, please draw my father to Your Feet. Please see that he, too, comes on the Path." Though my father never spoke of it to me, within three months he was asking a neighbor to take him to Maharaj Ji's Satsang. He got so absorbed that I would borrow tapes of the Master so that my father could hear them. Another three months and he decided to take Naam and proceeded to Delhi for initiation. We had a small manufacturing unit for making medicines at the time. Such was the Master's grace that our business ex- The Power of a Sat Guru 127 panded and each year saw it grow. My father made it a practice to attend the 27th July Bhandara at Delhi while I would go for the one marking Maharaj Ji's birth in February. We could not travel together because one of us had to be there to attend to the business. Thus it was that my father came to Delhi in July 1971. Maharaj Ji was in the nursing home having had an operation. He managed to go in to see the Master and was so touched by His state of health that as the Master lay fast asleep he sat down and spontaneously prayed to Baba Sawan Singh: "Please take my life and restore life and health to the Master for suffering humanity." That was on 11th July, and Hazur heard his prayer. On the 13th at 3 a.m. my father died suddenly. The next day, Maharaj Ji getting better, was discharged and unexpectedly returned to the Ashram. My father had been the Satsang President in our area. After he left us, the satsangis chose me to carry on in his place, but I managed to get involved in some petty quarrels and was no longer regular in attending Satsang and Satsang duties. In 1972 when Master visited Baroda to lay the foundation stone for Manav Kendra, I was also there. In the presence of some twenty five satsangis, the Master turned to me and said, "You see, I am looking to each and every step of yours, minute by minute; but you are not looking to me. You can't see me, but I am always seeing you." It was as though He was reprimanding me, and when I found Him alone, I begged Him, "Bless me despite whatever I may have done, good or ill." He answered, "No, what you are doing is not right. Go to each and every satsangi who is not attending the Satsang or who is sick. You must love all of them and I will see how far you can do this when I visit the center next time." I told Him that I did not have the strength and that He would Himself have to accomplish this. Master laughed and blessed me. From that day, though I don't know how to account for it, Satsang work at our center has gone from strength to strength. There is so much love and goodwill among the brothers and sisters there. The following year I went with a group of some forty satsangis to Sawan Ashram. The Master was happy to meet us and said, "Now at last you are working." Laughing He would ad- 128 The Ocean of Grace Divine dress me as, "Our Kalyan director." One day, turning to me, He suddenly asked, "What is your name?" I was taken by surprise. "Had the Master forgotten me?" I asked myself, and replied in a matter of fact way, "Hiro." He said, "You know the meaning of hira?" I did not follow what He was driving at, and He went on, "You have to be a hira or diamond not merely in name: you must prove it through your work." I was so abashed and so taken by what the Master said that I just ran away and did not stop until I got to the bridge outside the Ashram. How was I to live up to what the Master wanted of me! While with the Master I reminded Him that He had not been to our part of the country for some three years. He graciously agreed to come and drew up a program. Four days were marked off for Bombay and one for Ulhasnagar. I requested Him, "Master, could we possibly have two days instead of one?" He agreed and said, "Gome to Baroda." And so I found myself with some brothers and sisters in Baroda when the Master visited Manav Kendra there. He was to come on to Bombay thereafter, and on the day we were to depart, the Baroda group leader handed us the train tickets rather late. Those with me were keen to meet the Master before departing but He was not at Manav Kendra at the time and was in Baroda some distance away; I told them that there wasn't time and the Master was coming to Bombay anyway. When we got to the station, the train was three and a half hours late, so we went over to the Master's in Baroda. "Without meeting me how could you go?" He asked. "How could your train come?" My companions explained what had happened, and the Master laughed and blessed us. When we returned to the station the train was there ready to take us back. You see, such is the grace and the power of a Sat Guru. He Knew Everything Carmen Uribe Our Beloved Master Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj visited Chicago on His second World Tour in 1963. He stayed at the Hamilton Hotel which was completely crowded. Master was inside His suite; the crowd was outside waiting to see Him. All of a sudden, a young lady arrived sobbing and asking who could speak Spanish (this lady was from Monterrey City, Mexico). When I met her to find out what she wanted, she asked me, "Where is the Saint, where is the Saint?" I pointed to Master's room. Then in great desperation, she asked me to tell Master about her grandmother who was dying in Monterrey, saying that she had nobody else in this world and did not want her to die. Approximately thirty minutes passed before Master came out. That place got more and more crowded every second which made it most difficult to approach our Beloved. When at last He came out, I tried to get close to Him, but before I could, He came to me and touched my shoulder saying, "TELL HER NOTHING WILL HAPPEN TO HER G R A N D M A . " I was astonished, for I thought that Master did not know anything about that crying lady and her grandmother. I thought He didn't know, but He knew everything. 130 The Ocean of Grace Divine In 1967 my hand broke in many places in a traffic accident. When I went to see the doctor, he took an x-ray of my hand and told me that I had to wear a cast for four or five months. There was also a big possibility of an operation. Once he placed the cast, I did not feel any pain and even doubted if it was broken. About one week had passed after my accident when I had our Beloved in a vision. I saw Him in an almost empty room sitting on a chair behind a small wooden table. I rushed to meet Him and He looked at my broken hand inquiring with His loving eyes what had happened. Then I answered, "It has been broken." He glanced at my hand with a compassionate look and touched the cast with His Holy fingers. . .the cast fell down into many pieces. I then shook my hand out of the cast, and said to Him, "Look, Master, look! My hand is healed and doesn't hurt at all! I'm going to tell them You are here." He just looked at me very lovingly again, and I left the place. When I woke up, the cast was still on my hand, but I had not even the minimum pain. That same month I went to see the doctor several times to tell him that my hand was all right, that I had no pain at all, and to take the cast off. The doctor took another x-ray and said, "What is this? I can't believe it. I was sure you were going to lose your hand! Only a month, and your hand doesn't need any more treatment. This is a miracle!" The doctor didn't know anything about the Master, but Master knew everything about that doctor and everyone else. The Great Experience Raj Kumar Jain I was devoted to spirituality from the very first. By birth, by education and by inclination, my sanskaras—my tendencies due to impressions from past lives—were such that they drew me in this direction. A man who seeks the spiritual goal overcomes worldly attachments and lives for the welfare and good of others, and not for his own. Existing thus, he moves progressively towards his chosen goal. Bearing this idea in mind, I studied over the years the lives of some three or four hundred sages, seers, and men of achievement. On the philosophical side as well, I had made an extensive study of all the major religions. But while I could understand what I was studying, I could not quite grasp the level at which each sage spoke. In my heart of hearts I wished that I too could attain to their level. I first met Maharaj Kirpal Singh Ji on 20th February 1967, when He visited Indore. As we sat there, the Master asked me if I had made any study of spirituality. I answered that I had read the Gita, the Ramayana, the Jain Scriptures, and Vedanta—anything, in fact, I could lay hold of in the field of religion. At this point my wife asked the Master about the secret of stilling the 132 The Ocean of Grace Divine mind. The Master questioned her if she had had Naam. We had not even heard of the word and did not know what it meant. The Master then asked us to attend some of His Satsangs and two days later, offered to initiate us. When the morning for the initiation day arrived, my wife got up and began preparing to go to the Master. As for myself, a doubt crept into my mind: I asked myself if one really needed to go to a Guru? Whatever is there is within us and what can another person give us from without? I had no desire for initiation, but my wife insisted that I accompany her because she was going early in the morning to an unknown North Indian Mahatma and she did not want people in our neighborhood gossiping. And so I went, and having gone, sat for initiation. I had some experience, both of Sound and of Light but argued to myself that the Sound could well be that of my blood circulating, and as for Light—having lived a clean and honest existence, why should there be any darkness within me? The initiation proceedings carried on till after midday. Langar (free food) was ready when things were over and we were asked to stay: "The Master has blessed the food and you must partake of it," we were repeatedly told. But we did not understand such things then and we left as we avoided eating out. We did not even take the parshad that the Master was giving. On returning home we had our food and at night-fall I turned in. Next morning, according to the Master's instructions, I sat for awhile in meditation and had some experience of Light. Thereafter, as was customary with me each morning, I went to my temple. I did not have to go outdoors as I had a small shrine in my own place. There I would worship the idols of our deities and recite traditional mantras. On that morning however, as I stepped in, the idols were no longer there; in their place I could only see the Master. As for the mantras, they blanked out from my mind; and the only mantra I could recite was the five charged Names that the Master had given me at initiation. When I came back to my room, to my astonishment, when I closed my eyes the Master stood at the center between them. When I opened my eyes He was still there at the seat of the soul. Whatever I did He was there; my eyes filled with tears and I The Great Experience 133 wept copiously. In fact for the next seven days it was always the same. Whether I closed my eyes or opened them, I could only see the Master and I could only weep. After the first of these days my wife remarked that I had missed going to Court the previous day and she urged me to get ready for going to work that day. I answered that I was in a state in which I Could not go—"You dragged me to the Sardar Sahib, and now I only see Him and nothing else. I cannot help my tears. So what am I to do?" We decided to visit an old satsangi of Maharaj Ji, and when he learnt of my condition he turned to my wife and told her that I was blessed. "Only a vessel of gold can hold the milk of a lioness," he remarked using an Indian idiom, "and the Master has dyed you in His color on the very first occasion!" He advised me to keep repeating the five charged Names. They had great potency in stilling the mind. I followed his advice and I had a strange experience of happiness and bliss. All these years I had been reading about spirituality, and now at last I was getting some taste of it. My wife however, thought that the Master from the north had cast a spell upon me. Why was it that I saw Him and nothing else? I was preparing for my Master of Laws examination, but could no longer pursue my studies. It was a difficult examination, and all my preparations stood in abeyance. I finally wrote to the Master telling Him of my problem, but got no reply. Some satsangis advised us to go to see Him. "He who has given the malady is best equipped to grant the cure," they said. And so we came to Delhi and stayed there for almost a month. At our first meeting we were with the Master for half an hour and He poured out so much love—love for which my soul had been thirsting for so many lives, that my bliss was ineffable. I told my wife, "Whoever this white-clad Mahatma may be, He is surely a living embodiment of love!" During the month we were there, we got the overwhelming impression that the Master carried with Him all the treasures of spirituality and was moving about among us to distribute them in abundance—but alas, we were unwilling to receive of His bounty. While we were with the Master, He advised us to give the maximum amount of time to Bhajan. I did not even understand 134 The Ocean of Grace Divine what Bhajan was. He explained that whatever you saw in this world was mere dust and that we must turn our attention away from it and focus between the eyes. Concentrating our attention thus we should intermittently engage in Simran, and this would help us move from the finite to the infinite. This is a lesson I have been endeavoring to follow ever since—and this not merely when I sit for meditation, but at all hours of the day. There were two other lessons that the Master imparted to us. "Don't get too involved with people," He said. "Maintain your relationship with others at a minimal level, but do not get caught up in friendships and enmities." The other great lesson He imparted was that we should treat work as worship. Whatever we did, we should do it with heart and soul, to the best of our ability. In 1969 when the Master's Diamond Jubilee was being celebrated, I came from Indore for seva. I helped edit a souvenir volume that was brought out to mark the occasion. One day, after the souvenir came out, the Master remarked to me, "You have come here for seva, but do remember that in your life there is no such situation." "What situation, Master?" I asked. He continued, "Once a rich man engaged a servant to look after his horses. When he was given the job, his terms of service and his duties were spelled out in the contract: he had to feed the horses, to massage them, wash them, and train and drive them. One day when the owner was mounting one of his horses, the animal took off. He called the servant to help hold the horse lest he have an accident. The servant answered that this task had not been written into his contract." The Master's meaning was clear enough. When we come to Him we must give of our best. If a problem arises, we must do what we can to resolve it and not keep waiting for instructions or keep telling ourselves that we were never entrusted with this particular responsibility. Fifteen Months at Manav Kendra S. P. Chopra On December 18th 1954, my neighbor in Bombay came to inquire if I could accommodate a few devotees traveling with a great Saint. For a holy cause like this I readily agreed. This Saint gave his first talk in a church, interspersed with quotations from the Bible. The next, in a Krishna temple, was full of references from the Gita. I felt that this Saint had a thorough grasp of all scriptures. Immediately after the talk I went to see Him. We met on the veranda of the house where He was staying, and with very sweet and loving words He said, "Thank you for sparing the accommodation." I replied, "The accommodation is Yours." To my surprise He answered, "Yes, it is my own house." As I came to understand something of His teachings, I decided to go in for initiation. The Master had by then left Bombay for Kalyan so I followed Him there. The initiation had already begun when I arrived. Gyani Ji, who had spent four days at my home, told the Master that I had come, but Maharaj Ji said I should have come on time. I was just thinking to go back, when the Master looked at me and said, "Are you Chopra?" I said, "Yes." He then asked me to step in for initiation. I must say 136 The Ocean of Grace Divine that with His grace I got a very good experience on that eventful day—25th December 1954. Before Master returned to Delhi, He ordered me to hold weekly Satsangs in my home. It was then I realised the significance of Master's words: "Your house is mine." Thereafter Satsangs continued at my home till I retired in 1966. In 1970, when the construction of Manav Kendra started, the Master assigned some important work to me requiring my presence there for fifteen months. During the planning stage, many people thought that it would take five to ten years to complete. One day the Master inquired from the architect how long it would take. He replied, "As long as the Master desires because this work is to be done with His grace alone." The main work was finished in about two years. The site for Manav Kendra was almost a jungle, and in those early days we had no accommodation at all. The Beloved Master used to come and sit in His car when it rained and do His work there. Whenever it was sunny He would sit under a tree along with us. As we worked, He went on dealing with the correspondence. Now and then He would inquire about the work and visit the construction sites. In those early days we would come across a lot of cobras. We brought this to the notice of the Beloved Master. Out of compassion for all, He mentioned that as we were destroying their natural habitat, why should we kill them? We should give them other accommodation. Since that day we never molested any cobra, and instead would cover them with mud and lift them out of our way; they would then find another place to live. One other thing that I noticed was that Master never liked the idea of cutting down a tree unless it was absolutely necessary and construction work could not possibly proceed without this vandalism. One day I mentioned to the Master that the cutting of certain trees was unavoidable for carrying on the work. My gracious Lord replied, "Trees and water are the greatest blessings of God. Before cutting any tree, think it over thoroughly." The result of this policy is that a tree still grows through the roof of the Master's residence at Sawan Ashram. Thus at Manav Kendra too we were able to build His house incor- Fifteen Months at Manav Kendra 137 porating a large tree in the main room. During these busy months Master used to stay at Manav Kendra for a week or so and then return to Delhi. I used to be in charge of the work, and in His absence carried on according to His instructions. Once, Master was leaving for Delhi and instructed us to finish a particular job before He returned. However, the work could not be completed in time. I told the Master when He returned that due to heavy rains we could not proceed and complete the work on schedule. The Master smiled and said, "The rain god is doing his work—he does not stop—why should you stop your work? You carry on your work, and let him carry on his!" Thereafter I noticed several times that there used to be very thick, black clouds and it would be raining heavily all around Manav Kendra, but there would not be a drop of rain on our work site. The Master would serve the sevadars food with His own hands. While distributing chapatis He would generally give four or more. Once I asked for only one but He said, "What is this disease of eating scantily? Why don't you eat more and work more?" This was the type of humor that the gracious Master would let us enjoy. The first important item of work to be completed was a high service water reservoir. At one point in the construction, the architect decided that the cement work had to continue till midnight and even later if necessary so that it could be finished. We all assured the Beloved Master that we would not leave till the work finished. The Master, on leaving for His Rajpur residence, asked if there was sufficient milk to serve tea to the satsangis working on the construction. I replied in the affirmative. Then He said, "Make sure that the people are served tea not once but twice." These were the tiny details which He would personally look into. He cared so much for His children, that knowing they would work all night in the cold, they would naturally require a warming cup of tea to help them carry on. We often had to work for more than twelve hours but we never felt any fatigue. Once I entered the room where the Master was resting and I saw that He was very tired. I requested Him not to work so much Himself and to take adequate rest. The 138 The Ocean of Grace Divine Master replied it was not He who was tired, but we who were working so hard. I could therefore see that He was taking on Himself all our fatigue and that was why we never felt any, even if we had to work fifteen hours a day. Once some young girls from Delhi came and they were working with lime; their fingers became blistered. When I told them not to do this work, they replied that they did not mind as long as Master gave them darshan. In the evening, Master asked all of them how they were. They showed their hands, and Master said, "Chopra has been told to give you special ointment." After the Master had left for His Rajpur home, the girls came to me, but I did not know what should be given. I just gave them some ointment and said they should apply it. The next morning there were no injuries on their hands and they continued their work. These young girls, from good families and unaccustomed to hard labor, worked at Manav Kendra like coolies for the love of the Great Master. It was on this occasion that Master quoted Guru Gobind Singh, "I will turn sparrows into hawks." The entire Manav Kendra was built in the Master's love. During this time Master always set a target of work and saw that it was finished in time. Initiates used to come from all over the country in groups and mostly work for a fortnight and then return home. The greatest attraction for everyone was the serving of food from the hands of the Beloved Master Himself. One evening when we all returned from work and sat at His Feet, the Master told us that we were very lucky, and we should thank the Lord who had blessed us with such Sewa. Once the ladies working in the langar (free kitchen) complained that as they were not at the work sites they did not get the Master's darshan when He toured them; they suggested that their duties should be changed. The next day at about 11:30 the Master took me to all the points of work, and as we were passing the Langhar the Master wanted to know what that place was. I told Him. The Master went inside. The ladies were very busy, some making chapatis, some cutting vegetables, but the Master went to each group, talked to them, and told them to do Simran instead of talking among themselves. The ladies were very happy that the Master had given them darshan at their own Fifteen Months in Manav Kendra 139 place of work. During this whole period of intense work I noticed that the Master was very exact about correct planning and correct expenditure. He would see to everything Himself; whenever someone made a mistake, He would point it out in such a loving way that no one would ever feel any distress. When the plans for the Mansarovar were drawn up and approved by the architect, the Master, after having examined the site, called me and said, "If you are going to implement this plan how will you do it on this rocky ground?" I could see immediately the Master was right. I took the plans back to the architect and told him what the Master had said. The architect reviewed the situation and changed the plan making the pool oval shape. When the Master saw the new plans, He was so happy that He congratulated us as if we had been responsible for coming up with this new idea. Whenever the Master was at Manav Kendra, He would inquire as to the number of people working, the distribution of labor at various points, and whether all the satsangis had their tea and their fill of food. Then after spending the whole day, He would leave for Rajpur to attend to His files and meet His children from the West where He gave His informal question and answer sessions which have since been published as Heart to Heart Talks, In the early days of the work, I was standing beneath a huge clustered tree formed out of the intermingling of five trees. I humbly pointed out that it was a symbol of the unity that the Master loved so much. He said, "Great Saints have already stayed under this tree. When Guru Gobind Singh returned from the hills, He, too, had stayed under this very tree. This is a sacred place." Sweet Stories About The Master Michael Grayson I would like to share some wonderous anecdotes of the Beloved Master's Love, Light and Life this unworthy one has experienced in His Presence. Beloved Master was so great, so magnificent; little by little He graciously revealed to us more and more of His divine personality. One time we were walking along in the foothills of the Himalayas, Master was so very gracious—radiating the Divine Love like anything. The dear ones there were so intoxicated they could be seen kissing the ground and hugging trees due to seeing that Divine Love permeating everywhere. Someone came running up to the Master, "Oh Master, it's such a wonderful job you are doing—there is so much love in the air." Master replied, "I know my own true worth—I'm just a mere pipe. What good is an empty pipe unless something is flowing through it? Unless my Master sends His grace, then?" Just imagine the humility! The Beloved Master could read our every thought. Sometimes He would let on, sometimes He wouldn't. One time we were standing near the excavation for the pool of Manav Kendra, Sweet Stories about the Master 141 It seemed to be at least six to seven feet deep and there was no water in it. Master was telling two dear ones who came to visit all about the work going on at the project. While talking He moved so close to the edge of the Mansarovar that a single inch or so more and He would fall in. Master was still busily talking to the visitors. I thought to myself, "If the Master takes a single step backwards He'll fall in!" I just thought this. But immediately Master stopped talking to those people and turned around and said to me out loud—"Don't worry—I can take care of myself." Then He went right back to talking to those visitors. Even from hundreds and thousands of miles away the Master knows our every thought, word and deed. And why not! He is right with us, the very life of our life. One time we were sitting with the Beloved Master. He looked at us and said, "You know, you people don't know how lucky you are to have a real Master, a true Master, a perfect Master—one who will never leave you nor forsake you till the end of the world." He told us, "Rest assured, I will take you back Home. Don't you have any doubt in my words." Often times Master would be shedding tears of love. "These are the tears of love for you all," He would say. And the Master was completely unpredictable. He had an indescribable sense of humor. One time He graciously gave me a cup of tea. I took only a few sips then He asked for the tea back. Master then took some corn flakes and crushed them in His hands put them in my tea and said, "Now you have it!" He was always giving us tea, sweets, and food. Usually we were so intoxicated in His love we couldn't eat. We only wanted to look at Him. On suchlike occasions Master would lovingly look at us and say, "First eat your food—then eat me and drink me!" When Master would smile or laugh the whole Universe would be bathed in His effulgent joy. There are so many stories that could be told about how the Master worked for the benefit of His dear children, but it should be pointed out that what appears to be a miracle is in fact a higher law of nature at present unknown to us. Slowly and surely He revealed more and more of Himself. 142 The Ocean of Grace Divine Here is a story that shows how the Master drew His disciples to Himself, even in the most adverse situations. I was in basic training in the Army and I used to hold regular Satsangs with His grace. Some sergeant or officer would try and get them stopped, but a higher officer would say, "No, let it go on." One day we were holding Satsang on the third floor of an abandoned building where hardly anyone ever went. And there were about fifteen people present. In the middle of the meeting somebody walked in who we'd never seen before. We were surprised because I hadn't put up any posters. He walked in and said, "What in the world is going on in here?" I said, "We are telling of the teachings of the Great Living Master Kirpal Singh, how to solve the mystery of life and death, how to know oneself and to know God." He said, "I have been looking for a Master all my life." After the meeting was over he came up to me and said, "You'll never believe how I came to this meeting." He was walking outside that building during the Satsang and he said all of a sudden he couldn't take a step further, an uncontrollable power came over him. He had to go up to the third floor of that building and see what was going no. Later he became a strict vegetarian and received initiation. Meanwhile in his Company there was one of his friends who was very desperate; he hated the Army, and was having marital problems, and he wanted to commit suicide. So my friend thought the best thing would be to take him to Satsang. Sure enough he came, and we told him there's hope for everyone and nothing to be disheartened about, and the Master is full of so much love for you and everyone else, no need to worry, relax, and then solve this mystery of life which is the purpose of having the manbody. He began studying the teachings, and left off the idea of suicide. He became a strict vegetarian right in the Army, which isn't easy. Then he sent in his application for initiation, and while he was waiting to hear if he'd been accepted or not by the Master he became very skeptical for some reason. Maybe he thought, "Well, perhaps the Master is just a big fraud." He came to me one day and said, "This is it, I'm going to commit suicide!" So I said, "Well, before you do anything hasty, there's just one thing—why don't you go and sit down in some quiet Sweet Stories About the Master 143 place and pray with all your heart and soul that the Truth might be revealed to you." He said, "All right." And he did it. He had that one-pointed attention—he was a desperate man, and Master says where all human effort fails prayer succeeds. So he prayed; when he opened his eyes he saw the Radiant Form of the Master standing before him blazing in Light right there in the barracks, smiling at him. So of course he didn't kill himself, and he got initiated in due course. Here is another story which tells how the Master draws His own children. Once I met a young couple at the Ashram, and I asked them how they had come and why. They told me they had traveled to India not knowing why, they just had a desire to see what they would see. When they arrived at Bombay, someone handed them a pamphlet about seeing the Divine Light, it didn't have anything to do with our Master or anyone else in particular. They read it and wondered, "Is there really such a thing as Divine Light?" They sat down and they prayed that if there is Divine Light please show us the way to it. When they opened their eyes there was the Radiant Form of our Master standing in front of them. He led them all the way from Bombay to Sawan Ashram—a considerable journey! They arrived there and were attending Satsang every day but still hadn't been initiated. So I said, "Why don't you ask the Master for initiation?" They replied, "We didn't know we were supposed to ask—we thought He'd just give it to us." So that night they asked, and Master said smiling, "Oh, so that's why you've come!" Here is another example of how the Master drew people to Himself. Master had told us that we should take advantage of any way of letting people know the Truth so that all sincere seekers might avail themselves of the wonderful opportunity of coming to the Master. So we went to extremes on one occasion: we had fliers printed and put them on the windshield of cars in the parking lot—just as an experiment. It was to announce a birthday celebration Satsang. Then we stepped back to watch people's reactions. Unfortunately most people threw them right down in the gutter, and because the Master's picture was on them we went round picking each one up. We decided never to do that again. Anyway, at the birthday celebration a couple of fellows 144 The Ocean of Grace Divine showed up; they were newcomers so we asked them how they had come. They told us they'd seen the picture of the Master lying in a mud puddle—it was one of the ones we had missed! They picked it up out of the mud puddle and read it, they came; and later on they got initiated. So we can see the different ways in which the Master Power works to draw people onto the Path. At one time I remember we were all sitting with the Master in India, and someone told the Master when He was speaking they could see roses coming out of His mouth; another person described the beautiful brilliant aura they could see round the Master's head; another person told how the Master was just streaming with Light; but still another person said, "Well, all I see is a man with a turban and beard." Master just smiled through it all. Then He explained that it was all a matter of developing receptivity, and the grace of the Master. Here is a story about the beautiful Guru-Gurumukh relationship which our Master had with His Master, and to which we should all aspire. Once Hazur was distributing parshad to all the dear ones (parshad is food blessed by the Master). The Indians wear long loose shirts, so they can hold out the bottom like an apron, and Hazur would fill it up. So each disciple was coming up to get his share of the parshad. When it was the turn of our Master He was more after looking into His Master's eyes than having the blessed food, because our Master Himself often said all the parshad is already within you, you may eat to your heart's content. So when He came up to His Master He began steadily looking into Baba Sawan Singh's eyes. Of course Hazur was looking steadily into His—He was His beloved Gurumukh disciple. So at the same time that they were both steadily looking into each others eyes Hazur kept putting more and more parshad into our Master's outstretched shirt. Pretty soon the parshad was just flowing over onto the ground; so all the other disciples, when they saw what was happening, came running up and started gathering up what was spilling over, and Hazur was going right on pouring it into our Master's lap handful after handful while they were absorbed into each others eyes. Hazur all of a sudden stepped back and surveyed the scene, and He said, "This is how it will be in the future." The Story of Master's Gardener Baba Ji (Mehku Lal) I come from Allahabad District in Uttar Pradesh. As a child I had experience of the inner Light; it was as Maharaj Ji said, a Light brighter than a thousand suns. At times my father or my uncle would have to shake me by the shoulders repeatedly in order to bring me back. But at the time I did not realize the significance of the gift I had got. As I grew I got attached to my uncle more and more. He was a non-vegetarian, and I began following his ways. I took up a job in Amritsar in the Punjab, and worked there for about twenty-five years. Then one day it suddenly came to me that I had fallen into evil ways and was not making the best use of my human birth. Only a saint could help me, I said to myself, and it was imperative that I seek one out. Not knowing to whom to turn, I proceeded to Haridwar and to Rishikesh. I went to the Kali Kambli Ashram of the Mahatma (the Mahatma who always covered himself with a black blanket) and presented myself. I was told I could stay there and could serve and live there. I was only there for three days; on the third day I heard enough to realize that I could not find salvation there. It was winter time, but without a second thought I departed. 146 The Ocean of Grace Divine Knowing some people in Dehra Dun, I took a bus there. I had only one rupee in my pocket, but it was just enough to get me there. Next morning, remembering my quest, I left my friends and went to Shri Banta Singh who owned a workshop and many trucks. I cannot say how I got hold of the name, but I asked his assistance to get to the Radha Swami Satsang. He told me I could stay with him as he did not know where it was, but later he could arrange for me to travel free to Delhi. I was at Banta Singh's for three days, and then traveled by one of his trucks to Delhi. I had visited many a temple in my time and decided to go now to the Sis-gunj Gurdwara. While I sat and listened to the Gurbani, I experienced great peace—such is the power of the words of the Great Masters. But when I left, my restlessness returned. I wandered to Sabzi Mandi, and seeing a venerable old Sikh, stopped him and asked him if he could direct me to the Radha Swami Satsang. He told me that there was a Satsang nearby at Sawan Ashram, and he gave me directions. There was a wedding in progress at the Ashram when I got there; the daughter of Master Pratap Singh (Master Ji) was getting married. I was given a lot of parshad and realized that I was very hungry. Shortly after it was getting time for Satsang. It was the eve of the Master's birthday; He came out to hold the first Satsang for this special occasion. Not knowing who He was, not knowing what I was doing, I grabbed Him by His left sleeve, crying, "Look here Sardar Saheb, You must listen to me!" He turned and looked into my eyes, and we both stood motionless for what seemed a long time. Meanwhile, the Sangat must have watched us with surprise, wondering who this madman was who held the Master by His sleeve. After what may have been some twenty minutes, the Master said that He would talk things over with me on a later occasion, and I let Him go. As the Master withdrew from me, I felt lost—even here, it seemed to me I could not find the answer I was seeking. The Master had turned away without answering my question. Little did I realize then that He had already reached deep into me through His prolonged glance and had bestowed upon me the treasure I was after. That night I stayed at the Ashram and I The Story of Master's Gardener 147 shared my problem with a satsangi named Rajinder Singh. He asked me if I would like to take Naam and I answered that I was a follower of Kabir and was not interested in getting Naam. "But won't you stay on for the Satsang tomorrow?" he asked. Rajinder Singh arranged for me to spend the night at the Ashram in a very small kitchen. As I lay down I did not realize that I had my feet towards the Master's home and my head the other way. Imagine my surprise on waking in the early hours in the morning and finding that I was lying the other way round. How had I circled around, I asked myself? The space was too narrow and how could I do so without hitting a wall? There's something miraculous here, I thought—I have found a Saint at last who can help me redeem my life. And on that day I told Rajinder Singh that I wanted Naam. Looking at me he laughed and said, "Oh, but Naam is bitter. Why are you in such a hurry—you didn't seem to want it yesterday, why now?" When I joined the rest of the candidates for initiation, I realized that I was perhaps the only one who had hardly attended any of the Master's Satsangs. Some had attended four, some five and some many more. The Master came in and questioned each of them in turn; I said to myself that He would surely ask me to wait. When it was my turn I just looked down and hid my face in my hands; but the Master quietly turned to the next man. When we sat down for meditation, I got mixed up over Simran and I could not learn the five Names. Even so, I had inner Light and was blessed with His inner darshan. After this I left with Rajinder Singh for Pilibhit to live at a farm there. On reaching it I caught a cold and developed double pneumonia, The fever grew, and as it became very excruciating I thought my end had come. I called Rajinder Singh and told him to sit down and pray to the Master. Within five minutes or so I saw Hazur appear before me, immaculately dressed and with a stick in His hand. He was accompanied by Maharaj Ji and both were bathed in Light. They came and blessed me, and as it were, drew a thorn from my flesh, and departed. My anguish and my pain disappeared and I lay quiet and peaceful. Rajinder Singh noticing that my groans had 148 The Ocean of Grace Divine stopped, thought that all was over and I was gone. Anyway, to make sure he shook me, and I told him I was all right. "The Civil Surgeon and the Doctor have both come to see me," I told him, alluding to the two Masters, "and now I am all right." That was some eighteen years ago or so. It was not long after that I moved to Delhi. Rajinder Singh found work for me not far from the Ashram, and I was glad to be near the Master. One day on account of a mistake, I was reprimanded, and, touched to the quick, refused to have anything from my employer. One of the satsangis at the langar would privately give me food, and when the Master returned reported the problem to Him. "Why do you have to feed him in private?" He asked. I was summoned, and Maharaj Ji told me that I could live at the Ashram, eat there at the langar, and help look after the land on the other side of the railway tracks. "Maharaj Ji I would be glad to be here and live on whatever I am given at the Ashram. But I cannot give up smoking so how can I stay with you?" I asked. Maharaj Ji was very gracious and He said that I could live there without giving up smoking. And so this is how I began living at the Ashram and working for the Master as His gardener. Later when it pleased Him, I moved to His bungalow at Rajpur. He would come there frequently on very short visits and then return to Delhi. Many a time He would say, "Baba, you are the master here. You have the keys. I am only a guest who comes for a day or two and then goes away." While living at Rajpur it came to me that it was not right for me to smoke. Those who came on the Path had to give up so much, and I who had received so much grace could do no less. And so I gave up smoking. And then one day the Master suddenly remarked, "I never see you smoking now! What is the matter?" I explained that I had given up smoking. "Why have you done that?" He asked, "Whoever asked you to give up smoking?" From then on I not only resumed smoking but did so with full assurance of Maharaj Ji's grace. Earlier I would sneak away to have a smoke—now I smoked openly and without inhibition. The Story of Master's Gardener 149 Maharaj Ji has been so bounteous to me—He is the Lord of everything. When I began working, I was given my monthly wages. Working for Him, did I need them? I was living at the Ashram and He was always looking after me. All I needed was three rupees a month for my bidis (Indian cigarettes). What was to be done with the rest of my wages, I was asked. "They could go back to the Ashram," I said. Once while at Rajpur, the Master was away for a long time. The money He had left for my living expenses finally ran out. From where would I get my next meal, I asked, but then reminded myself that the Master knew my needs better than I did. To my surprise Mata Janaki arrived at the bungalow and gave me a five rupee note. I would not take it, but she told me, "It is not I who am giving you the money; it has been sent to you by Maharaj Ji." My need had been answered and I gladly accepted what He sent to me. Even now He never fails me and knows my needs better than I do myself. You may think He is gone but He is always there. In December it gets cold up here at Rajpur, but when Mata Ji (Mrs. Brij Mohan Sharma) came back from Delhi recently, she had a thick heavy coat for me. It is the coat I am wearing now. So warm, so comfortable; it keeps out all the cold. It is Master's coat and it has come from Him. How you would ask? He left it with His Beloved son, Darshan Ji, and knowing my need he has sent it on to me. Not long after I came to the Path, Maharaj Ji asked me how much time I gave to Simran and Bhajan, and exhorted me to give as much time as possible if I was to make progress. When I was with the Master I would keep nothing back and I told Him, "Maharaj Ji, You are God, You are the Lord of the universe. When You can appear to me and bless me with Your visions with my eyes open, why do I need to shut my eyes and search for You within? I live every moment in Your sweet remembrance. Grant that it may be so forever and do not press me for Bhajan and Simran." Thereafter the Master never raised that point again, though He would question other disciples on the subject. It is a joy to live in His remembrance; whenever He wills, He grants me His darshan. How Master Saved My Son Sushila Devi Sharma My son Jag Mohan was laid up with typhoid, and we were treating him with homeopathic medicines. One day at Satsang my father-in-law told the Master that the boy was seriously ill and that we were not having him properly treated. "Is that so?" said Maharaj Ji, "I will come round to see him myself." That very day after Satsang He came to see the boy, and asked Brij Mohan, my husband: "Have you consulted a good specialist?" "No Master." "Must you always place your burden on my shoulders?" "Maharaj Ji, everything is in Your hands and within Your grace." But the Master ordered that we call in a specialist, and over the next few weeks we consulted several; the boy was reduced to a skeleton, and for fifteen days he was hardly in his senses— his tongue had gone black, and even his teeth had lost their color. Finally, as the other doctors had given up the boy as lost, we consulted Dr. K.L.Jain, one of the best child specialists in Delhi. The doctor was frank and refused to give us false hopes. How Master Saved My Son 151 "It is a very difficult case," he said. "The boy is three-fourths gone!" "Life and death lies in the hands of our Guru," said my husband, "Ours is only to do our duty, and so, doctor, proceed with whichever treatment you consider best." I may mention here that the Master had, during this time, inquired repeatedly about the boy. After Dr. Jain had prescribed his treatment, we proceeded with it. However, Jag Mohan's condition took a turn for the worse the following day. As a last resort my husband left to call the doctor again. The boy's legs and hands had gone stiff and were quite numb. The only sign of life that remained was the faint heaving of his chest. I suddenly got up and set off for the Ashram. When I reached the Ashram, the Master was in His room at the back. I stood listless and lost at the door outside. Kaptan Saheb seeing me asked what the matter was; I had nothing by way of a reply. He went in and told the Master I was outside, and that something seemed wrong. Maharaj Ji in a loud voice asked for me to be called in. There He sat in His chair, and I collapsed at His Feet, sobbing, "If he has to live then let him live well Maharaj Ji. Why must You test and torture me in this way? For three months I have not even been able to have a wink of sleep!" I wept bitterly and I cannot remember what I may have said in those moments of anguish. He let me be at His Feet, and running His hand over my head and back comforted me, "Kako, you have a Satguru, and you have full faith in Him. He looks to all your problems and your needs. Then why do you cry like this?" Seeing my condition, Tai Ji begged Maharaj Ji to do something. Straightening up, He summoned Kaptan Saheb, and asked him to fetch an old homeopathic doctor He knew and bring him over to see the boy. Turning to me He said, "Now go home and I will come to see your son myself." It was raining hard, and I had hardly got home when the Master arrived. Soon after, Kaptan Saheb arrived with the doctor. After examining the child the old doctor said, "I can give the medicine, but there is little hope for the child." The Master on hearing this took out His fountain pen and ran it over both palms and both feet of the child sketching some lines. Having done this, 152 The Ocean of Grace Divine He turned to the doctor and said, "Dr. Saheb you give the child the medicine. Hazur's grace will help and do the rest." Then He turned to me and said, "Do not lose heart. Be brave—you are a lion's child. Rest assured Hazur will help!" And indeed throughout my son's illness I took things in my stride. Two occasions apart, I met this prolonged ordeal with a strange reserve of patience and courage. The Master then warned me, "Look after the boy well, but when he comes back to his senses it will seem as though he had died. Do not let this perturb you but do as I suggest." He gave me directions, and from that day on I had a large vessel full of water always on the boil. Some five or six days after this, Maharaj Ji left for Rajpur, and Brij Mohan departed with Him also. I was left by myself to look after the boy, and my aging parents-in-law were with me. Sometime around 3:00 at night my son suddenly came round. He had been lying unconscious for over twenty days and on coming back to himself cried out, "Mata Ji, where are you?" I at once took him in my lap and the moment I did so he went completely cold. There was just no sign of life in him at all and even his breathing stopped. Those around me said the child was gone and thought of waking up his grandfather. I stopped them saying, "Don't disturb him; let me do what the Master has instructed me." Without losing my nerve I got up, prepared four or five hot water bottles and laid them on the chest, the legs and along the arms of the child. It was summer time and rather hot, and my sister said, "Why are you doing all this?" I replied, "Let me do as Maharaj Ji has told me—and please don't disturb me at this moment!" As I watched over the child, a few minutes later, his eye-lids fluttered. I was reassured, and I asked my sister to prepare a cup of tea. A little later the boy opened his eyes a little and I gave him a few spoons of tea He lay with closed eyes for some time more; when he opened them again, he quietly announced, "I have been inside with Maharaj Ji. He gave me so much love." I told him that Maharaj Ji had been coming to see him during his illness so often. "Oh no," he said, "He was with me inside all the time. And the amount of love He gave me, it cannot compare with what I can get outside." Later he had so much to How Master Saved My Son share outer while body 153 about all his experiences inside while he lay bereft of his senses. He even knew of events which had taken place he lay unconscious. One thing was very clear—while the lay lifeless, the soul inside was not. When the Master came back from Rajpur I told Him what had transpired. He patted me and said, "You are a brave daughter of mine. Did I not say Hazur's protecting hand is always over you?" While the boy was still convalescing, he began to pester me for things which he was not supposed to eat. He grew so difficult at times that it became a more trying problem than the illness itself. One day I was at my wits end with the boy. When the fever left him he had gone so weak that he had to learn to crawl, to stand, to walk all over again at ten years old. Having gone through all that and seeing him so stubborn, I cried out, "Maharaj Ji, how long must you go on testing me in this fashion?" No sooner had I said this than there was a tap on the door and Maharaj Ji was standing there. I was overcome with guilt, "How foolish you are to drag out the Master like this!" I said to myself. I was too lost to even offer Him a seat. He walked up and patted me on the back saying, "What is the matter now?" "Maharaj Ji," I said, pointing to Jag Mohan, "This boy is driving me crazy. Now that he is better he will not rest until he has what he is not supposed to eat." Maharaj Ji then said to the boy, "Look towards me, into my eyes." And when the boy did so, He lovingly told him what he was to eat and what he was not to eat. From then on there was no problem. Maharaj Ji's grace had worked a miracle. Even if the boy saw others around him eating what he was not supposed to, he showed no signs of being tempted. When he was well enough to go out, we took him to see the Master. His illness and recovery had taken six months. It was around 10:00 in the morning when we reached the Ashram, and the Master was sitting with a large group including a number of foreign disciples. He took up the child and embraced him with great love and setting him on the floor, told those present, "This boy is a rare example of Hazur's grace—His time was up 154 The Ocean of Grace Divine and he had to go. But through the grace of Hazur he has been given a second life and is well again." The Master's grace has been our anchor ever since we came to His Feet. In fact, looking back, His protection was there even before that, though we were not aware of it at the time. Where does one begin? Where does one end? Maharaj Ji showered His love with such abundance, and Brij Mohan, my husband, has already shared some of his extraordinary experiences. I will now relate an incident which has nothing to do with any member of my family—one I had the privilege to witness which brings out so amazingly Maharaj Ji's extraordinary humility and His fathomless reverence for His own Satguru, Baba Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj. Some eleven years ago a marriage had taken place in Delhi. The sister of Joginder Singh who runs the Khushdil Hotel, was getting married. There were many satsangis there and Maharaj Ji came. With the groom came one of the grandsons of Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj. On seeing him, Maharaj Ji went up to welcome him, and taking off His turban from His head bent to place it at his feet. The young man with great alacrity bent and tried to stop Him. "This is not right," he said. Maharaj Ji replied, "You are of Hazur's blood, and nothing is too much by way of honoring you. You are of my Guru's family and I owe everything to Him." The great love and regard with which Maharaj Ji greeted His Master's descendant and the warmth with which they met each other was a great wonder to us. It was an object lesson in humility. It was such a vivid example of the way in which we should hold our Satguru in deepest reverence. There were occasions when I would go and help in Maharaj Ji's kitchen and do the cooking. If something was made with love He would be happy to have it and was sure to appreciate it. As He would sit eating and my husband and I would be standing by serving, He would at times take a piece and share it out among us. He would do it with so much love. If Tai Ji asked what He was doing, He would say with great simplicity, "They look after me and feed me. I must do the same and look after them, mustn't I?" The Master's Drawing Power S. Ramalingam Naidoo In December 1967 I received a cablegram in South Africa from our Beloved Master, Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj, asking me to come to Him by January 8th, 1968, and also to accompany Him on a tour. Things happened so suddenly that in three days I completed my affairs and set sail for India on 27th December and arrived at Sawan Ashram on 6th January at 7:40 p.m. With tears in my eyes at the darshan of the Beloved Master, I fell at His Feet. He said, "I have been waiting for you." Master gave me the gift of Naam two days later, on Monday, 8th January, and as promised, took me on tour the same evening. On one occasion at night staying at the Agra Hostel, I was not able to meditate properly, and cried for His Beautiful Form. The next morning when I went for His darshan, He smiled and said, "Have you now seen that Beautiful Form?" Master lovingly called me Naidoo Ji or Naidoo Saheb. Before returning to South Africa, He said, "Why so soon?" Then He added, "I want you to give Naam Initiation over there and carry on this work on my behalf." I was very humbled. I could not speak. He handed me the instructions of authority. He blessed me time and time again, and hugged me several times. He has now left us physically, but spiritually He is with us always. The Story of the Kirpal Printing Press Daram Vir Sharma I was initiated by Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj in 1946. I was about fourteen years old and I was initiated along with my mother. Although my family was religiously minded, the other members refused to acknowledge the Great Master at Beas—they couldn't even bear to hear the sound of His name. Such was the opposition within the family that my mother was unable to leave our village to receive Hazur's initiation; He graciously initiated her through a letter which was sent to her. After the passing of Hazur from this earth-plane, my mother heard from Bibi Lajwanti, one of His most devoted workers, that Maharaj Kirpal Singh Ji had been appointed to carry on the work of Hazur and was living in Delhi. But it was not until 1953 that we were able to come to Delhi to have the darshan of the new Master. Two years later I came to live in Delhi and went to Sawan Ashram regularly to listen to His Satsangs. Sant Kirpal Singh was always very kind to me and would ask me to wait till after the Satsang so that He could speak to me. In 1964 He suggested that I should buy a house near the Ashram. After this He allowed me to serve Him in a personal way; He was drawing me closer to His Lotus Feet. I was able to travel The Story of the Kirpal Printing Press 157 with Him to several parts of India where I saw many sadhus and saints, but of them all I could see that the Beloved Master had the greatest gift of Spirituality. In discussions they could not stand against Him even for five minutes. In the early 1960's I became very ill, so ill that the doctors warned me that if I didn't give up the vegetarian diet I would be in danger of losing my life. They pressed me to take eggs and advised me to drink brandy. Such was my weakness that I foolishly gave in believing that this would save my life. And such was the greatness of the Master that He took me in His arms, protected me, and helped me to give up these things. I know that it was only the great mercy of the Master that saved me. It was in the end of 1965 that a meeting was called in Sawan Ashram when the Master was away, and it was decided by the six satsangis who were present that the Ashram should establish a printing press so that it could publish its own material. I had been invited to attend that meeting, but could not. When the Master returned, having been on a short tour, He asked to see me and said that I should take part in setting up this printing press. The fact was that the other members had fallen out of the scheme, and here was the Master asking me to take part. When I told the Master that I didn't even know the A-B-C of the printing business, the dear Master laughed and said, "That's of no importance! This work has to be done, and you will see Hazur will bless you." On 8th February 1966, the Master inaugurated the Kirpal Printing Press. The Master Himself started the machine, He fed in the paper, and took it out. The first thing that we printed was the Master's Birthday Message of 1966. He Himself actually printed the first copies. Shortly after that I was able to buy another four machines and we started printing most of the Beloved Master's books. In fact we printed about 90% of the Ashram work which included the calendars, the Hindi and Urdu editions of Sat Sandesh, and in 1968 and 1969 the first English editions of Sat Sandesh. Of course, there were many difficulties to be overcome, but the grace of the Master was always there. On one occasion we were very late in bringing out a calendar. The blocks for the colored photographs 158 The Ocean of Grace Divine of the Master not only arrived late, but to my great dismay, the quality did not do the Master justice. However, Mr. Chadda came up with the brilliant idea that I should take the problem to the Master, explaining that if the Master passed the photographs, the whole Sangat would not only approve them but they would be very much appreciated. This I did that very evening, and to my surprise, Master was quite delighted with the photographs, and to my even greater surprise, this calendar indeed proved to be a great success with the Sangat. My personal experience is that the dear Master showered us with so much love that those who were fortunate enough to serve Him thought that He loved them more than anyone else. When the work was started for Manav Kendra I was nominated by the Great Master to be the cashier on the Management Committee. He took me up there with Him; and although my health had never permitted me to work longer than two hours at a stretch, by the grace of the Master He was taking work out of me from eighteen to twenty hours every day, winter as well as summer! For years I had learned to live with my bad health, and accepted the fact that after every two hours of work I had to lie down and rest. It was the blessings of the Master that enabled me to keep working, sometimes till 2:00 in the night. The Master would continuously instruct me from day to day and the work of building up Manav Kendra progressed very rapidly. Once I was working in the full heat of the sun; the Master came up to me and said, "The natural heat from the sun protects us from tuberculosis." The scheme for planting all the young trees at Manav Kendra was completed in one day, but during the night very heavy rains fell. In the morning I could see that these young trees were water-logged, so I rushed to get a bucket and started scooping out all the excess water. When the Master saw what I was doing, He came over to me and said, "Yes, plants have to be protected just as we protect young children." I remember that the First Unity of Man Conference was scheduled to start on 2nd February 1974. Only five days before, Master ordered me to produce a souvenir program, explaining that it must be ready by the second day of the Conference as the The Story of the Kirpal Printing Press 159 Prime Minister, Mrs. Gandhi, was to attend. You can imagine that was a very difficult order to execute; there were no articles ready and no photographs available—let alone the blocks—and Master wanted it ready in five days! I know it was only His special blessing that enabled us to get two hundred and fifty copies ready in time. When I took these copies to the Master He was very much pleased to see Hazur's Photo on the cover. When He was preparing to leave the physical body, in August of that year, the dear Master sent messages through other satsangis for me to come and see Him every day. Whenever I went to have His darshan He would open His eyes, look at me, and silently bless me with great love. My memory of Him is that although I had met so many great leaders and holy men, there was nobody who could come up to Him. Without the Master's grace I have found that no one in this world can do anything—not even meditation. Without His grace we are nowhere. Master's Saving Grace S.R. Bhalla It is difficult to speak about the Master. To speak about Him is only to limit the Limitless. In 1953 Master wanted me to do some work at Dehra Dun for three days. On the way back I was involved in a scooter accident which could easily have meant my death, but I escaped with only some bruised fingers. Later the Master asked my wife if I had arrived home safely; she thanked Him for protecting me from serious harm. He replied, "You had sent your husband to me. If something serious would have happened, you would have held me responsible—so he had to be saved." On one winter night in 1957 my wife and I stayed on at Sawan Ashram until very late. At 1:00 a.m. we went to the Master and asked permission to return home. The Master was busy with his foreign correspondence. We took leave and started home. We were hardly out when the Master came barefoot to the outer gate of His bungalow and called us back. When we returned, He said, "I know you always go home by the shortest way, through the park, but tonight you should go by the other way." We obeyed Him without question although this meant another three miles to our long ride home. Master's Saving Grace 161 The next morning I went for the Master's darshan before going to the office. When I reached the park I found the police were escorting the body of someone who had been murdered in the park the night before. I realized that had we gone through the park we either would have been murdered or involved in a murder case. I was working on one of Master's manuscripts and could not go to Him for His darshan for several days. My wife went during the day to deliver the pages to the Master. When she reached the bus stop near the Ashram she fell down, and was unconscious for a few moments. She got up, but had temporarily lost her memory—she could not make out where she was nor where the Ashram was. She wandered about in a dazed condition for about two hours. Then she saw someone standing about a hundred yards away and decided to go ask where Sawan Ashram was. When she came close she was astonished to see it was the Master, and that He was standing in front of the Ashram. He said, "Daughter, I have been waiting here for the last ten minutes just to tell you that I knew you had lost your way. Don't worry. I hope you have not been injured by the fall." He then went on to explain, "The circle of births and rebirths for a number of lives has been wiped off through this fall. I am glad you had such a firm determination to reach the Ashram, and that you were successful." Master cared for everyone in even the smallest matters. Once when, during the winter, I was working late at the Ashram, my wife decided to meditate in the shed. She was feeling rather cold. The Master came out of His bungalow and went to the shed; He tapped on my wife's head as she was in meditation and asked her, "Do you want to die? Well, please don't die here as I shall be held responsible. I'm concerned about your health. My room is for you people. Why do you sit here in the cold? He took my wife into His room and made her sit in front of a heater, adding, "I know you are not keeping well. I know you do not want to disturb me, but I do not want you to suffer." On August 15th, 1974 my wife, child and myself spent about half an hour with the Master around 4:00 in the afternoon. He had a thermometer in His hand and told us He was feverish. We 162 The Ocean of Grace Divine were very much upset. My wife touched the Master's Feet and found them to be burning hot; she implored Him, "Master let me take Your fire." The Master looked at us with great love and compassion and said to her, "If you fall sick who will look after your child? Who will cook for your husband? And, moreover, you have got to do a lot of work." My wife replied, "Master, if I lie on the bed, only two people will suffer, but if anything goes wrong with you, hundreds of thousands will suffer. Please give me Your fever!" The Master replied, "I understand your feelings, but no mother would like to give poison to her child. This fever has been given to me as a gift from Sawan Singh. I would not like to part with a gift from my Beloved." Later on He cryptically said, "Say whatever you like now because afterwards you will not have another opportunity." We did not understand what He meant. We said, "Master, You are unwell, and You are getting so busy. We, will only come to see You once a month or once in every two months—we don't want to bother You oftener; we want You to be well." We then told Him of some minor difficulties, but He said, "No, this is not a real problem—ask me something of greater importance for you will not have this opportunity again." We again could not reach to the depth of His words. He was just trying to tell us that we would not see Him again in the flesh. The Power of our Simplicity Shirley Tassencourt JUST look look look look look look look look look look look look look look look look listen listen listen listen listen listen listen listen listen listen listen listen listen listen listen listen Master was always trying to bring us into the power of our simplicity. Of course, consciously or unconsciously we were always resisting it. We were trying so hard to keep everything fancy, trying to stay in the dance of the world or the bias of the mind, and He would say with that great energy of His that c u t 164 The Ocean of Grace Divine right into the infection like surgery, "All right, simple things are simple." There was nothing left to do but drop all your lovely complications and DO IT. If you dared to say, coating your pride with humbleness, "I'll try"—you remember how many seconds you could remain there! "No, don't say you'll try." Your full intention is not behind it, He implied. "Say you'll do it!" He really was such a thief. Morning darshan He would come in and sit on the couch, His knees apart, elbows on each knee, hands clasped together, eyes sparkling with jollity. "Any questions? (pause) Do not be afraid, I am no bugbear. Do you think I have long claws or big teeth?" That's where we should have run like crazy (if we wanted to continue our dance with Kal). Such a bugbear, our Beloved Master. He just reached out with those incredible hands of His and adroitly removed all excess baggage (mind). One gal, who was totally dependant on her glasses, had them stepped on during meditation as they lay at her side. She was absolutely paniky at the loss of her heavy lenses, a fear she had carried since childhood. Much to her surprise she had no real problem even with her sharp reduction of vision. Everything was really okay. She was so grateful for this release from the baggage of this old fear. If you carried 'the baggage' that you were incompatible with certain people, that's for sure who you were cast with, right off. If you were carrying the baggage 'Here I am half way round the world, I must see India or at least an elephant,' you most likely got that chance, to your distress, for what was it? in comparison to being with Master! To those who were laden with the burden of distraction— right off, the first morning He would say, "You are here for no purpose but meditation." If you were crippled by the opposite weight—"One hour of good meditation is worth a whole night of incorrect practice." Or if you were really overburdened that way, simply "Stop meditating!" I couldn't bear it when He said that to me, taking away my dearest possession, but I understood it. We always understood. We know! But it takes a master thief to lift it from us. Master was always working to bring us down to the simpli- The Power of our Simplicity 165 city, the no-mind, the clean polished self that could reflect the God in Him back to Him. While you were at His Feet (at the Ashram or with Him) He would give you whatever you needed in a living situation to experience your excess possessions, then very deftly—He'd take it, you'd let Him, and thank God from the bottom of your heart for such a thief. Master's Amazing Grace Shirley Tassencourt Hanging here (whose intention is heaven) Between the thousand petalled lotus And the thousand fingered clutching of old Kal This eon-old epidemic of desire Whose stinking karma Burns with such a high smell, Help me. My God, The miracle The grace and miracle That you should send HIM This Lord This Perfection Who holds the seed of our perfection Why have we Forsaken Thee? HE asked a friend "What do you want?" "I want You!" "You may have me." The Merciful Lord Sushila Mehta Merciful Master Kirpal Singh was all compassion, so much so that He would Willingly take upon Himself even the sins of others. I had been married for quite some time. We had five children. It was a horrifying thought to have any more when in 1943 I felt that I was in the family way again. I was extremely miserable. With the consent of my husband I took some special medicine. It had its effect, and I miscarried. But for one full year I suffered terribly from the consequences of this miscarriage. I think I had to pay very dearly for this misdeed. Two years later I had the good fortune to get initiated by Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj. A couple of years after, the country was partitioned and my husband was transferred to Delhi. It was in 1960 that I went to attend Satsang at Sawan Ashram. A devotee was giving the Satsang, and Master Kirpal Singh Ji was sitting on the dias beside him. In the course of the Satsang the gentleman explained that if any woman had an abortion by operation or otherwise, the Master would not at the time of her death come to receive her soul for taking to higher The Merciful Lord 167 regions. Hearing this I was dumb-founded and greatly upset; along with my husband, I called on the Master. With tears in my eyes I asked what would happen to me for this foolish act committed seventeen years before. The merciful Master looked at me and consoled me saying, "I take that sin on myself; you should not have any such thought while meditating." I felt relieved at once, and expressed my sincere gratitude to the Merciful Lord. Day of Departure and Prayer Hildegard Loth Autumn— and harshness breathes to me: Loose leaves from far off days— Yellowed are the words from the pen of my king. I neglected his commands— So even now, from all sides, the antagonists buffet the house with fierce winds and blow the rays from the holy repository. Autumn— and harshness drips upon me from above, dampens the tree, the leafless twigs and branches. Withered and dead are blossoms from the brightest days. The king will come and ask: Where is the fruit? Autumn— and harshness is the voice of the wind to me: It is late, winter stands at the threshold. In sackcloth should you go twelve miles through the snow up to the castle of your lord. Seek from him a New Year and armour of faith and patience. Humbly should you implore the king's heartwarning light, so that some day the fruit of your life shall spring from the blossom on your tree. Mysterious Are His Ways B.S. Teji Before coming to the Lotus Feet of the Holy Master, I, like many others, used to say that there was no need of a Living Master. The scriptures were enough; they provided the necessary food. So I lovingly studied them. But with all that I felt that I was lacking something—and that was inner peace. I had the good fortune to be posted to Sultanpur Lodhi, the sacred soil where Guru Nanak had lived for fourteen years. It was here that I got my first copy of the Guru Granth Sahib, and made it a point to read from it before going to the Court for my work. One day I forgot; but although I had left my house to go to work, on passing a Gurdwara, I remembered and cycled all the way back so as to say my prayers. During this period of about three years (1968-1971) my constant prayer was—Naam daan ki daat bakhsho—Grant me the gift of Naam. At this time I had a dream in which I was shown glimpses of the site where Manav Kendra was to be built. I saw on this site a one-room dwelling which existed at that time and where now stands Master's bungalow. I came to know that this was a place where Guru Gobind Singh Ji had spent some time. I had not heard the name of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji until I Mysterious Are His Ways 169 was fortunate enough to hear Him give a discourse near Ludhi¬ ana. I began to understand the Truth—this Truth was that I could only receive Naam from a Perfect Master, and that it was a tangible experience. I still had no desire to go to Sawan Ashram—but my time had come! One day my father-in-law decided to go to Delhi to have the darshan of the Holy Master. I had arranged for my wife to accompany him, but at the last minute they insisted that I should go also. This meant that I had to apply for two days leave. It was granted. In fact as this short visit was to coincide with the monthly Satsang held at Sawan Ashram at the beginning of June, 1971, within a few minutes of my decision to go, our number grew to eleven. As we arrived at the Ashram, the Holy Master was ready to give the evening meditation sitting. I was stunned to see such a large gathering. When the Master went inside His bungalow we were asked to follow. All that He told us I do not remember but this phrase from the Gurbani stands out: The words of the Guru are the Guru, and Guru is but His words—words being a pool of nectar. If the disciple follows what the Guru says, the Guru would ferry him safely across. I had become completely absorbed in His radiation and love. On that day for the first time I understood the difference between "Gurbani" and "Guru ki Bani"—the words of the Master, oral or written (Gurbani), and the Word of the Master made manifest within (Guru ki Bani). The Holy Master, turning to me said, "So you are only staying for two days!" This went straight to my heart because that was the period of my leave. On the Monday morning I received initiation (Guru ki Bani) from the Holy Master. In September of that year I went with my wife and youngest son aged three years old to Manav Kendra. One evening Master was giving a Satsang and the child began to cry without any apparent reason. Finally, he said he wanted some sweet water, and I immediately conveyed his demand to the Master, who graciously asked for some sugar to be put in the water and brought to the child. This the Master offered Himself with a piece of burfi (Indian candy), but the child refused to take them. 170 The Ocean of Grace Divine At this the Master closed His eyes for a while, and then after a few seconds, opened them and addressed the child saying, "You will certainly have it one day!" At this the child stopped crying and became more cheerful. During the stay at Manav Kendra I was happy to do seva of uprooting thorny bushes. As this site was at the far end of Manav Kendra and Master had only recently come out of the hospital after His operation, it was hard for Him to walk there. The other satsangis working near the road had the benefit of the Master's darshan every day so I began to feel somewhat deprived. I became restless the next day as I had missed darshan again. But the next evening, after Satsang, the Master managed to say a few words to me, "Do not be so disheartened. I knew you were working at the other end of the site but because of my weak health I could not go there." I became very ashamed of my vain desire. During 1972, two colleagues and I completed reading Master's book on Nanak's Jap Ji and His Naam or Word, during our lunch breaks. One of my colleagues inquired if what we had read could be had as a practical experience. I invited him to accompany me to see the Holy Master Himself; so together with three lawyers, we went to Delhi, and the gracious Master initiated them all in a separate room. We came back to our work the next day, but my colleague, was unable to start his Court duties; he sent a message for me to meet him in his retiring room. There I found him so intoxicated that he could not carry on with his work—he was afraid of falling from his chair! When the Holy Master came on tour to the Punjab the local satsangis asked me to beg Him to deliver a Satsang in our place at Dasuya. I personally went to Ludhiana to request the Master to come for that purpose. The Master was so kind He changed His program so that one Satsang could be given at our place. I hurriedly went back to tell them the good news and to make arrangements for the Master's stay. I foolishly thought, however, that one eighty-pound bag of flour would be sufficient for the langar, and this was ordered. When the Master arrived, Satsang was arranged in the Court compound. There was such a huge gathering that I very soon became aware that I had made inadequate food arrangements; it appear- Mysterious Are His Ways 171 ed to me that Master's visit had been turned into a disaster by my foolishness. I became very ashamed of myself, and when the Holy Master left my house, I lay on the ground in despair fully convinced that I had lost everything. I was still weeping when a car arrived at my house and I was told that the dear Master had asked for my wife and me to join Him at the next stop on His Punjab tour. The Master was so merciful that He then took us on to His next stop and even then would not let us go—we were requested to accompany Him for the rest of the day which meant we not only were with Him for His visits to three separate towns, but all the time He was showing me quite silently how arrangements should be made. Thus I learnt in one day what my thirty-five years of living had not taught me. The Holy Master did not utter a single word about my shortcomings: He simply showed me how things should work. Mysterious are the ways and teachings of the Holy Master! He Came to Save the Sinners Naseeb Kaur Long before I actually met Maharaj Ji I used to see Him in my dreams. I, however, felt that I was being haunted by some evil spirit, for during the day as well this figure would overshadow me even when I was engaged in domestic chores. In June 1971 I had an opportunity to visit Delhi and to meet Maharaj Ji. When alone with Him I said, "I recognize You all right. But Your radiance within is far greater than it is without." He was going to explain, when I queried, "When did we meet before?" "I know you from many lives ago," was His reply. "When you will go within, you will see that radiance." Now I was quite satisfied and felt convinced of His competency. Yet there was one thing that kept rankling in my mind; I was fasting when I had come, and it occurred to me that if Maharaj Ji was a perfect Saint, He would help me break my fast. I had hardly gone out of the room when a sevadar called me back. Maharaj Ji sweetly said, "Excuse me. I am sorry. I forgot I had to help you break your fast—come in—have a cup of tea before you go." As commanded, I broke my fast. There was now not the least doubt in my mind about His being God-incarnate. One afternoon, seva was being done near the Father's He Came to Save The Sinners 173 Home in Manav Kendra. A satsangi sister was resting on one of the stairs leading to it. I, however, sat down to rest far below. She called me to come up where she was sitting. I replied, "No sister, I am the lowest of the low—a great sinner. It is His grace that He has accepted me and granted me the gift of Naam which I hardly deserved. I ought to have valued it more." I had just said this when Maharaj Ji sauntered up with a walking stick in His hand, and said, "I have come to save the sinners—the righteous are already saved!" I told the sister that Maharaj Ji had just come. She said, "No, it cannot be—He never stirs out at this hour, particularly when it is hot outside." To ascertain the position, I ran to His residence. I found Tai Ji and Mohan (the driver) resting. "Where is Maharaj Ji?" I inquired. "He is resting inside," was the reply, As I was keen to meet Him, Mohan said, "Why now? He is resting at the moment." In the meanwhile Maharaj Ji from inside asked him to let me enter. I went in and inquired if He had just been outside. He said, "No, ask these people here and make sure." Then He lovingly blessed me as if I were His own child —but He never revealed the secret of His bilocation. Once we went from Dasuya to Srinagar to pay our homage to Maharaj Ji who was staying in the house of S. Jaswant Singh; He called me to His room and said, "Even if you are overtaken by a serious mishap, you have not to worry at all." " "When Your protecting hand is over my head, why should I bother?" I replied. But inwardly I felt as if I had been stung. On our way back, when in Jammu, Maharaj Ji put us into meditation. While within, I saw two satsangis taking a truck loaded with wood for my village; a satsangi was to leave his mortal coil—and this fuel was for his cremation. That very day when we reached home, we learned that our father had been walking up and down outside the house, and some satsangis subsequently told us that when people inquired from him as to what he was doing, he replied, "I am preparing to meet my Lord." He came out of the house, was on his way to the bus stand to catch a bus, when suddenly he collapsed and breathed his last. I kept steady without shedding a tear; it was all His blessings; Maharaj Ji's protecting hand was indeed over my head. His Word was God's Word Kuldip Kaur Mehta Maharaj Kirpal Singh Ji was my youngest uncle, and ever since I can remember, His word was God's word for all of us in the family. Whatever He said even casually turned out to be true. My father, Sardar Prem Singh, the eldest of the three brothers, was not keeping good health. One morning, before going to work, Maharaj Ji remarked to him that on that day there would be one family member less. He went away, and all day long, seeing himself the most likely subject of this prophecy, my father kept waiting for the end. When Maharaj Ji returned and the evening advanced, he brought up the subject. Maharaj Ji looked surprised and said, "But did I say it was going to be you? I never did." A little later Maharaj Ji's own son was suddenly taken ill and in a couple of hours he was gone. Maharaj Ji's love for everyone is proverbial. But He held my mother in special esteem, for what reason I do not know— maybe because she was His eldest sister-in-law. He loved us all very much, and after my father died He gave us the love which a father gives his children. When I was to be married, He attended to everything and it was He who gave me away as the bride. After the ceremony was over and I was preparing to leave with His Word was God's Word 175 my husband, He embraced me and His parting words of advice were: "Deepo (as He always called me) you are now going to your husband's home and from this day that will be your home. There are two things I want you to remember: first, never give yourself airs on account of your parents among your in-laws and their family; second, whenever you come to meet anyone from your parental family, respect the privacy of your in-laws and do not carry back any tales. If you can remember this you will be able to avoid a good deal of trouble." I settled down to a new way of life, and the years passed with their ups and downs. My husband was an initiate of Hazur Baba Sawan Singh, and he too, from his childhood, knew Maharaj Ji very closely as he and his parents lived in Lahore. Being on the Path and sharing this love for Maharaj Ji from our early years has been a bond of great strength between us; but there was one sorrow, one emptiness in my life: I had no children. Each time I was in the family way, something would go wrong and it would all end in disappointment. After the third such failure, I wept bitterly, exclaiming: "Mother, my neighbors and friends tell me this or that. Someone tells me I must be under the shadow of some evil spirit, another tells me to go to this shrine or to that temple, still another advises I get some charmed thread or talisman. They want me to go to this holy man or to that, but Mother for me Maharaj Ji is everything and I do not see why I should go to anyone else. I cannot bring myself to it." On my mentioning Maharaj Ji my mother (Mata Janaki) took out a letter she had received from Him. He had remembered me and had asked her to bring me along with her when she went to Rajpur. "If I came," I said, "I am going to have it out with Him! He Himself is the greatest—He can do anything. Why doesn't He do something for me?" I accompanied my mother to Rajpur, and we would visit Maharaj Ji every morning. The first two days I could not muster my courage to say anything. On the third morning, Maharaj Ji was indoors. My mother went in but I continued to sit outside. Seeing her, Maharaj Ji said, "Hasn't Deepo come today?" On learning I was sitting outside, He exclaimed, "Have I put an 'out of bounds' sign outside? Then why is she outside?" And He 176 The Ocean of Grace Divine called for me to come in. My mother then said that I had come prepared to have a row with Him. Maharaj Ji sat up on His bed and said, "Gome right in. I am ready for the fight. Start!" He no sooner gave the signal than I let myself go, unlocking the tale of my woe. "You are my Guru, you are my God, You are my everything. Then why should others have to tell me to go here of there, to get this talisman or that?" I asked. As I let myself go, Maharaj Ji had got up from His bed and had come to sit by me. He comforted me and laughed at me, "So you want a talisman? So you want a magic thread? Give me a piece of paper and we will make a talisman for her." Tai Ji handed Him a pen and a bit of paper and He began drawing all kinds of things on it and handed it to me. Then after I had my say and my sobbing had subsided, He pointed to a fruit tree outside, "Have you seen how it grows, how it comes to flower, how from the flower the raw fruit emerges, and how in course of time you get the ripe mango from the raw fruit? The human body is like a tree which comes to flower and later to fruit. Such is the nature of life." He patted me and reassured me, "Hazur's hand is always over you. You don't have to worry. All will be well!" Such was the magic in His words that I left completely assured. When I was in the family way again, things began to go wrong as in the past. My mother wrote to the Master, and He replied suggesting that I place myself under a doctor's treatment. He further suggested that she bring me to Rajpur. I went with my mother, and when Maharaj Ji would come up we would have His darshan. One day when He was visiting, He picked up my bottle of medicine and seeing the label, began reading out with evident amusement, " 'Male child guaranteed.' Ah ha, sure guarantee! Son for sure!" Noting the irony in His tone I told my mother that it would be a girl for sure, not a boy. When the time came, Maharaj Ji was in Delhi, The last three days were extremely difficult—a nightmare. Finally on 6th October a little past midnight I was delivered of a daughter by Caesarean section. Maharaj Ji came to visit me in hospital two days later When I spoke of my acute weakness on account of the operation, He comforted me, "What is an operation? When the plaster His Word was God's Word 177 begins falling off the wall, the mason comes and clears it all away, takes out all the loose bits, and replasters it. He then puts a coat of whitewash over it and it is all the same once again, no difference—it is perfectly the same again. An operation is like that too. These doctors, they cut you up, fix everything in place, stitch you up again and you are as well as you ever were. So don't worry, you will be on your feet soon." He had only to say these words, and it became so. In His Service Jiwan Singh It was in 1930 that the God Power guided me to the Feet of Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj. When I stood with folded hands before that Exalted Being, He looked at me for about five minute and then permitted me to enter the Initiation Hall. At that time Maharaj Kirpal Singh was delivering Satsang at Lahore, to water saplings like me. One day my youngest brother came from his village to see me so I did not go to Satsang. That night Hazur appeared to me in a dream and rebuked me: "An instruction was given to you, but you have overlooked it." From that day I did not miss a single Satsang of His Holiness Sant Kirpal Singh. In addition to delivering Satsang at Lahore and Amritsar, His Holiness was asked by Hazur to deliver Satsang in Sheikapura, a town about thirty miles away. His Holiness used to go there by bus. He did not accept even a glass of water from Sardar Sanghara Singh at whose residence Satsang was held; He returned to Lahore without drinking or eating anything. The same was the case when He went to Amritsar for Satsang. My personal acquaintance with His Holiness Sant Kirpal Singh started in 1938 when I was permitted to help Him collect in His Service 179 material for Gurmat Sidhant; this afforded me the opportunity to meet Him almost daily. His description in Gurmat Sidhant of the relationship between Master and disciple, and the love and respect linking them, made a great impact on all of us. I would collect from His house whatever part of the manuscript of Gurmat Sidhant that was ready; I would make a fair copy of it by hand, and return it next morning. Once when I went to collect the work, He explained some points in the manuscript and blessed me as usual; but when I looked back after leaving Him, I found He was still looking at me. I looked back two or three times more—He was still standing there looking at me. I could not understand this at the time. The next day I had a very bad fall; I had to remain in bed for a month. It was then that I realized the grace of the Godman had saved me from permanent injury. One morning I entered His room, He was sleeping on a cot. I saw His naked feet and the Padam—lotus sign. Exactly at 9:30 He got up; He praised the Guru Power for His prompt awakening. In five minutes He was dressed, we both went downstairs, and He gave me the necessary instructions. So simple and innocent were His ways that no one could realize He was an officer of the Miliary Accounts Department let alone a God-inman. After retirement in 1968, I came to Sawan Ashram and started helping S. Bishan Singh Ji with the library work. Later the accountancy work was also entrusted to me. I would show His Holiness the day-to-day transactions listed in a ledger so that He could check all the Ashram activities. This was a special blessing to be able to have His darshan every evening before I left the Ashram for my home. I have had my shortcomings, but He continued showering His love on me. I did not press any of my relatives, except my wife, to become disciples of Hazur or of His Holiness Sant Kirpal Singh. As a duty I brought them all to Satsang so that even if they could not accept the Path now, it may be of benefit should it be their destiny to meet a competent Master in their next lives. However, the Great Master was so gracious; one night my brother-in-law could not get relief from a cough and heavy cold; The Ocean of Grace Divine he was suddenly awakened and saw Light with the Form of Hazur changing into that of His Holiness Sant Kirpal Singh. He was ordered by His Holiness to give up alcohol and meat, and told there would then be no more disease. He obeyed, his health improved, and later on the whole family willingly became disciples. Twice when their car was overturned all of them were saved. His Holiness used to tell us, "The Savior is more powerful than the negative power," Such blessings one can never forget. How We Met The Master Ric Finnie The Master physically appeared before us in early September 1970. This happened in a forest in the Himalayas not far from the source of the river Beas. My wife was present and my son was awaiting birth. To fully describe the experience requires a brief explanation to show how I found out who actually appeared before me and what we were doing there at the time; all Master's wonderfull work to be sure. Before going to India, I and a friend (who is also an initate of Master Kirpal) heard of a boy who had the reputation of having some inner knowledge and inner light. We decided to go and see him. He was living five hundred miles away from our residence and when we walked in he was sitting on the floor in a half lotus position—he had a shining face. He talked to us, and he showed us some pictures and gave us information on Master Kirpal Singh. We left the residence of that boy with a boost. About six months later when my wife and I went to India overland from Europe we decided to spend the monsoon months in the Himalayas. We were directed by some friend to Manali in the Kulu Valley, a hill station well known for natural beauty, 182 The Ocean of Grace Divine snowy peaks, green forests, fast rivers, apple orchards and a number of thousand-year-old temples. It all had a very peaceful radiation. As soon as we arrived we looked for a house to live in. We often took walks in the forest; it was not a big forest but the pine trees stood very tall. The forest floor was clear and light, full of good mushrooms to gather. There was the site of the Old Adimba Temple. This was a sacred forest in the gods' valley. Our house was on the edge. One day we noticed two new cars had come to the neighborhood, to the rest-house which was surrounded by an apple orchard at the edge of the forest. The occupants attracted our attention; we saw these people several times during the next few days as they came and went. As we were going home through the forest in the evening around sunset we came upon two men seemingly out for a walk. Both were elderly Indians, one dressed in Western style, and one in the Sikh form. The one who was a Sikh engaged me in polite conversation, asking where I was from, and how we enjoyed India and so on. The moment He addressed me my consciousness was immediately, irresistibly, drawn up to the level of the third eye, and while I answered His questions my voice was trembling. I did not know the reason for this helplessness of mine; I noticed only His head with much Light in the face. I was looking at Him like a child, and after a few moments like this I realized Who He was; I exclaimed quite loudly in a child-like way, "Oh!" He then said, "Thank you very much," and stepped back. After that I didn't see Him anymore. No sooner had I realized who it was than He had confirmed it—I was completely intoxicated with some sort of Divine Nectar. I must have stayed like that for three or four hours. I didn't want to talk to anyone or be with them. Just after the moment of meeting I started to walk home quickly as there was no point in losing what I had just received. I had never experienced anything like that and wanted to safeguard it. Anyway, the other man came after me and he seemed quite surprised to have witnessed this happening. He asked in a serious way if I was a vegetarian and was I interested in spirituality, was I meditating, and things like that. Anyway, before taking initiation in 1972 in Montreal, How We Met the Master 183 Canada, we wrote to the Master and He confirmed His presence in the forest at that time. Our second personal meeting occurred at Hardwar during the Kumbha Mela of 1974. I would say it is a personal souvenir in exceptional circumstances. My wife, my son and I attended the Conference on Unity of Man at Sawan Ashram; when it was over we went to south India to the place where our son had been born. After one month we returned to Delhi, and desiring to see the Master once more, we proceeded to Dehra Dun (Manav Kendra). Arriving there we were told Master had left that day and there was no room so we could not stay there at night. We heard the Master was in Hardwar and no foreigners were to go there. As we had the intention to see the Kumbha Mela we left for Hardwar the next morning after a poor night in a Dehra Dun hotel. We took a group taxi to Hardwar. We didn't know what was going on with the Master over there and we weren't sure it would be possible to see Him. Anyway, we started by taking a refreshing bath in the Ganges, then we crossed the bridges over the fast flowing river; the place was full of pilgrims. From a distance we noticed a banner with the names of Ruhani Satsang and Kirpal Singh on it, so we walked over the dry bed part of the Ganges where there was a nest of camps on the opposite bank. We were happy to find the way home but not too sure of the kind of reception we were to expect. We arrived in the middle part of the day, the camp was practically empty, there were a few Indian disciples, and the Langhar staff. Master was in His tent resting. There was another Western boy and he was also not too sure of his reception at the Camp. In the afternoon we went into Master's tent and Master asked where we were putting up, and if we had any bedding, and finally agreed to let us stay in the security tent. He told us to make the best use of our time while we were there. Every morning and evening there was a Darshan, and the Master would put the devotees into meditation; there was peace, beauty, and bliss of the simplest, unforgetable quality. We had an opportunity there to see Master doing the work of God among His humble faithful brothers. The Master, after having put these people into meditation, would move on to a bench on the right 184 The Ocean of Grace Divine side of the gathering, put His turban near Him on the bench, and look lovingly all over mother earth so specially sacred and dear to Him—He must have known that this was His last Kumbha Mela in the old tired body He had asked to work so much. Anyone who would have looked into His eyes at that time would have felt deeply related and very close to Him as one could see He was enjoying the gift of life and love in a very sweet and penetrating fashion. The next day was the highlight of our stay at Hardwar with the Master, this was the opening procession of the Mela at the end of which thousands of pilgrims go bathing together into the sacred river. We all went to the side of the procession route; Master came and sat down in a chair with all His children around Him under a freshly painted banner of Ruhani Satsang. Then we all watched the procession. Master had a basket of garlands of orange fragrant flowers. We could see many bands and military men on beautiful big horses who would keep the crowd in order and then thousands of Sadhus, Rishis, Mahatmas, and Swamis wearing different robes in sacred colors. Thousands of naked sadhus coming down from the mountains were bearing garlands of orange flowers and had their long hair tied in chignons bigger than their heads. Some naked sadhus, both male and female, had long hair, but some had shaved heads. Others were in orange robes, and some wearing brillant dresses were carried on flowercovered litters. Statues of gods were carried, some sadhus were dancing, and others playing music. Many Swamis stopped at Master's feet, and they were garlanded and embraced by Him. The procession lasted more than two hours and it was the most fantastic thing we ever watched. It is considered by Indians as a great blessing to be there, and we felt there the powerful sacred charging of mystic India in the pure tradition of all time at the feet of our most sacred Master. After three days and two nights, the Master left to go to Manav Kendra, and like everybody else, we just followed. The Abundance of Love B.N. Mehta I was initiated at the age of sixteen by Baba Bagga Singh of Tarn Taran who was an initiate of Baba Jaimal Singh. I did not fully grasp the theory which he taught, I only remembered the mantra which he gave me. I was God-fearing from a very early age and I had great regard for all saints. I heard about Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj through my mother who used to attend His Satsangs; she pressed me to go also, but I avoided it. I can never forget my first meeting with the Master—it was in 1952. I was standing near our house, and the Master came walking by with some other people. When we passed each other I immediately knew that He was Sant Kirpal Singh although I had never seen Him before. We stood and stared at each other; that look I can never forget. It was that look which brought me to His Holy Feet—although I did not go to Him until three years later. I used to go to the office on a bicycle, and I used to pass close to Sawan Ashram. One day my bicycle somehow turned into the Ashram; I don't know how it happened. There was a gathering of people, and Master was on the dais; at that time I was not much impressed, and I soon left. After a week my bicycle took me there again, I was drawn into 186 The Ocean of Grace Divine the Ashram. On that day the Master was not feeling well and the Sangat was listening to a tape recording of one of His discourses—the Master was inside His house. I felt critical that the Sangat was outside and the Master was inside His house, so again I went away. But on the next visit I stayed for a longer time; I received something, some pleasure, something which I can't describe—indeed nobody can describe what that pleasure is. Immediately after that Satsang it was announced that the Master was leaving for His first foreign tour and would be away for six or seven months. It was also announced that He would give initiation on the following day. I felt the next six months would be a very difficult time for me unless I had been initiated, so I felt the greatest need for initiation. I asked my wife if she was ready for it, and although she said she was not, both of us went next morning to the Ashram. We didn't know the rules of the Ashram, we just sat under a tree about fifty feet from the Master's house; we were alone, all the other people were standing by the gate of the Master's house waiting for Him to come out. When the Master came out He immediately came to us without talking to anyone else. We were so astonished, we had never met Him before, and here He was coming directly to us! We folded our hands in respect, Master asked us, "You have come?" I said, "Yes." I was so very pleased — so astonished. He then asked, "Why have you come? For initiation? All right, come along." So we sat for initiation, and with His blessing both of us had a good experience; our spiritual life started from that day. I began going to the Ashram every day; I enjoyed it because at that time the Sangat was so full of love, everyone would talk about the Master during His absence. I felt the Master was showering love towards me and that "He is my own and I am His." When the Master returned He would order everyone to keep the diary; I used to show Him my diary every day, and He was very pleased; He guided me and helped me to reform my life. Once at Satsang I was sitting just in front of Him—He just looked into my eyes and what I got that day I can never forget; The Abundance of Love 187 golden rays came from His eyes. He raised me above bodyconsciousness and I saw beams of golden Light. Before my wife died in 1963, Master very clearly told me, "She is leaving. You are not to worry about her soul, I'll take care of it." He saved me from any sorrow and grief. The morning we took her mortal remains to the cremation place the Master was holding initiation at the Ashram. I sent Him a message and He just kept silent for a few moments. In the evening He came to my house. My children were so very sad, they were crying. The Master told us, "Although I was in the initiation hall this morning I was also with you at the cremation place." These are words which I can never forget—"I was with you there." How much love He gave me at that time! Then He brought me closer to His Holy Feet; He gave me some seva, construction work, and afterwards the general management of the Ashram. Master told me that before I started any work I should always consult Him; He would sometimes scold me if I did anything without getting His permission first. On one occasion a certain satsangi had repeatedly imposed himself on the Master; the Master had already devoted time to him. Later, when the Master walked out of His house, he tried to stop Him once again. This time the Master decided to ignore him, and He walked on. The satsangi was in great distress and called out, "For the sake of Hazur You must talk to me!" The moment he mentioned the name of Baba Sawan Singh the Master stopped at once and returned to talk to him. I was standing nearby and afterwards the Master remarked to me that since He had been called in the name of His Guru He had no choice but to stop; such was His reverence for the name of His Master. Once a young woman came to see the Master. After the usual greetings the Master asked her, "Anything new?" She had nothing to report, so He said again, "Are you sure you have nothing new to tell me?" She then remembered that the day before a centipede had got onto her hand. Master asked her what she had done about it. "I just panicked and cried, 'Oh Maharaj Ji!' and tried to shake it off." "And did it come off?" the Master asked, "Oh Maharaj Ji, it came right off through Your grace." On hearing this Master looked at her and then at all the sat- 188 The Ocean of Grace Divine sangis present and said, "Even the insects and animals listen to me—it is only you humans who do not." I was once on tour with the Master, and we visited Ludh¬ iana. At Satsang there I happened to see a holy man who looked rather like Baba Bagga Singh, my first Guru. Seeing this resemblance I began to remember my former teacher, and I had an intense desire to have his darshan again, especially as he lived in those very parts. Later in the evening the Master invited me to go for a walk with Him. As we walked about the streets I suddenly found myself outside a house where Baba Bagga Singh was sitting on the veranda. Leaving me there the Master turned and walked rapidly away. He had answered my wish, but for my part I was frightened—was it possible that He was angry with me and that was why He had left me so suddenly and quickly? I hurried after Him but no matter how fast I walked the Master walked much faster and I could not catch up with Him. During His last days on earth the Master gave us many hints of His coming departure. On about August 14th Master was lying on the roof terrace in the evening. Dr. Harbhajan Singh suggested that His bed be moved away from under the tree, adding that it was not healthy to be there. The Master remarked, "There aren't many days left. But if you must," and motioned for the bed to be moved. When I remarked to Him, "You give us such an abundance of Your love in such excess, and we don't deserve it," He replied, "It will not go on like this." He said this only a few days before the end, and I did not realize His meaning. Coming to His Feet Rudolf Cascone If this article causes any reader the least displeasure I most humbly beg for forgiveness from the loving heart of His Holiness Sant Kirpal Singh. I was born in New York and lived in Brooklyn and Long Island for many years—everyone knows how city life can tincture one's personality. Resentment is an easy thing to acquire as an accepted mode of social behaviour. It is only when one meets a Living Example of True Love and Holiness that all these social modes begin to depart and one begins to move in, and be motivated by love for God's creation, all humanity and all nature. Sometimes at moments of despair my heart would cry out for truth and love from God, and would wish there was a true Path to follow with others of the same mind searching for true love and fellowship. My prayer was answered in the God-form of my cousin. She would be my direct link to this Path. She was involved in yogas, spiritual and mystical circles with which I had had only brief encounters. But the message was so clear that now was to be the time for me to make myself ready, and my cousin would lead me to the truth. 190 The Ocean of Grace Divine I had already left my job some four years ago and had moved to Florida as I knew that whatever would happen would happen there. After a few weeks of being associated with my cousin, her family and friends, my whole life was being drastically changed and overhauled. Truth was being stressed in my work and relationship between individuals. After attending a few meditation meetings at a Unity Church, strange and wonderful things were taking place. I would hear trumpets all around and at different times, telling me to wake up, wake up, the time has come. At first I would suppose it to be outside on the radio or a passing car, but later I found it to be within myself. Then my cousin introduced me to a young couple who lived next door to her who were initiates of Master Kirpal Singh; I was advised to read Morning Talks and other books of the Master. From the experiences and dreams I was having, my cousin deduced that something of a great nature was about to happen to me and perhaps it was linked up with this great Saint from India who was coming to the West. The eventful day arrived in December 1972 when the Master would appear at the Galt Ocean Mile Hotel in Florida. We were driving along the route towards the Hotel and all along the trumpets were still in my ear, but once we were within a mile or so of the Hotel it stopped; all was silence. There were hundreds of people there as we awaited the Master. Later my cousin said that around me was a pink aura. The Master had a star in His right eye as He gave darshan to everyone. My cousin said He looked just like a big babe sitting there. We went the next night to see Him, and we all took initiation papers not knowing if it was the right thing to do. I wrote my cousin a letter the day after expressing my doubts as to the Master's authenticity and expressed these doubts verbally to her, to which she replied that He was, in her estimation genuine—a true Saint. She told me to sit on the beach with her husband who was in the same boat as I was in. It now came to me at this point to sacrifice all doubt. I knew she was right and I knew I would have to take the first step forward towards the Master. This I did that very day. There was a meeting in a local high Coming to His Feet 191 school which I attended where the Master was speaking. The Master was to have two meetings here, one in the afternoon and one in the evening. As I was early, I browsed around and looked at some books. Two books struck my eye: Mystery of Death and Spirituality. I watched two young men struggle over which book to buy, when one finally chose Mystery of Death this decision made me choose the other book, which was more of a beginner's introduction to the Path. I sat down on the right side of the auditorium awaiting the Master. I felt that a decision made on my own without any prompting was the right and only way to make any sense. I was all alone now and it was just myself and a Saint; I needed help. My mind was revolting from the position in which the self had placed it. It now realized it would have to sacrifice everything at the Feet of this Master and was so outlandish in its requests I fain repeat them here for fear of shocking some dear ones. I truly needed help, and at an appropriate time while looking at the book on my lap-a light flashed from its cover and struck the eye of someone sitting in the row behind me. He waited for a moment and then got up and sat next to me introducing himself. He told me how he had a difficult time deciding to be initiated. He pointed out a passage where the Master said He would accept anyone on an experimental or trial basis to see for himself the worth and value and competency of the Master and the Path. I had already decided to be initiated and needed no prompting in this, but I was grateful for the company and friendliness sent by the God Power overhead. The struggle continued however, as the Master came down the aisle towards me I was in a turbulent strife and not wanting to even be near Him. As the crowd surged forward I too was pushed to within a few feet from where the Master would pass. I was now the first on the aisle. I repeated my wish not to be so close but my new friend insisted it would be my pleasure. Here I waited for the Master to pass by. With hands folded I greeted Him. He walked on His toes and as He walked He was aware of everything and everyone being very careful and gentle. He was dressed in white. As He came to me His whole body took hold and He 192 The Ocean of Grace Divine rose within Himself to a tight strain as if He were walking on the edge of a wire. I knew He had felt all my turbulent emotions and hostility. The Master spoke for a while, and after answering many questions, the meeting ended. But now the turbulence was multiplied and I left the building to ride about in my car, and reevaluate what had taken place. My mind was now so against Him that it was only through sheer obstinate will, and the righteousness which was saying this is the last chance I had in life and I should not lose it at any cost, which drew me back. Back again at the high school I was found by my new friend. He now told me I should be seated in a more appropriate seat. He took a pillow he had and placed it right at the Feet of the Master, and made me sit there. Thanks to the Master I have never had any more trouble of this nature. The mind had accepted Him by His Grace. The next day was initiation day and we were told not to eat anything, but a little tea was acceptable. I arrived early at the Women's Club in Ft. Lauderdale, and the previous evening I had made sure of its location. My cousin had mentioned to me to be aware of every detail of moments of importance like this. So each step was noted, what number was given to me as I signed the register and where I should sit: on the Master's right and in the front row. The Master came with a few other disciples. It was a beautiful morning. As the instructions were being given we all settled down and meditation began. I had not been aware of hardly anyone else except the Master and my eyes were from the last days enlarged and slightly extended from the sockets. So in meditation I could not keep them closed for any length of time, and naturally they opened; to my surprise I found the Master was seated on a chair directly in front of me looking straight at me. As I looked at Him, He was not angry, rather He was smiling. We seemed to be talking to each other. He said, "Oh, you caught me." But I said, "Oh no, it is You who have caught me." Then as I looked deeper I asked, "Who are You?" And it was then that He separated Himself into layers right in front of my eyes. Each layer or each part separate from each other; and He would change color also, from light to dark and vice versa. I then Coming to His Feet 193 closed my eyes in respect, and the Master came down with such agility it sounded as if He were bouncing down to where I was and came around in back of me where He bent my head forward and pressed my eyes back into my sockets. I had good experience from then on and kept my head bent forward in a humble manner and received His grace of Naam, burning the seed of karmic impressions so as to make them not take root, all by His grace. The Master then blessed our food and left for His hotel and a little later, the airport. So He came, this wondrous Godman from the East to give His priceless jewel of love and grace of which my heart and soul were to know its worth only later. Memories of Meetings With the Master Michael Ravens It was not a planned trip but the urge became too great to resist. I arrived in Washington, D.G. September 20, 1972. The excitement intensified by the second. The first thing I noticed was that the people were all intoxicated floating on a cloud, radiating peace and love. I thought to myself, yes, I've come to the right place. I entered the American Legion Hall in Fairfax, Virginia and waited for the arrival of the Master. The moment I had been waiting for arrived. Master walked in, or should I say floated in on the waves of a blissful river. Master turned around to greet and hug an old disciple. This shocked me because as I mentioned, it appeared as if He was floating in on a river and a river only goes in one direction. Well, this river just turned around mid-stream. I realized a little of the power of this great being. I enjoyed five days of spiritual growth and then had to part. It was two weeks after our parting that the impact of our meeting manifested in tears. I, to some extent, realized what an ocean of love I was in and I was feeling the pangs of separation. I now awaited anxiously for the Master's arrival in Florida on December 2nd. During this interval, with the grace of the Master, I grew a great deal in man-making and was putting in Memories of Meetings With the Master 195 more time to my spiritual practices. Master swept Florida like monsoon rains, watering everyone's field to capacity. Of course the most inspiring moment of eyes into eyes cannot be recorded, but there are two events that stand out prominently in my mind. The first was an out-door banquet at Sunnie Cowen's home. Master related the story of the banquet that Lord Vishnu arranged where he invited the gods and goddesses and the others. He said, "Eat to your heart's content, but my condition is—don't bend your elbows." The demons thought, "Well, how can we eat if we don't bend our elbows? Lord Vishnu is making a mockery of us." And they left in a huff. Now the gods and goddesses thought, "Lord Vishnu has said this, it must have some meaning." They soon figured out, "If we feed each other, we won't bend our elbows. And all can enjoy the beautiful feast." Master said, "Well, you have this feast before you. My condition is: don't bend your elbows." Master chuckled and went into the house. At this point, I had my plate filled and commenced going about trying to feed others. Most declined, and a few accepted saying, "Isn't that cute. Master was only joking." After about fifteen or twenty minutes, having no one willing to be fed, and not having a morsel in my mouth, I bent my elbows. When the meal was over, Master came out and His first question was, "How many did not bend their elbows?" My hand started to go up, and came down fast. Oh, the pain of not having His pleasure! The second event that impressed me strongly was Master's departure from Florida. This was His last stop in North America. About one or two hundred people went to have the last sight of the Master at the airport. A chair was brought for Master and we all sat at His Feet. No words were spoken for twenty minutes Master was just filling our souls with His Darshan. A thought, a prayer, or call it what you may, welled up in me: "Full of sins am I. Will You wash me clean?"Master looked at me directly in the eyes and shook His head, "Yes." A few moments later a jet-set looking woman saw the crowd crying (everyone was crying) and she ventured forward to Master and asked, "Why are these people crying?" Master looked her straight in the eyes and said, "Love." And the next thing she was crying with us. 196 The Ocean of Grace Divine I again had the good fortune to be with our Master from July 23rd to August 21st, 1973. One of the first things He said to me was. "Forget America, forget your home, forget your family, forget your friends. The purpose you've come here for is to improve in your meditations." Well and fine, but, my mother said to send her love, to thank the Master for His blessings, and to request His grace. I was stuck! After about three days of carrying the burden I wrote a note stating the above and put it on the Master's chair before the Darshan talk. Master came in and picked up the letter, gave it His undivided attention for about ten minutes. He asked, "Who put this here?" I raised my hand. He asked, "How long have you been here?" I said, "Three days." He then chuckled and said, "Oh, you must have forgotten to give it to me." One night Master had a tea party for the sevadars (those doing service during the July Bhandara). Master was serving them and we were invited. We were each served a plate of confections and a cup of tea. I had put a confection into my mouth but was so captivated by the Master's radiant beauty and charm that my mouth remained half open with confection in it. Master bent over and looked me straight in the eyes, and with a humorous glance said, "Chew, chew!" Master chuckled and His humor infected everybody. One day in August 1973, Master was sick so the Darshans were cancelled. On the following day Master was still sick, but He had us called to His room saying He wanted our darshan. Prior to going to Master, I had been reading The Crown of Life. After we left Master's room I realized I had left the book there. I was a little bit afraid to go back up and intrude on the Master. I approached Master's door as silent as a mouse and looked to the back of the room where I was sitting: no book! Master had taken His turban off and was lying down. (There were only a few seconds between our leaving and my return). Master looked up and said, "Did you lose something?" I said, "I thought I left a book here." Master struck a pun, "Oh, you lost your crown." He laughed, produced the book which was hidden behind Him, and presented it to me. The day came only too soon when I had to leave. It was Memories of Meetings With the Master 197 August 21st, 1973. At the evening Darshan Master told me to come see Him before I left. The Westerners had been invited to dinner this evening by Tai Ji's daughter, Pushpa. But I thought it would be better to spend my last evening in meditation. The time of my departure neared. I went to Master's house, but could not get in. The doors were locked. I was able to wake a man who was sleeping on Master's porch, but the inner door was locked and he didn't have the key. I was very upset. I went to the kitchen and made a cup of tea. I wondered, "Will I go without seeing the Master?" Suddenly all the Westerners pulled up. Harcharan Singh, who was with them, had the key and he opened the door. Master was sitting up waiting for me. Master said some beautiful words and patted me on the back. Harcharan took two Polaroid photos of me at the Master's Feet. Master took the photos and handed me one, saying, "This one is better." He took it back, and dated and autographed it. I left that house in such high spirits that I had a smile on my face which I was unable to remove. I tried to pull it down forcibly with my hands, but was unable to succeed. The love was radiating so strong that I didn't feel the pain of parting. Master's overflowing grace permitted me to visit Him again from June 23rd to August 16th, 1974. Whoever dreamed He would leave? That beautiful Form that we loved so dear is no longer with us, but His unbounded Love will Work for eternity. In Wonder and Awe of His Perfect Presence Richard Handel I was initiated in 1970, but was not able to be in the physical presence of our Beloved Master until He came to the United States in 1972 on His third world tour. My first memory of our Master was in Washington. I still vividly recall that just before He came through customs at the Washington airport everything was quiet. Then all the babies started to cry. Then the Master came out and many of His bigger children started to cry. By any standard of judgement that I know, and by all known historical accounts, the most spiritually advanced person ever to visit the Western Hemisphere was embarking on His visit to the United States. My mind stopped at the thought; we could have but a small idea of the Being we were to encounter. The Master was giving a talk a few nights later. I was sitting at His Feet. He seemed to be constantly looking at me through His talk. My body was wracked with sobs as our eyes were locked in mystic embrace. At last, at last, I was in communion with the Lord. God had come down from the Beyond and put on a body of flesh to take us back to His Home. I could only cry my thanks to Him for allowing me to witness such perfection. Nothing else was wanted, nothing else could be added; In Wonder and Awe of His Perfect Presence 199 all was perfect. It was real, the most real thing that ever happened to me. Here was total happiness. I remember being strongly attracted to the pictures of Baba Sawan Singh; He seemed to be the most beautiful being that could ever grace the human form. About a week after the Master had arrived in Washington, I was having His darshan when His form changed into that of Baba Sawan Singh for what seemed like the rest of His talk. My heart was pierced to be able to see the physical form of Hazur. Through His grace, Kirpal was granting me my wish to see the Great Master, showing me that the same Power was working at a different human pole. Though Hazur would often again manifest through Kirpal, my desire to see Hazur lessened as my desire to see our Beloved Master grew. During another talk in Washington, my mind was unduly disturbed by unloving thoughts towards a satsangi brother. I was to aid in bringing the taping equipment to another site for a talk that our Master was going to give. Master put us in meditation and then had to leave to be in time for His next talk. I also left to help transport the tape equipment. I was disturbed with my brother because he had borrowed my car to go on an errand without asking me and I did not know where it was. I angrily asked him where the car was and reprimanded him for his behavior. As it turned out, the car was parked outside the hall instead of at the motel where we were staying. I walked down to have our Master's darshan as He was leaving. However the driver of His car had misplaced the keys. Another car was looked for but the owner was not found. It then occurred to me that I could offer my services. So Mr. and Mrs. Khanna got in the back. Our Master got in front and we started driving to the Khanna's house. The ride was like the most beautiful fairy tale. It was in the morning and there seemed to be no other cars on the road. The sun was streaming down. Mr. Khanna remarked, "You know, you're very lucky to have the Lord in your car." I agreed. After a timeless time we arrived at the Khanna's where I thanked the Master for allowing me to drive Him. In His inimitable way He replied, "That's all right." I learned that if the Master wants to shower His grace on you, He'll do it no matter how impossible the circumstances 200 The Ocean of Grace Divine I also learned that I should not get angry with anyone as there is something divine behind everything. The three month tour of the United States and Canada seemed like one long period of intoxication. He put us in meditation in the morning, answered questions in the afternoon, gave talks at night and invariably gave us His darshan in small groups in the afternoon and late evening. To hear about the Path of the Masters and to gain the understanding of the theory is a blessing I did not even hope for years ago—to be aware of the fact that there was a Living Master, was astounding. But to actually come in contact with Him—surely the greatest Master of all time— receive His life impulse through initiation, makes the mind stop, in disbelief. We certainly must be puppets of a Higher Power, because none of this could have happened through our own efforts. I was fortunate enough to be able to come to India for six weeks in November and December 1973. As incredible as my time with the Master seemed on His world tour, it was even more so in India. It is humbling to see how much the Master gives. It's impossible to know how much He can give. I had thought that we had been blessed with His frequent darshan in the States, but here in India it seemed almost non-stop. We would go over to His house in the morning at about 8:30 and He would talk with us. Later He would attend to His Indian devotees. From 1:00 to 3:00 p.m. would be the lunch break, then back to the Master's house until 9:00 or 10:00 at night. I became like an addict and wanted only to look at Him. I was at times perhaps over-zealous, but I could not help myself. During the time I was there, our Master went on His tour to Bombay and we were also allowed to go. On some of the stops we saw the encouraging scene of some dear ones lying prostrate. People tried bringing them back to this plane of consciousness, but sometimes met with little success. During one initiation, Master gave some children a sitting for the Sound. After a while the Master came back to take them out of meditation. He went up to one boy and knocked him on the head rather forcefully. Nothing happened. Someone offered to help. The Master laughingly said, "Leave him—he's in samadhi." In Wonder and Awe of His Perfect Presence 201 Back at the Ashram Master continued to pour out His grace making each one think that he received something extra from Him. Occasionally He allowed me to come upstairs to His bedroom to look at Him as He was doing His correspondence or meeting with individuals. The room was saturated with His Radiant Presence and everything took on a wondrous unearthly hue. My last memory of our Beloved Most Perfect Master was December 31, 1973. My plane arrangements had been changed once, and I had said good-bye to the Master for what I thought was the last time on three separate occasions. It was late at night and the Master was up in His room with Gyani Ji. I went into that charged atmosphere and thanked the Master for giving so much to me. I told Him that I hoped I could keep His commandments. His eyes were speaking to me in a language only He can fully understand. He was smiling and I was smiling that gigantic smile which our Master alone can make appear. I bowed my head onto His Lotus Feet in gratitude for giving that which no one but God can give. He patted me on the back with His silken touch of love and laughingly said, "Go jolly." Our eyes met and all was perfection. The sweet memories of our True Beloved are forever embedded in our hearts. We can only be grateful that He chose to walk among us for a time. May His passing from the earth bring us closer to Him in the Beyond. The Forming of Manav Kendra of Maine Sean Sieglen Master shocked and overjoyed us members of the then named "Kirpal Goat Farm" in April, 1972, by replying to our descriptive letter of the farm, "During my tour we will be able to discuss as to whether your place should be an Ashram or Manav Kendra." When Master came the following September, I got up the courage to go see Him at Sharma's farm. As I broached the subject of our place in Maine, Master said, "Oh, we will talk about that at Sant Bani," and that was that. I should perhaps mention here that in 1969 my wife, Pamela, and I were informed by dreams and meditations to come to Maine and build a "house of God," quite before the following year when we were actually brought to the Path. We did in fact find the 240 acres that became Manav Kendra and immediately built the 30 ft. x 24 ft. Meditation Hall according to the inner guidance, but we had no idea why we should be doing so. So Mainers nervous, faltering in mid-October of the tour our little group of a dozen showed at Master's cottage at Sant Bani. I was extremely but like a loving grandfather He nurtured along my thoughts. He drew out of me what we did for work, our The Forming of Manav Kendra of Maine 203 meditation schedule, and our plans for the future. He talked about our goats and alluded to a future school. Then He looked around the room and chuckled, "Well, should I go up there?" Khanna Ji, Reno, and Ben Ringel all assured Master that it was too far and that they would take care of visiting; and although I didn't want to tire Him out, I was disappointed because He had written to me, "We will see about visiting your farm on the tour, God willing." But it was not meant to be. Sudden activities prevented Ben and Khanna from going, so only Reno, expert realtor, rancher, and appraiser, went; his evening report to Master was glowing—and so was Master. He called for photographs and patted me on the back several times. "Do your best, and leave the rest to God," He said. On the next night (our third meeting) I still didn't know what Master was creating in Maine. At Reno's behest I wrote down on a piece of paper; 1. Kirpal Manav Kendra, 2. Sadachar Manav Kendra, 3. Sadachar Ashram, 4. Your choice. He read the possibilities. "We have enough isms," He said, so deleted the name 'Kirpal.' "And Sadachar just means morality, but this place is more than that. It is for spiritual purposes. Why not just Manav Kendra?" Some in the room thought that He went on to say that we should even Americanize it and say Man Center; others heard the opposite; but I was ecstatic in any case, for the Master had given us affirmation. Manav Kendra of Maine had officially become the Master's spiritual residence. Later during the tour Master spoke with us two or three more times about how to run the Center, laying stress on manmaking, standing on one's own legs, and common sense. For me all that Master had led us to, intimated in letters, and caused to become paramount in our lives, had been wrought, and in Florida He gave His blessing before leaving the States. On the back of one of Reno's business cards, Master had carefully written to me—"Start in darkness, and let your light illumine all the area around you." And with His grace we are now able to do so. * * * 204 The Ocean of Grace Divine In the fall of 1972 I suddenly found myself bereft of the first two fingers of my left hand, owing to the whirling tooth of a firewood-saw at Manav Kendra, Maine. As I lay on the ground before going to the hospital, I prayed silently to the Master, "Please let this set my accounts straight for my recent misdeeds." The next day in a hospital bed I lay once more—left arm bandaged and right arm taped to an I.V. I was told that I had been four hours in the operating room, and that the wounds had been quite filled with debris. Yet all had gone well, I was informed, though I should have realized that such amount of dirt forebode much danger. In actuality the doctor decided that I should be kept in the dark that he expected me to lose my whole hand from infection. Meanwhile, my wife had notified our friend, Judith Perkins, who in turn wrote to Russell, sitting at Master's feet in Delhi. On my behalf, dear Russell said, "Master, Sean Sieglen has had some fingers cut off." Master Kirpal replied, "Yes, I know. But at least he didn't lose the whole hand." "Oh, but Master," said Russell, "they expect him to!" Russell later told me that Master responded in a very firm tone. "No, no! How can you think such a thing? No, I tell you. The fingers are lost, but he is saved. The fingers are lost, but he is saved." To the doctor's pleasant surprise, absolutely no infection occurred, and I soon dismissed myself to go home and do the haying. People often mention that the loss must be severe for me, but I find I never think of it, except as an intimate reminder of the closeness of the Master, in both reprimand and protection. God Takes Care of His Children Ben Ringel When the Master was on His third world tour in 1972, I had the pleasure to be with Him throughout His visit to the United States. As we were leaving Boston, Massachusetts, for Sant Bani Ashram, the following incident occurred. Mr. Nicholson, in whose car we were driving the Master, was very concerned about the weather forecast for the next three or four days. The forecasts were for cold weather and heavy snows. This was of great concern because most of the satsangis were to be accommodated outdoors in tents. During our stay at Sant Bani Ashram, we had bitter cold weather but no snow. Upon leaving, a remark was made that it snowed all around the vicinity of the Ashram, although at Sant Bani there was no snow. Master replied, "The Love that was generated at Sant Bani Ashram melted the snow that was to fall there." I said, "Really?" Master replied, "Don't you think God takes care of His children?" It is the Master Who finds the Disciple David Helion It is all due to the boundless mercy of the Almighty that I was initiated by Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj into the Path of the Masters which takes the human soul from the gross plane of matter into the pure spiritual regions and Beyond where it becomes one with Him. I was born in France and from a tender age I had been looking for Truth and often I was asking my father about God, fate, and destiny. Throughout my adolescence, Christianity helped me to understand that life had to be lived in a pure way, by pure means and with high ideals according to the words of Christ, but it failed to give me the profound experience of the divinity which I was searching for. In 1968, when I was nineteen, I felt so tired of the Western way of life that I decided to go to South America in search of a better way. There I was fortunate enough to spend two years in almost complete retreat from the hustle and bustle of city life, in the tropical jungle working on a farming project. In that surrounding my faith in God strengthened. The beautiful contact with Mother Nature opened my heart and mind to the invisible will It is the Master Who finds the Disciple 207 of the Creator. Life had revealed its sacred character to me, but in which direction had I to proceed? Although these years in the jungle had been a positive experience I could not find in the solitude of the mountains a satisfactory answer to the mystery of life. Different experiences followed, going from one extreme to the other: intense traveling, life in communes, use of drugs, a bit of yoga and esoterism, studies of ancient civilization— a little of all the things of the Aquarian Age, but no definitive solution was to be found there. At twenty-three, I was depressed by trying to face a life which I could not understand; I had reached a stage where there was nothing else to do but to pray to God that He should show me the way back to my True Home. I knew by intuition that only a True Master could help me to reach the goal. Finally, one day I had an extraordinary vision with open eyes as I was wandering alone, lost in prayer and reflection. I suddenly saw in the clouds a gigantic head with a long white beard and beautiful radiant blue eyes. I thought it was a deity who had appeared in response to my search; my faith in God was subsequently confirmed. Later the same year I was walking alone along a huge sandy beach by the Pacific Ocean. I had been praying to God that He should manifest to me, and indicate to me the way. I was very lost and my mind was confused and my heart was in pain and the emptiness of the sky seemed to reflect the deep inertia in which I was; it looked like there was no chance to get out of this state. The sun was setting, night was approaching and it seemed that Nature was not going to speak to me that day. Suddenly lots of clouds silently arrived and in no time formed an amazing sunset with the most unusual colors and shapes—in the middle was a triangle of shining clouds and the silhouette of an old sage appeared to me, remaining for a few moments. He was sitting cross legged and was quietly looking at me, as though contemplating the whole universe from his high abode. After some time the form slowly turned into an Om sign and then faded away. From that day I knew that some great event was to take place in my life. Only a few weeks after this vision I came across a poster in 208 The Ocean of Grace Divine Mexico City showing a man from India, wearing a white turban, with blue radiant eyes shining in His noble face. He had a long white flowing beard. To me He looked like a true sage. Just by looking at the picture the feeling of quietness filled me; and by the grace of God, this Divine Guide came to me in the physical form in Mexico, December 1972. I had never heard of Sant Kirpal Singh before that glorious day but when He arrived in Mexico I was drawn to Him like iron to a magnet. The meetings were to take place in a central hotel downtown. The Conference Hall was filled with people waiting for the Master's arrival. The atmosphere was very charged and quiet. When the Master came everybody stood up. I could not distinguish anything because of the crowd. He was walking very slowly with folded hands looking carefully into everybody's eyes. The silence was intense. He had an air of majesty and grandeur although His manners were humble and simple. Words of peace and wisdom gently flowed from Him with a magic power which brought quietness to my intricate mind. That evening He came back to find a larger audience; there were people from every age, background, and race. The hall was completely filled. This time the Master showed me another aspect of His personality. Before breaking the silence, He contemplated the dense gathering for a few minutes with His eyes shining like stars and suns. From His whole body, radiation of a supreme nature was abundantly shed upon us. Although I was not familiar with His teachings, I knew that we were sitting in the presence of a great man. The Master spoke about the Science of the Soul as the only way to connect man with God and He stressed the necessity of self-reform and a pure life. When the meeting was over I was in such a state of obliviousness that I remained there. A disciple of the Master came to me talking about the greatness of this Guru and told me to come the next day to the initiation. Although I didn't know how important it was, I felt I had to come. I was not doing anything by myself, but was following an energy current which was directing me. The next morning after the usual formalities, we were taken to a large room where we waited for the Master. When He finally arrived the whole room became silent. From His eyes It is the Master Who finds the Disciple 209 a source of harmony was springing, a stream of peace was surging, a river of compassion was flowing, an ocean of Light was glimmering, and the Master in a most courteous and gentle way started to give us the instructions for correct and accurate meditations focussed on the God Who lives within us in the depths of our souls. And in a very simple manner a hundred of us were given the most precious gift that human beings may ever receive —the sacred boon of Naam, a contact with the Light and Sound within. By the grace of God we were born into a new life. The Path which I had been looking for a number of years had been revealed; the voice for which I had called in my prayers had answered, and the door for which I had searched had opened. The next morning we all gathered at His Feet and the Master put us into meditation. Afterwards He asked us about our inner experience of Light and Sound. When my turn came I raised my hand and stood up trembling, shy like a baby. The Master had appeared within and had talked to me. And then in front of everybody Sant Kirpal Singh asked me what the Master had said. I answered, "Silence." Then the Master said, "Mental silence." These are the only words which the Master has ever spoken to me directly, but they are still living in me. Joy to the world, peace to all creation, hail to the Satguru who sows the sacred Light deep into our being forever, forever lasting, and tears were flowing from my eyes. The Master comes to unite His children with the Supreme One. Parshad from The Lord S. K. Kapur I came to the Feet of His Holiness Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj in 1959, and I was blessed with the Holy Naam in 1962 From this time until His Holiness left His physical body there have been so many memorable occasions and instances never to be forgotten but to be buried along with my body. It so happened that once in 1973 the Beloved Master was to visit the residence of some satsangis in connection with a marriage ceremony. I and my wife had previously put in a request for the Beloved Master to grace our place also with His Holy Feet, to which the Lord agreed. The visit was fixed for 6:00 p.m. So at about 5:50 p.m. we reached the marriage place; the first thing we did was to inquire about the Beloved Master's arrival. To our great surprise we were told that He had come at 5:30 and had left at 5:45—just five minutes before we got there! We were both in a condition of turmoil—what to do, what not to do—our question and the reply to our question, all this drama was played out just at the doorway of the marriage tent. Instead of going inside the tent we turned towards our home, but on the way we thought of going instead to Sawan Ashram, as we were told that the Beloved Master had gone back Parshad from the Lord there. When we reached the Ashram we entered the Kothi (the glace where the Lord was residing), and we saw Him sitting on the bed in the last room. In the veranda we met with S. Avtar Singh Ji Oberoi to whom we narrated that whole incident, of course cursing ourselves that we had missed that golden chance of taking the Lord to our place. He replied that I should have told him about this, so that he could have reminded the Lord when returning from the marriage place. In the first room Pandit Brij Mohan met us, and on hearing our story also consoled us— but for us these words were not enough, the wound was so much deeper than the soothing effect of their words. On seeing this, and sensing our bad position, Pandit Brij Mohan pushed us inside the last room where the Lord was eating an apple by peeling it Himself with a knife. On seeing us at the entrance, the Lord, in His own remarkable manner, with the indication of His Holy finger, called us inside, and we went and sat at His Holy Feet near the bed on which He was sitting. The Lord inquired the reason of our coming and also about our being in the bad shape we were in. My wife narrated everything very carefully, seeing that nothing remained untold. On hearing this, first the Lord laughed whole-heartedly and then said, "What is my fault in this?" My wife told Him, "My Beloved Master, You visited the marriage place before the scheduled time and came back to the Ashram without visiting our place!" The Lord replied, "The marriage people came and took me before the time. Now let us make a deal—do you want me to visit your place now or at some other time?" On this my wife replied, "Now!" The Lord said, "You are very clever, you do not want to leave anything on credit. You want to cash the promise right now." My wife, who was weeping in spite of all sorts of consolation by the Beloved Master, did not move an inch, but while weeping kept saying one word between her sobs—"Now!" Then the Lord said, "All right, you take this piece of apple (which the Beloved Master had peeled with a knife for Himself) and let us compromise. You see, if I go now, your foreign brother satsangis whom I have already put in meditation, will be late 212 The Ocean of Grace Divine for their dinner if they are not told to leave off meditation." This gracious parshad my wife at first refused. Then when the Lord started wiping her tears with His handkerchief, pressing her shoulders, urging her to take the apple, she finally agreed. In between these happenings (the quarrel between the Father and His daughter, the Master and His disciple, which was enjoyable), the Lord said, pointing towards me, "Look, he has agreed with me. He is not angry with me." And then while offering me the second quarter of the apple He said, "You also take this and eat before me," which I did. From there we came out of the house with the Master and went towards the Satsang Hall, where the foreign brothers were still sitting in meditation. Extracts from a diary kept in 1973 Katie McCluney 5th May 1973: Master asked us about our meditations and if we had any questions. We had none, and Master settled back on the little couch, and with the twinkliest expression began: In India, if you are on pension, you must sign a paper that says you were alive all the twelve months you received the pension. You must do that for the Government each year. (We all laughed.) Yes—prove you were living all the twelve months! So once I said to Hazur, 'I'm going to have Your pension stopped!' 'What! why?' said Master, looking very surprised in imitation of Hazur. 'Because You are not alive all the twelve months— You die daily!' and then He laughed so sweetly. 11th May: Someone said to Master, "I am very impatient with myself and with others." He asked, so sweetly, so sympathetically, "Impatient with yourself? It is one thing that you might be impatient with others, but you are impatient with yourself? Why?" The disciple replied, "Because I don't try hard enough, Master." "Oh," He said, "don't be impatient. Rome was not built in a day, and all that hurry spoils things. You are anxious, you are clutching—you stand in your own way. Just sit at my door and wait. Don't be impatient...I will come for you." 214 The Ocean of Grace Divine Another told Master she was having difficulty in meditation, always thinking, "Don't watch the breathing." Master said, "No, no. That is the negative way. If she is my enemy and I say 'I won't think of her—I won't think of her!' then I am always thinking of her. So you must simply forget the breathing and absorb yourself." One man said, "My diary looks like America's national debt." Master said laughing "No, no—all other countries are in America's debt. America has no debt." (Everyone laughed.) The man said, "Well, every step I take I must mark down a mistake. I try to be humble, to put myself out of the way, but I just keep failing." And Master advised, "Your intellect is working too much. You are always scaling. If you try to be humble you are still only thinking of yourself. Think of Him, and absorb yourself in Him, in His remembrance, and you will become humble. The mind is always trying to pull you away from God. The only way to control it is through contact with Light and Sound and through sweet remembrance of God. So don't always be scaling like the weights of a clock. Remember that God helps those who help themselves; keep remembrance! And God helps those who do not help themselves." 15th May: Master told us, "I want to see you jolly. We should be smiling and happy to have the man-body and this chance to know God. A smile is the oil of the machinery—it keeps it running smoothly. Without oil there is friction, corrosion. So I want to see you beaming." The other day He had said, "Love your neighbor even more than yourself. Make him happy and you will be happy. There are three things we can do to make life good: be selfless, be happy, be grateful." 16th May: We were in Rajpur, staying in the guest house behind Master's bungalow. He sent for us around 7:20 this morning: "I wanted to have your darshan. You wanted to have my darshan—I wanted to have yours. It is reciprocal, you see. I asked you to come early because I am going to Manav Kendra— I have correspondence to attend to—Five bundles (He showed us how huge they were with His hands) came from Delhi. Master counts us: One—two—three—four—five—six—seven—eight—nine —-ten- McKay makes eleven...who's missing? You see, I'm count- Extracts from a diary kept in 1973 215 ing my children." The German lady said her tooth hurt, "The body is nothing, Master!" He replied, "It is just a house. If a wall is crumbling, we have it fixed. What is a little pain? But you must attend to it, or you'll be buried in the debris!" 18th May: Master said, "When you assert you feel drained, you lose something. If you have a small pond and are always dishing out, then?" He also said to sleep relaxed and free from brooding—to dispose of all concerns, and that sleep will refresh us. 28th May: Someone said that she had been a little sick and found it hard to concentrate. Master said, "There is no high road to concentration. Practice and more practice." The sister said she felt her concentration was lessened because she was sick. Master asked, "You've got fever? It is a blessing to be sick...then you can put in more time. About forty years ago, I was laid up with high fever. I put in whole time to Bhajan. No one bothers you when you are sick—you don't have to attend to your business, and I think they even bring you your food. These are lame excuses, I tell you. We have no love for God. If you are feeling sick and one you love comes, how do you feel? "Good," she replied. "You see? We must keep our attention on the one we love. When you go back you can do the other things, but if you want to benefit from being here, put your whole attention on God." Another time He told us that He was very ill and could hardly move at all. Hazur came to Lahore, and noting that His beloved gurumukh was not at the railway station to meet Him, went directly to Kirpal Singh's house. Master said that He was so overjoyed at seeing Hazur that He completely forgot His illness, and when Hazur left, Master accompanied Him down three flights of stairs to see Him to the door. 2nd June: Master said, "You should always come to the Master for guidance. Don't look to others. People used to always bring their difficulties to me. Now they ask this person and that person. The person who asks another loses and the one who comes between loses. No one should come between you and the Master. You should not be concerned with anyone else. While you are here make the best use of your time. You are not here to make friends. Don't think of the past and the future. You are not saints 216 The Ocean of Grace Divine yet. You are all sick. So you should not seek the help of the other patients. Gome to me if you have any life or death problem, or any spiritual difficulty. Are you afraid to come?" 10th June: Someone asked Master how to begin to surrender, and He said, "First you must have love. When you love someone, then you are surrendered—in a worldly way, is it not? You must have love." He paused for a long time, and then He continued. "If you love someone you do what He says. If you love me, keep my commandments. You are always thinking to please the one you love. The Master has love for all, but He has more love for those who keep His commandments—inside and outside. When you come up to here (the eye focus) then you will have true Love-Love will burst forth. Love is real that is for God—the God in you, the God in the Master. That is real Love. If you are dancing with love and do not keep the commandments—that is no love. If you love me, you will do what I say. In the outward way if you have love, you keep it hidden, is it not? So why should you show your Love for God and fritter it away? Keep it hidden within you. Then it will grow. You follow what I say? Lord Rama was sent into exile for fourteen long years. And all the yogis in the forest thought, 'He will come to me first—my Ashram is the biggest', but he did not go to them. He went instead to Shivri, a pauper woman, because of her love. Then the yogis asked him, 'We have one pond which is spoiled with insects. Would you put your feet washings in it so that it can be cleared?' So Lord Rama put the wash water in the pond, but the insects remained. Then he said, 'You are great yogis, put your wash water into the pond.' But still it was not cleared. So he made them wash Shivri's feet—they did not want to do it, they were puffed up—and the pond was cleared. So humility is the end result. First love, then humility. Lord Rama said to his general Hanuman, 'Who are you?' and Hanuman replied, 'When I am in the body I am your servant. When I rise above, I am one with You.' So this is what is meant by surrender—humility inside and outside. Have I answered your question? You must be receptive. If radio carries voices thousands of miles, receptivity is even faster. Like Morse sent by wireless: you are tapping this side, they are reading that side. My Master Extracts from a diary kept in 1973 217 lived in Beas, I lived in Lahore...so far away. When I would feel a cooling breeze during the day I would note down the time. When I asked what my Master was doing then, they said, 'thinking of you.' So by receptivity you have everything. But you should not show it. Master said of me, 'He has drunk the seven oceans, but his lips remain dry.' " 11th June: One of the women in our party had found a bedbug in her bed covers and had become very upset, persuading another sister to go with her to find new accommodation. (We were in the little village of Pahalgam in Kashmir.) Master was very strong with them, saying: "You should have come to me, or told someone who could take care of it. If you are out wandering at night some harm may come to you. And that reflects on me. I am responsible for you while you are here— your life, your honor. This is not a city—it is a hill station. The people are drinking, reveling... you might be hurt, you might be molested. Then my honor is lost—so you must set a good example, for my sake. People see you out late at night, they think you are drinking, reveling. So don't go out at night. Behave sensibly so when the people see you it will not reflect on me. They will look to the bad things that happen, you know, and forget the good. If anything goes amiss in the future—tell us. This is my commandment. Obey it!" Speaking of our meditations, Master told one man, "It is more dangerous inside than outside. Enchanting scenery, all is very enchanting. So we should be after only three things: The Master's Form, the Light, or the Sound." To another He said, "Did you see your Friend? He was hiding behind the Light. He is a tricky thief—He holds the lantern in front and you cannot see Him behind." One said he could only concentrate for a minute or two at a time, and Master replied: "You must fix your gaze, Look constantly—without break. That is the secret." 14th June: Someone said, "Effort and grace go hand in hand?" Master repeated it, then smiled and said, "I will give you an example. I give you food. You gulp it down—is that making best use of it? If you masticate it fully, make it liquid... then it will digest better. Another example is of the mustard 218 The Ocean of Grace Divine seed. If you grind it properly, you will get the full hotness from it, is it not? But still you won't get more than what was in it already. If you go sick and are given some medicine, you must take it. It won't help you left in the medicine chest. So grace and effort go hand in hand . . . but it must be effortless effort." 27th June: Someone asked, "If we know what we need to do, what we must do, why is it so hard to do?" "Because you don't want to. You do what your heart really wants—you can't help it. You may say 'I want this, I want that' . . . but you do what you really want." "But Master," she said, "I think I really want—" "Thinking won't do. If you think you are a king, does that make you king? You should decide what you want and then go after it. Full strength." Another lady said, "Here it is so easy, but at home there is no time." Master said, "These are lame excuses, you see. We make time for the things we want." One man said he was so wishy-washy; if he kept trying, would he get help? Master replied, "Help comes of itself. Help comes without asking. Even if you don't try He sends help." 28th June: Master was working upstairs on the yearly accounts and we were afraid we wouldn't get to see Him. Then the electricity went off, making paper work impossible, and He came in. After asking us all how we were, and sitting quietly for a few minutes, someone said that it was good the lights were out — "You sit with us longer this way." Master smiled and said, "There was a lady who was told her husband would die in the morning when the sun rose. So she sat all night in prayer that the sun would not rise. When morning came round all the people said, "Why has the sun not come?' Then they had to find the man who had put the curse on her husband, to make him retract. Only then could the sun rise. So you be like that lady—don't let the power come back." A young man who had many questions asked Master if he could ask something. Master said, "There was once a wise man. People asked him where he got his wisdom. He said, 'From the fools!' You understand? F-O-O-L-S! Their asking brought these things out. Now I'm not calling you a fool, mind you. What is your question?" (All the while Master was laughing so sweetly.) So the boy asked Master to tell a story— any story. Master said, "Well, my younger brother, once when Extracts from a diary kept in 1973 219 the lights went out—he was three or four years old I think —said Shhh! Don't talk. . . the talk will be darkened.' But we can talk, we have this light." (There was a battery powered lamp.) And Master repeated what His little brother had said a few times, chuckling. Another evening we were sitting with Master when the lights went out. He kept talking, and when one of the sevadars brought in the battery lamp, Master said, "Oh, are the lights out?" Someone asked Master about daylight coming in through the eyelids. Master leaned back and went "Tsk!"—that sound of displeasure that we dreaded having directed at us. But the boy said, "Listen, Master, please" very urgently, and Master completely understood and accepted the boy's plea. He said, "All right, what is it?" And leaning forward gave His full attention. It was very moving to see. Master said that the problem was that of the intellectual; that if you were absorbed within you wouldn't notice whether it was day or night outside. He again emphasized that it was the steadfastness of looking that was the secret—"fix the gaze and look constantly"—we need not concern ourselves with anything else. 29th June: Master told someone to do one thing at a time, then asked for questions. I asked how to learn to do one thing at a time. He looked at me for a few seconds, then turned to the others and said, "Will somebody tell her? Somebody please tell h e r . . . " He paused and looked at me with a sweetness I could never describe and said, "Well, first decide, then do it. Where there's a will, there's a way. We want so many things; for a few days we want this, for a few days we want that. We vacillate. Decide what you want, then let nothing stop you. Every step will be in that direction." "But Master," I said, "even in the worldly way, I am always doing two or three things at once." "That won't do. You don't attend to anything properly—everything suffers. We have too many irons in the fire. When I had to decide for the world or for God, I considered for five days. So you decide...it won't take long I think." 4th July: Master was ill; we had darshan up on the roof. He asked us if we wanted to go on to Dehra Dun ahead of Him, 220 The Ocean of Grace Divine and we said we wanted to be where He was. So Master said, "You want to enjoy the heat? All right. You are all physically fit now? Anyone sick? No?...Thank God. Oh, y o u . . . what is the trouble?" She said she had trouble in breathing, like asthma. "Asthma? (so softly, so concerned) You have had this trouble only since you came?" "Yes," she replied. 'It is the heat," Master said, "You have all suffered from the heat. But love knows no burden, no heat or cold. Some saint said if you are in the burning fires of Hell and remember the Master, it is like being in Heaven. So you are here in Heaven—better than being there, is it not? So you have decided to stay here? Good—it will hurry me up!" (We had been waiting for Master to be well enough to travel.) A man asked, "Would it be better for You if we went on?" "No. . . Doesn't the Father want to be with His children? Won't the Father be happy with His children around Him?" 5th July: Someone said he felt restless and could hardly sit still. Master asked "Are you troubled with thoughts of the past, future or the present?" "All three," he replied. "Well that is bad," Master said laughing. "There are two sprites, you know, the past and the future, that eat into the very brains of man. They won't let him enjoy the present. So we must silence them, you see; live in the living present. Another thing will help you: do one thing at a time. God is all attention, our souls are a drop of Him. Naturally we would like to go back to our Source. He is all wisdom, all joy—if we want to be wise, to be happy. . .it is a reflection of Him. Happiness is what? To live in the present and to adapt to the environment. Even if you leave off the past and future, you cannot be happy unless you adopt to your environment. So while you're here, be only with me. Forget the body and mind. Let nothing come between you and God." Another man said, "Well, Master, it sounds simple, but it is hard to do." And Master replied, "Practice makes a man. It will come. Saints don't drop down from heaven—they are made. Of course much of the work might have been done in previous births. So every saint has His past and every sinner his future. It is all the play of the attention. So remember these two mottoes— 'forget the past and future, live in the present' and 'do one thing at a time.' Then live up to them." A New Life, a New Name Captain Singh It may need a disaster to get you started with a new life. You may curse your fate at the time, but as the Divine Plan unfolds Itself, a day may come when you at last recognize that what had seemed your undoing was in fact the basis of your remaking. March 26th, 1961, dawned like any other day. By the time it ended it was as though life itself had blacked out. A moment's misunderstanding, some heated words under the influence of liquor, my brother-in-law reaching for a pistol—and all was over. Never had I realized a day would come when I would curse my being a good marksman. A wife torn between grief for a brother and anxiety for her husband's future, children writhing at being parted from their father, lawyers and litigation expenses, months of suspense and appeals in the High Court and Supreme Court: it was a nightmare, and at the end of two years I was still in prison, doomed to capital punishment. When all hope seemed gone I lay in the condemned prisoner's cell in the District Jail on the night of November 4th, 1963. It was only in the early hours of the morning after prayers that I dozed off. In sleep—it was more a vision than a dream—I 222 The Ocean of Grace Divine was sitting in a locked cell in my underwear and with my hair untidy. Someone who seemed like a king visited my cell. I was confused, apologized for my state of disarray, and wanted to get dressed. My royal visitor smiled gently, and asked, "Do you meditate?" I replied in the affirmative, and he continued, "That is not enough. Meditate more!" "Very well Sir," I answered humbly. The king then stepped forward and told me that my work was done and reassuringly added, "Don't worry! Remember Him." Saying these words, the royal figure left me. I woke up, and the vision was so vivid and so consoling, that I pondered much over it. Was there anything to it? What did it portend? Having washed myself, I sat down for meditation, and thereafter there was the usual jail routine. After breakfast, I was summoned by the jailer. When I entered his office, he walked towards me to congratulate me: my mercy petition, he informed me, had finally been accepted and my death sentence had been commuted to life imprisonment! My vision, still so vivid in my mind, had come true in barely four hours. My immediate problem seemed over, and as I was moved from the condemned prisoner's cell to a new ward, I wondered who it was who had appeared to reassure me and to give the happy tidings. I had twice had the loveglances of Hazur Baba Sawan Singh in my home town, Kotkapura, during 1944-45 when I was still a school-boy, and had even attended a Satsang. But the figure I saw was a different one, and I wondered if it could be Guru Gobind Singh or one of the other Sikh Gurus. The months passed by and I began to give more time to meditation; the sense of search had sharpened. In March 1954, I read that a Saint from Delhi had visited Lucknow and a summary of His talk was included in the newspaper report. I found myself so deeply moved reading of Sant Kirpal Singh, and though the name was unknown to me, on March 15th I wrote Him a letter. It was my birthday—and it was to become for me the start of a new way of life. I had shared my life's story and had spoken of my hardships and my desire to be put on the way to Truth. Three weeks later I received a loving letter from Maharaj Ji dated April 6th, A New Life, a New Name 223 1964. Referring to my situation He said: It is in accordance with the reaction of some past Karma that sometimes one is placed in such trials, which are only passing phases. I am glad for your deep interest in the Gurbani which you recite daily. Indeed, the sacred scriptures serve as a loving lap of the mother where a child disciple is fondled in the divine intoxication and fosters a yearning for union with Him. Your longing for learning the technique of Naam Simran is genuine. The Master then gave me meditation instructions. The letter arrived in the afternoon, and that evening, as instructed by Maharaj Ji, I sat down for meditation. I had had experiences of inner Light during childhood, and they had returned to me in prison. When I sat down and engaged in Simran and Dhyan, what was new was not the Light—the Sound Current suddenly opened and I was carried away by its sweetness. There was a new joy, a new purpose which entered into my life; as I carried on with my meditations I progressed further, and whereever I was, whatever I did, the Master Power was with me through Shabd. If I had difficulties, I would write to Maharaj Ji, and He would always write back lovingly and give me guidance. I was to learn later that He had given special instructions for any letters sent by me to be delivered to Him unopened. I also rereceived copies of Sat Sandesh, Man know Thyself and other satsang literature. Baha Ullah has said, "You cannot have spiritual exaltation without having intense mental depression." And so along with this new joy, I had new problems. The Deputy Jailer did not take kindly to me, and all my frustrations and irritations would focus on him until it even began to get in the way of my meditations. When I raised the problem with Maharaj Ji, He wrote back in His letter of October 8th, 1964: The present physical life is a passing phase in the long journey of the soul from the lower categories of creation on to the True Home of the Father, Such Khand. It is chiefly based on the reaction of past Karma which determine pain and pleasure. However, the gracious protection of the Satguru Power cuts short the duration and severity of pains 224 The Ocean of Grace Divine considerably and affords chances for the dear ones to pass out unscathed. Your feelings towards the man who has apparently done you harm should be those of kindness and forgiveness as it does happen sometimes that the initiates into the Mysteries of the Beyond are obliged to undergo suffering in accordance with their past Karma. Such an attitude will absolve you of the after-effects and bless you with peace and serenity. Just resign to His divine Will and accept It cheerfully. Herein lies your spiritual welfare. The letter was charged with Maharaj Ji's bliss, and His advice made me change my attitude. I was to be tested soon after in this. The Deputy Jailer insulted a fellow prisoner, and as protest, some of us went on a fast. But when a Minister visited the prison the same day, I dissuaded my fellows from making a formal complaint. The Deputy Jailer was so touched by this unexpected gesture, that he not only thanked me profusely but from then on became more friendly. But problems followed one after another. My father had a nervous breakdown on account of my fate. My mother died suddenly, and my wife developed consumption. She recovered, but not long after developed Psoas abscess. My children and some relatives wrote alarming letters, for there seemed little hope of her surviving. She was operated on, was in plaster, developed an infection and took a turn for the worse. None-the-less, there was a strange and new sense of detachment that began to grow in me. Through prevision Maharaj Ji would prepare me for the calamities to come and strengthen me to meet them. During my wife's illness, in spite of everyone's alarm, He wrote to reassure me that all would be well. (Years later, when she first met Him at the Ashram, she remembered having seem Him reassuring her as she lay in a coma.) Maharaj Ji in His letters encouraged this new detachment. He would bless me with His darshan and I would keep busy with meditation at night and make myself useful in working during the day in jail. I helped organize a workshop for repairing typewriters; all Government machines were sent to us for repairs. I would talk about the Master and about spirituality with my fellow prisoners and with the officers. I moved from A New Life, a New Name 225 one prison to another and, with the grace of the Master and His message of Love, I made many friends. One medical officer was an atheist, but he became deeply interested. We had many long discussions, and long before receiving initiation from Maharaj Ji, he gave up meat and drink. But while Maharaj ji granted me patience to meet my worldly problems, as I grew closer to Him and progressed further, I had a deep yearning to meet Him in the flesh. Time and time again my requests for parole were turned down in spite of my good jail record and the recommendation of my jail superiors. By the end of 1967 my patience ran out, and I addressed a desperate letter to Maharaj Ji stating my sad plight—my inability to get away on parole to have His darshan. On January 11th, 1968, I received a note informing me that Maharaj Ji planned to visit Aligarh and I could look forward to His darshan then. I carried the news to the medical officer, and he was as intoxicated as I was and literally burst into a dance. Together we went and called on the Superintendent. He answered that the Master would be welcome and would be permitted to meet me. I replied that that was not enough; my visitor was no ordinary person but God Himself in human form—it was a rare privilege, and it was only right that all the prisoners and all the staff should have His darshan! As a matter of policy, jail authorities seldom allow opportunities when all the inmates can be together. But such was the Will of the Satguru, and such my persuasions and those of the medical officer that the Superintendent finally agreed, and issued the necessary instructions. Unable to get away, and chained to the earth as a mountain, Mohammed was coming to see me! Such was my Satguru's love that He was traveling all the way to a prison to see me. The day at last arrived. It was March 7th, 1968. At 4:00 in the afternoon Maharaj Ji's car drew up outside the jail gates. The Superintendent, the medical officer, the jailer and other jail officials received Him and His party. They came to the jail park where I welcomed Kindest Master and we led Him to the dais. All prisoners were seated on the ground eagerly awaiting Him. Many of us, staff and prisoners, carried garlands and bouquets we had prepared for this moment. But as each of us approached 226 The Ocean of Grace Divine Kindest Master He would smile and graciously give the flowers and the garlands back to whoever brought them. The Superintendent spoke a few words of welcome and said it was a rare privilege to have so great a personality among us. I had composed a poem in Urdu which I wrote to welcome Kindest Master. It began with the words: When this Ocean of Grace visits us, our destiny undergoes transformation. We are all lost in intoxication as this Cupbearer arrives to dispense the Wine of Naam. I went up to the microphone and began reciting; my heart got so full that my eyes flowed with tears, my voice choked; and, presenting the poem to Maharaj Ji, I sat down. He then commenced His discourse—"Man Know Thyself." Everyone listened with rapt attention: the beautiful park blooming with winter flowers, the warmth of the late afternoon, and above all Kindest Master speaking to us in His own unique fashion giving us His love-glances—it was so peaceful, so charged, so intoxicating, perfect. When the discourse ended, we carried a basket of parshad for Kindest Master to bless. But He insisted on distributing it to all present Himself. It was a sight to see; He was giving the sweets in such large hand-fulls that many thought the sweets would not suffice for all present. He reassured them. Not only did He continue to give each one abundantly, but such was His grace that there was enough for everyone present. Kindest Master then inquired who had paid for the parshad. He looked at the Superintendent, but the Superintendent nodded in the negative. He looked at the medical officer with the same result. When He questioned again who it was, one of the officers pointed towards me. "How much did it cost?" He asked. And when I kept protesting that it was all through His grace, He grew stern and the medical officer finally gave the figure. Maharaj Ji at once took out the sum from His purse and handed it to the Superintendent for me. (The All-Knowing Master knew that under jail regulations prisoners are not allowed to keep any money.) Seeing me distressed, He turned towards me and said with a loving smile and a pat on my back, "If I distribute the parshad I should pay for it. This money is my parshad to you." A New Life, a New Name 227 Kindest Master had to go for another engagement but such had been His magnanimity that He gave us all so much time and so much love I whispered to ask Him if He could grant me initiation proper; He answered, "Whatever was given you in my letter is quite enough. You have already been initiated." As we reached the main gate I took out a new kerchief I had specially kept for the purpose, and began to wipe the Master's shoes. He stepped back and exclaimed, "When you have been given so much within why do you get involved in such outer things?" I answered that being human I could not but be involved in the outer, and proceeded to clean the shoes; Kindest Master let me do so. That kerchief remains a treasured remembrance of that first meeting with my Satguru in the flesh, for which I had almost despaired. When we returned to our cells, many of us talked till midnight about the visit and the Satsang—there was a strange sense of peace which one hardly associates with prison life. Next morning some inmates reported that they had had darshan of Kindest Master in dreams, and the days that followed passed by in His sweet remembrance and in talking about Him. In meditation too the personal visit of Maharaj Ji had its charging, and things went better. A year after this jail Satsang,I was transferred to another prison. Two guards were entrusted with the responsibility of taking me by train to my destination. There was a change at Delhi; I couldn't help begging my companions to let me make a quick visit to my Guru at the Ashram. It was against the official code, but their hearts were moved with kindness and we were soon there. Maharaj Ji met me with great affection in His veranda, and then took me indoors. Some Western satsangis were sitting there, and pointing to me He said, "He is one Kirpal Singh (my given name) who is in prison, and I am another Kirpal Singh who is imprisoned amongst you all. In fact here we are all prisoners of worldly affairs and of our bodies." Tai Ji then explained to those present that Kindest Master had gone all the way to a district jail to bless me; Maharaj Ji remarked casually, "On his account who knows how many will have to be saved?" 228 The Ocean of Grace Divine As time was running out, Maharaj Ji gave me and the guards parshad and some literature. He called Mohan to drive us to the station lest we miss the train. Getting the guards into the back seat, He came round and opened the door for me to sit in front and quietly slipped some money into my hands. When I protested He whispered, "You will need it. Take it with you." It was done so quietly and so unobtrusively that the guards didn't see. We just managed to catch the train. The guards were exceptionally kind. They said they felt a strange intoxication, and next morning they still spoke of it. When we reached the jail, after official formalities, we bid each other good-bye. The atmosphere in my new surroundings was very tense and there was much discipline. I could tell that trouble lay ahead, and within fifteen days we had a riot; police fired, and several people were killed. With His grace I was able to keep myself detached from all the violence and tension. I was hoping to get parole in the summer, but after a long wait it was discovered that my papers had gone astray. I was bitterly disappointed at the thought that I could not see Maharaj Ji in Delhi. A strange thing happened to me at this point. After two agonizing days, though I carried on in prison in body I found myself in the Ashram in spirit. When I wrote of the new disappointment, Kindest Master answered on August 18th, 1969: A keen sense of sweet humility and self-surrender is the panacea for all the ills of life. You may please repose your hopes in Him and be rest assured that everything whatsoever comes to your count in divine dispensation is for your spiritual benefit. In a letter dated September 10th, 1969, Kindest Master wrote He would be coming to see me between September 13th and 15th. I met the Deputy Superintendent, but in view of the prevailing tension he was unable to permit any large gathering of inmates to meet the Master. However, I was assured that He would be permitted to meet me. The 13th passed by and the first half of the 14th. There was no message, and each minute seemed an hour. I was wondering if the Master would come to see me at all, when I received word that my visitor had arrived. Master was waiting A New Life, a New Name 229 for me in the Deputy Superintendent's office; there I fell at His Feet. I had composed a Punjabi poem which I had inscribed on a greeting card I myself had painted. I presented it to the Master and read out the poem. The first stanza ran: May God grant that such days repeat themselves over and over again. I am so blessed that the Lord has come to visit an ant . . . . When I finished reading the opening stanza, the Master interrupted and said, "Do you want to spend your entire life in jail? I spontaneously answered, "If You can be by my side like this, I am not only willing to spend this life in jail, but all lives to come. And I don't think this is a bad bargain." Kindest Master laughed heartily. I had some cardamom which Maharaj Ji then distributed as parshad, and after giving me more encouragement, He left, no doubt to attend to some other mission of love and mercy. Later that year I was allowed my first release on parole, and I spent the time at the Ashram. My wife and another dear one in the family were granted initiation during that stay. My worst trials were over, and not only did I get parole each year, but on January 29th, 1972, my life imprisonment sentence was remitted and I was free at last to find sanctuary at His Feet. So gracious was Kindest Master that He then allowed me to live and serve Him at the Ashram; and furthermore, to cut me from my old life He gave me a new name—Captain Singh. Whoever has even thought lovingly of Kindest Master has been blessed by Him. Each disciple has his own story to tell. When I look back at my own life I feel particularly blessed. Had I not gone to prison, as I often told some of my fellow inmates, I may never have got on the Path. Once I was so overcome with this feeling that I even wrote to the Judge who sentenced me to death; I thanked him for helping to put me on the Road to Him. I had read in our Sikh scriptures of the incomparable love of the Guru for His disciples, time and time again. But had I not gone to prison, could I have received more vivid testimony of the intensity of that love, of its power, of its force, as it reached out to me through high walls, iron gates, and heavy locks and penetrated every recess of my being? An Echo from Sawan Ashram Elana Monteiro Night settled over the Ashram; it was the early part of November in 1973, and all sat before Him, spellbound in silence as the Master Power overhead began to spin the magic that is Satsang. Master spoke lovingly addressing an elderly couple, "You will be going to see the Taj Mahal?" Couple: "Yes, Master. It's supposed to be very beautiful." Master laughed, "Yes, yes." All were laughing, the room filled with mirth, His mirth. A disciple called out in the midst of the joy, "Master, You should come with us." Master smiled, "No, no, I must go to this village, you see. It is only that you can't go with me, and so a tour has been arranged." An Indian brother began telling tales of the scenes on the tour as Master listened and laughed along. All was jolly and wonderful, except for my sister and I. Earlier that day we had separately and then together concluded that it would be best if we stayed at the Ashram during His trip and try to meditate as much as our minds and His Grace would permit. He had given An Echo from Sawan Ashram 231 all the choice to stay or go. The two of us stared at each other in shock. Had we been wrong? Would it please Him more if we went on this tour? We transferred the doubts and unhappiness of not pleasing Him to one another and then my attention settled back into His Eyes—lost and confused. He was chuckling, "Yes, yes, the ladies can go shopping and the men can ride the camels and see the elephants." Another of His children spoke through the joy, "Master, have You ever seen an elephant?" Master looked in and far away—softly the words flowed out, "Yes, I have seen an elephant, I have seen the world; I have seen enough of the world." For a split moment an immense weariness filled all that I knew to be me, when He quickly lifted His Head, Eyes brilliant with Light and Laughter and with a slight turn, He showered my sister and I with an Eternity of Love in a second-long glance. I knew then, that for us, the decision to remain behind and (hopefully) within, was the right one. What you see is you Tracy Fogg The first time I came to India in April 1973, I was pretty young—twenty. I had been initiated almost a year. I had seen the Master in America, but I had an awful long way to go. So I came to India really kind of innocent, not knowing what to expect. I got there and Master was in Rajpur, so I came up to Manav Kendra and stayed there. I was having a hard time with my mind. The Master was not taking so much notice of me. I was sitting one day at His house in Rajpur; we were all sitting in His living room. There were about ten of us and the Master. He was sitting and giving us darshan. My mind was really going crazy—it was being a real terror. So I was sitting right there in front of Him thinking— how do I know You are the Master, how do I know You have anything to do with God? You talk about all these other phoney Masters—I hate to say this, it's terrible—and how do I know that You are the real One? Even though I had seen Him inside, I thought well, what does that mean? I used to see inside before I was initiated. So I was sitting there thinking all these terrible things, and my mind must have looked like a big black monster. So Master was being very sweet to everybody. He would sit and What you see is You 233 look at each person for quite a while. I was sitting directly in front of Him, and I thought—well, when He gets to me, maybe He'll say something, but He didn't—He didn't even look at me. He got to the person next to me, then He looked up at the ceiling, then He looked at the person on the other side of me, but He wouldn't look at me. I thought—oh boy, this is really it; I'm really upset now, I don't know what I'll do. It must be true; He just doesn't know or doesn't care and I'd better just go away. Afterwards He said, "Why don't you go have your lunch?" I went and was feeling really lost and doubtful. Everybody has his own perspective on everything. I thought — my perspective is so faulty, I can only see from my own vision and I know it's not right but I just don't know what's real in the world and what's not real and how can I make any judgement? God had better help me out. So I was walking around, and I went out in the garden at the back; I didn't know where it was—I just ended up back there and nobody else was there and the birds were singing; there were flowers and the fruit trees had all kinds of nice fruit. It was really kind of nice—it was a little dry, but it was nice. I was sitting out there and I was praying to God: "Please do something. I'm completely helpless. I'm completely lost. You'd better do something because if You don't I'll just die out, and I don't know what will become of me. Maybe I'll just cease to exist." So I was sitting and I was going to shut my eyes for meditation. I figured whatever happened, it would happen outside. So I turned around, my back was to the path that I had come from and I was facing the mountains and a little creek. I was shutting my eyes and I thought to open my eyes; I turned around and there was the Master. I could see Him way down at the other end of the path; He was just walking, so sweet just like a little child, looking at the trees and saying hello to all the birds and looking at all the flowers, and seeing which trees had grown how much and, looking at the sky. He was really enjoying just like a little child. So He came down and looked at me and said, "Yes, what do you want?" I thought—oh, my God, I don't know what I want. So He sat down and gave me a little hug. He was sweet, just like a father or a brother; He must have known, I know He 234 The Ocean of Grace Divine knew, He's God you know, He knows everything. But He was just acting like a person, not like God, not like the Master. He started talking about the trees and the flowers and everything; about the earthly things, how pretty it was there and quiet and how nice it was for writing or thinking. And then He said, "Well, why don't you go play in the woods?" So I went off to play in the woods. And I really didn't want to be in the woods because my heart was so sad. I was just wanting to be either off the earth completely or to know what was going on; I was just so completely lost. So I went down and looked at a few flowers and thought—well, the lions will probably eat me up if I go any further so I'd better turn back. And I went back and went up to the Master. I was kind of timid—I was pretty young; Master was pretty big, and I was always afraid to say too much. But I went up to Him and asked if I could ask a question. He said, "Certainly, you can ask me anything you like, you're my daughter." I sat down and said, "Well Master, I just don't know what's real and what's not real. I see everything through my mind and I just can't tell anything. I'm completely lost." So He just looked at me a long time, and He looked and He looked, He kind of twinkled a little bit and He said, "What you see is you." I thought, huh! Then He said it again, "What you see is you." So we sat there looking at each other. Then He said, "All right, God bless you." And I thought—well, I'd better go now and give Him some privacy. So I went off very intoxicated but still feeling pretty lost. Instead of doing Simran for the next three days I kept saying, "What you see is you." Simran didn't come; usually Simran came all the time, but instead it was just: "What you see is you." I would look at someone and think: "You're not doing that right!" And all of a sudden I'd hear, "What you see is you." Then I'd go, oh boy, I guess that must be me! If I saw that they weren't doing it right, it would mean I would not be doing it right myself. Those five words, I guess they can take you through everything, all life, just to the very end. Then you get to the end and you see that everything is you and you're everything and you're just a little drop in the ocean of everything and He's everything. Photographing the Beloved Master Y.S. Rajput Even before I was initiated in 1970 I was living near Sawan Ashram. One day I met Mr. Mehta who was serving there as a homeopathic doctor. He asked me if I would take some photographs at his daughter's wedding. He said, "My Guru will also be coming." So I went with my brother, and we took photographs of all the guests. Then I saw this very imposing figure, so I prepared to take his photograph. But he raised his hand and said, "No! please don't do that," He was so striking and had such fascination for me that later on I couldn't resist trying once again. But every time I would click the button it refused to work. So I handed the camera to my brother who also tried but with the same negative results. He said to me, "The flash attachment is broken." We both went out, but after examining the equipment we found everything was in working order. I went back again ready to try to take some more photographs of the Master; but although He looked at me with a twinkle in His eye, when I came to press the button, again nothing happened. This was a source of great wonder to me until I found out from someone present that the Master didn't always like to be photographed. The way He achieved this end, and through somebody who had The Ocean of Grace Divine not the slightest conception of who He was, was proof to me that He had the power to perform a miracle. Shortly after this, I was waiting for a bus to go to Mahattas, [the photographers in Connaught Circus in New Delhi where I worked] and someone started speaking to me. I found out that his name was Gurcharan Das, and he was living in Sawan Ashram; he said, "Why don't you come and take some photographs of the Master? You appear to be a good photographer, and we need some good photographs of the Master." I replied, "I don't know who your Master is, but one day I will come." I had been living so close to the Ashram for ten years but had never been there! So one Sunday I decided to go. Master was sitting on the platform giving Satsang. I could see a crowd there the size of which I had never seen anywhere. I took some photographs and wished to show them to the Master. Tai Ji looked and took me in to see Him. Master went through them and said, "Oh, these are very good! He is a good man." I began to think, "What is this? I am nothing. How can this Master know that I am a good man?" This whole thing touched my heart so much that I decided to go back just to see the Master. I was the sort of person who was always skeptical of these Mahatmas with very large followings which I thought they collected by clever propaganda. I had no faith in them. So I began to come and just listen to what the Master had to say, and within a very short time I asked Him to give me this Naam that He was always taking about. He said, "No, no, you will have to wait for two years!" Yes, He really made me wait for two years! I was twenty-eight when I first met Him. Although I had to wait such a long time before the Master gave me His Naam, I can't begin to tell you how much He helped me. One day He asked me where I was working, and then Tai Ji explained. Master then said to me, "Why don't you open your own studio?" I replied, "Master, I just don't have the money—I earn Rs. 300 a month only." Master then said, "Don't worry. We will help you. You have to do some important work for us." Round about this time I saw a suitable place near the Ashram but they were asking Rs. 3,000 Photographing the Beloved Master 237 for it. I told the Master this and He said, "Yes, that's all right, take it. We will advance you Rs. 2,000. As you take the Ashram photographs, their cost can be adjusted against the amount." I not only received that Rs. 2,000 but I was helped so many times in setting up the studio. The greatness of the Master was always with me. He just said to me, "You do this work with honesty and I will be there!" Those were His words. I came regularly to the Ashram. I didn't care about anybody else there, I just took the photographs of the Master, and then left. My whole idea was to make as complete a record of the Master's activities as possible. I could see that nobody else had been doing this. Actually, I was being used in a way that I couldn't even begin to imagine. For instance, one day I arrived at the Ashram carrying my cameras although I knew that there was no fixed program. Mata Sheila was inside the Master's house with some members of her family. When she was about to leave she said to the Master, "Oh, I wish there could be a photographer here so that I could always have a remembrance of this day." Master smiled. At that moment I was just arriving. As I said, I had no fixed engagement with the Master and there was no program at all, but there I was and I had brought my cameras. Master was so happy to see me, and He said, "Sheila, there we are, the photographer has come for you." Everybody gathered round the Master and I went to work. I felt that power was always there. After going on like this for some time, one day the Master said to me, "That's enough. Now you sit down in front of me and listen to what is said at Satsang. Just be quiet and forget about everything—just look into my eyes." And you know, from that moment I realized what I had been missing by jumping about all the time instead of sitting in front of Him quietly and absorbing His Divine Grace like the others. Nevertheless, I still carried on with my work of photographing the Master. At the beginning of April 1972, He asked me to come to Manav Kendra at Dehra Dun to photograph the Bhandara for Baba Sawan Singh Ji. There was a special bus that left the Ashram, but when I arrived it was full. I had no ticket and was very worried how I was going to get there in time, when 238 The Ocean of Grace Divine suddenly Mr. Mehta came rushing up to me, and seeing my plight said, "No, no, you don't need any reservation. You are working for the Master and you have to go." Within a minute he managed to arrange something. I was given a seat, and the bus left. This five-hour journey was done in the heaviest rain, but I can tell you that the bus was full of the Master's love. The whole way we were all singing Bhajans (songs of praise in honor of the Masters). When we arrived at Manav Kendra at 4:00 a.m. the sun was already shining, and there was Master waiting to greet us. Master made us all have tea, and then told us to go to our cottages. The scene was so wonderful for me, I can never forget it. Hundreds of people were doing seva, putting up the tents, preparing the kitchen, building the platform, all with such love. Nobody cared about their clothes; even the Westerners were carrying bricks and helping with the work. I was able to take photographs of the Master supervising the work and giving parshad. Some of the portraits were later to appear in the two volumes of Heart-to-Heart Talks. Actually, the first portrait I took of the Master in the Ashram was for His passport and was taken just before He left on His last world tour in 1972. Gyani Ji had called me and told me to go up to the Master's bedroom. But Master was unwilling to be photographed at that moment. I didn't know what to do, I just said, "Maharaj Ji, excuse me, but this is rather important as they will not let You out of the country if you don't have a picture in Your passport." Well, Master just smiled, He put His turban on, walked into the light, and let me take the photo. I had always wanted to take photographs of the Master when He gave initiation, but somehow or other it was never possible. On July 29th, 1974, Master gave Naam to over a thousand souls. He was extremely ill at the time, in fact there was a bed brought in and placed behind the platform so that He could lie down after He had put the people into meditation. Although He walked off the platform He would not lie down; He would only sit in a chair. He looked extremely grave, almost white, but extremely beautiful. I had my cameras with me and took a photograph of His back view with all the people sitting in Bhajan in Photographing the Beloved Master 239 the background. As He did not object, I waited until He got back onto the platform and to my surprise He turned round and allowed me to take the photograph of Him giving what proved to be His very last initiation, which I consider to not only be most historically important, but also one of the most beautiful photographs of Him that I have taken. You know, before I met the Master I was a non-vegetarian and I didn't know anything about spirituality, but I just wanted to find the Truth. How He changed my life is a source of constant wonder to me. If we are true to ourselves, and if we begin to understand a little of what the Master really is, we will know He is with us all the time. Only a little while ago my small son was playing on the table and fell down, hitting his head on the stone floor. My wife lifted him up and he was unconscious; we immediately sent for a doctor. I held the child in my arms, and prayed to the Master to help us. Before the doctor had even arrived, the child opened his eyes as if nothing had happened, as if waking from sleep, and everything was perfectly all right. So this is my conviction, if we are true to ourselves and working honestly with full faith at the Master, He must look after us; He will help us in every stage. He cannot leave us. Even if we forget Him, He does not forget us. In Honor of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj Jay and Ricki Linksman How can we ever pay homage to the greatness of the Beloved Master Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj? For millions, He was "Sant Ji," a Saint who accomplished so many great things in the course of His Mastership that it is awe inspiring. Perhaps He will best be remembered by Humanity for His colossal achievements: the establishing of Ruhani Satsang, His three World Tours, the construction of Sawan Ashram, the numerous International Honors He received, the many books He wrote, the building of Manav Kendra, and finally, the Unity of Man Conference. But to His initiates, His memory Mill burn eternally, fueled by the remembrance of the "little, little things"—a kind word, a loving glance, a gentle touch. These things made us dance in ecstasy and swoon in love. Nothing in the world can compare with being in the Presence of the Living Master. On the last day we spent in the Physical Presence of our Beloved Master in August, 1973, He recited the following poem that He had written to His Master Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj: Your photo is dearer to me than You, In humor of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj 241 If I want to hug You or Kiss You or touch Your Feet, You say, "Stand aside," But a photo I can hug and Kiss. Then, He said, "The Physical Form of the Master is the greatest blessing. If you have Him within, that's all right. But if you have Him without, that's a double blessing. Only a few get the Radiant Form of the Master, but the Physical Master, even the greatest sinner can enjoy." The glory and the greatness of the Master was that He came to each of us at our own level. He revealed Himself to each of us in a unique way. He made each and every one of us feel so very special, like we were princes and princesses—sons and daughters of the Great King that He was. In the Garden of Non-existence Andrew Vidich There is only the Friendship with the Friend that grants rest to the yearning heart. There is only the sight of The Beloved that soothes the burning eyes. Therefore, Seek the tender caress from the hidden One In the garden of non-existence Where His rain is a gentle shower of Mercy, And the court-yard of The Beloved is decked with dancing lights of joy. Here in His rose-garden all are lost to self, Drunk on the elixir of His glances of Grace. Listen, and Sing the Song Eternal which you really are. Bathe and Bask in the heavenly Light that transcends all sorrow. Feel the pulse of life itself from His Heart which embraces all hearts and is in tune with every mind. With every step, with every breath, with every passing moment, Let the flame of Love Divine shine forth from every pore of Thy Being, And with an Ocean of Tears flood the world with the remembrance of Him. He Revealed Himself In So Many Ways G. Van den Heever It was indeed through Master's grace that a small handful of disciples from South Africa were privileged to sit at His Holy Feet in December 1973. I knew that the likelihood of my personally getting to India was very remote if not non-existent. Nevertheless, there was that little inner nudging which prompted me to enquire the ways and means and costs from a travel agent. This information lay unused for at least one year when suddenly a small group wished to know the details. It still did not seem possible that we would really go; I mentally handed it all to Master to be resolved as He wished. The response startled me, as I was immediately enveloped by some strong electrical charge I then knew that Master was indeed in charge and that even if I personally did not go, the arrangements were to be made for those fortunate enough to be called. The gratitude in my heart, that in spite of insurmountable obstacles, I too formed part of the group to reach the Ashram, remains very deep and strong. There was, in South Africa, so far from India, still a certain amount of confusion as to whether this Master who had so graciously accepted us, had indeed been elected by the Great He Revealed Himself In So Many Ways 243 Master Hazur Sawan Singh to be His successor. As a result, I inwardly, earnestly entreated the Master to reveal to me the true situation. Shortly after our arrival at the Ashram there was a large public Satsang under canopies in front of Master's house, and there Master came and put us all into mediation. All was so strange and new, and my attention could not become focused until it was again all handed to Master. In a short while I was looking at—what I now know to be Guru Nanak—seated on a throne with incandescent rays of light and colors encircling Him. While gently watching He would change His face to what I realized later were others in the line of Masters. The next one I recognized was Master Sawan Singh looking so incredibly gentle and beautiful and then it was our Master. A few times it changed from Baba Sawan to Master Kirpal and then Master's face formed a golden tunnel which drew me in until attention failed. Oh! Master! who so clearly answered this one's foolish question. The wonderful vibrations that flowed overawed us, and we sat mute at the daily darshan sittings in Master's house. One day while watching Master addressing some disciple, I was stunned to see Master's eyes change—shape and color— until I could only see those strangely luminous up-tilted blue eyes which were familiar to me from meditations back home. What a feeling of intense wordless wonderment to have confirmation that the promise that Master makes to reside within the disciples from the time of initiation was true! Master had been there watching me all the time—Beloved Master, nearer to me than my breath! One evening, feeling weary from long sittings on the ground and listening to Master speak in a foreign tongue, I decided to meditate—but my attention would not focus—when suddenly, loudly and clearly Master's voice spoke, I knew to me, in English, "Please lift the attention a little higher." I shifted my gaze upward and it was right. When I listened with my outer ears it was obvious that Master had never stopped His discourse in Hindi. The words to me had all somehow fitted into His talk. He revealed Himself so lovingly in so many ways; His love and compassion was so great. He showed one so gently, inside, many weaknesses and failings, one's lack of love; but always His love and understanding was constant. My experiences with the Great Master R. Krige It was a great privilege to be able to visit our great and Beloved Master Kirpal Singh Ji for about five weeks from December 1973. During my stay I experienced several unexplained occurences which one might call miracles. While sitting at Master's Feet at morning and evening darshan it was not unusual for me to have most of my questions answered by Master without asking Him any. It happened so naturally that I later on took it for granted and was not surprised by it any more. Sometimes when Master looked at me His Love emanated so strongly that I could actually feel it with my skin—like a cloud it enveloped and embraced me. These experiences were so potent that I felt literally purified and washed as if I had had a bath of soul and body. Then came a knowing that Master sees one fully as one is deep within oneself, with such compassion as can only come from a True Master. One day I noticed the A U M sign, as it is written in Sanskrit, on Master's forehead. I blinked my eyes to make sure, although I had not at all thought of anything like that, but it still remained till the end of the morning darshan. I saw this on My experiences with the Great Master more than one occasion and after a friend and I had discussed it, I learned that she had also noticed it. During our stay, Master planned a tour to Bombay and gave His consent that we could go along. It was a tiresome trip— 750 miles by bus—but we were fortunate to see Master every day. At Baroda we stayed over for a couple of days because Master initiated around two hundred people there. During our stay I was surprised to see in what a short time many, many people were served food. I did not count them, but it could have been several hundreds, but the incredible thing was that it seemed as if there were only a few hands preparing the food, and yet everybody could get as much as he wanted and yet there was surplus. Master's grace undoubtedly. Master really proved Himself to me as a Master, and a Perfect Master. Master's Sense of Humor Malcolm Tillis The Great Masters of spirituality who live with us and teach us on this earth, possess, among their many divine attributes, the very human quality of a sense of humor. As each Master has His own distinct personality and style, so their sense of humor can vary in expression. In Hazur Baba Sawan Singh it took the form of amusing stories told in Satsang to illustrate deep spiritual truths—the Great Master would so enjoy telling these stories that the whole Sangat would be bursting with laughter. He also made puns with words which, together with the stories, could be understood by the simplest person. Sant Kirpal Singh Ji's humor was of a different kind; it was most subtle, it found expression in conversation or intimate heartto-heart talks. He would often slip in the most pointed and amusing remarks, slip them in so quietly indeed that they could easily be missed by the slow-witted. They gleamed like the sudden flash of a diamond catching the light; they were never stressed nor did they ever claim any appaluse or even any recognition —sometimes He would seem to be just talking to Himself. Nothing a Master does, however, is without its own purpose. Sant Kirpal Singh Ji was constantly teaching us such profound, such Master's Sense of Humor 247 disturbing truths about our pitiable condition that in His great mercy He lightened the weight to make it easier for us to grasp. Sometimes the most telling lessons would come out in an amusing aside. In spite of the Master's repeatedly assuring a rather orthodox Sikh that if he accepted initiation and followed the Path of Sant Mat it would in no way compromise his Faith, this seeker kept reiterating his doubts, and finally said, "Do let me make it very clear: if I get initiated I shall continue to carry my kirpan (dagger) as enjoined by the Faith." The Master replied, "As far as I am concerned, why carry only one? You may carry two. It is you who have to bear the weight." In the following account of what happend when some visiting Westerners were being given photos, the Master is shown impressing upon them that they are not their bodies. A departing satsangi wanted Master to give each of the group, photos he'd taken of them with the Master; in this way the photos would receive His charging and become parshad. Each photo had the name of the recipient on it, and Master began to hand them out, calling out each name. When He came to one man, He stopped. "John, who is John?" Everyone hastened to point this man out. The Master then appeared not to know this man who had in fact been at the Ashram for several weeks. "John, is that John?" Then He asked the man, "Are you John?" "Well, Master, they call me John." Then Master in a quiet aside remarked, "He's in John's body," and went on giving out the photos. Once when someone on the Master's staff went to Him and asked if he could have some help with the typing of the work he had been given, the Master began tapping His knee with His fingers and remarked, "You know, I can type—five words a minute!" Often the Master's humor would mitigate His strictures when He had to tell us not to take our small selves too seriously, as the following three stories demonstrate. (But it should be understood that these remarks of the Master were all given with a lightness of touch or with a benign smile which cannot, alas, be conveyed by the printed word.) When a Western satsangi was describing how he'd seen a 248 The Ocean of Grace Divine golden cup in meditation, the Master remarked, "Well, did you have a drink?" And to a lady in London on His last foreign tour who complained she was only getting flashes of Light inside, He said, "But did you pay for any more?" Once one of His staff was sitting close to the dias at Satsang in Delhi on a Sunday morning; the Beloved Master addressed every word to her—He poured out the whole discourse to her. She was much elated. Meeting the Master shortly afterwards in the porch of His house, He asked her, "Were you at Satsang this morning?" The Master always knew of course what was in everyone's mind—and this sometimes caused much amusement as well as astonishment. An American girl staying at Manav Kendra had just finished her meditation beside the Mansarovar when a small flight of ducks alighted on the water—she was in ecstasy over those ducks! "Oh the blessed ducks!" They were swimming in the sacred pool. She then went to the porch of the Master's house for His usual evening Darshan, but all the time she was thinking of the ducks. Also on the porch was a new arrival, a foreign lady who had never before been to India—she was much fascinated by the Indians who were also sitting waiting for the Master to come out and give His blessed Darshan. He came out and sat down. Then He said, "You should please keep your minds solely on the Master. Don't be thinking of the ducks, or of the people sitting with you." One evening one of the Master's staff was sitting beside Him as He attended to His correspondence, but through her mind was running the question of who should be asked to take home a certain lady who had come to visit the Master. She wondered if so-and-so could be asked, or perhaps another person, or maybe a third who occurred to her. At this the Master looked up and said, naming yet a fourth person, "How about so-and-so?" Two people were once in the Master's room, but they were very far away from Him; He was occupied with other people. They spoke together in whispers and no one else could possibly hear what they said, far less the Master who was on the other side of the room. They were whispering together how like a lion the Master looked! What majesty! At that moment the Master Master's Sense of Humor 240 looked across at them—and let out a roar! When the Master was on His world tours, hundreds of satsangis and seekers asked Him questions; very often the answers they received surprised them very much. Master would sometimes give completely different answers to the same question asked by different people, adapting the words to the spiritual condition of each enquirer. Two people on two different occasions both told Him that during meditation they felt as if they were dying. Allaying their fears with kind smiles and amusing and unexpected replies, the Master said to one of them, "You won't die. Do you want it in writing?" And to the other He replied, "Well, have you made your will?" Sometimes the Master made jokes against Himself. Manav Kendra was under construction; a newspaper reporter came to ask Him questions for a report on what was going on. Among other questions, he asked the Master, "What is Your budget?" The Master replied, "God is my budget —and I'm spending like wildfire." On another occasion when people were complimenting Him on the writing of Gurmat Sidhant, He turned these compliments aside by saying, "I've done nothing. It's my pen that is guilty." Master's time was so precious that members of His staff tried to limit private interviews with Him to the minimum, just enough to cover the points that had to be brought to His notice. Someone once came running in to see the Master carrying a lot of papers, and said, "Oh Master, please forgive me. Gould I see You just for two minutes?" The Master looked at Him very sweetly without saying anything—He then replied, "One minute has already gone!" Jerry Astra Turk has recorded the following incident which shows Him in a more carefree mood: We were on tour with Master in Nainital. Master sent for us to meet a Major from the Forestry Commission. Naturally I sat at Master's Feet on the right hand side. So this Major said, "I would like to be introduced to you, what shall I call you?" So I said, "Call me what Master calls me, call me Jyoti." "I know, but what should I call you?" I said. "Then call me Astra." "No, no, what should I 250 The Ocean of Grace Divine call you?" "Then call me Miss Turk." "No, no! I don't mean that. What should I call you?" I said, "Look ye here, I want you to know one thing. I came thousands of miles to look upon the Radiant Face of God-Guru sitting in the manbody. You see Who is sitting here? He is my Lord, my God, my Master, my Husband. He is my Father, my Mother, my Husband. He is my Father, and Mother, and Family, my Friend. He is the Universe, He is Everything—ALL CREATION!" Then he said, "Yes, I know, but what should I CALL you?" Master looked at Him, and said quietly, "Call her Mrs. God!" Sant Kirpal Singh often spoke of incidents in His life which would help to illustrate a point He was making. During a heartto-heart talk given at Sawan Ashram on an extremely cold day in January 1974, having noticed that all His visiting Western disciples were wearing thick coats and heavy woolen blankets, He told the following story which illustrates so well how the Masters are air-conditioned, how Their attention is controlled: I see that you all have very warm clothing. Look, I've only got a waist-coat on. (He lifted His white shirt to show nothing underneath—everyone present gasped). Once it happened when I was in service at Lahore the trains didn't run on account of thick ice. After some time one train left, but no passengers would go on it. I had to travel somewhere from Lahore, and I think there were only two men on the whole train—myself and one other man. It was winter, a biting cold day. I only had on a small muslin cotton sheet, an ordinary cotton sheet. The other man had a very warm quilt. I was doing all right, but the other man took pity on me—he offered me his quilt! I told him I didn't need it, but he pressed me. You see, cold starts when? When your attention is outside. If your attention is within, you do not feel cold or heat. I was air-conditioned —the cold did not affect me. But when I put that quilt on, over me, then I felt the cold. I really began to feel cold. I had to beg that man to take his quilt back. Often things which seemed funny to us would be treated by the Master with seriousness. This happened when one of His staff Master's Sense of Humor 251 brought Him some letters; he read one out. "I read Sat Sandesh, but up till now I have not been initiated. I am in the habit of drinking. When I drink heavily and begin to lose my consciousness You come and take charge of me!" The secretary laughed out loud, but the Master said, "Please don't take it so lightly— When the patient is in a serious condition the doctor has to attend Him." The Beloved Master often used humor to soften a rebuke —or even to drive it home more forcefully! On learning that one of His older initiates had taken to mastering lower powers with the help of mantras, the Master wrote to congratulate him for having regressed from college to the primary school. Upon receiving this ironic reprimand, the initiate was so filled with remorse and penitence that he gave up dabbling with such practices right away, praying for the Master's forgiveness and grace. Mr. Chadda, the editor of the Urdu and Hindi Sat Sandesh, tells this story: "I had once again been late with the Master's work; I went to Him like a truant before the class teacher. But to my great surprise the Master was not forthcoming with the usual reprimand. Instead He started off by talking of the special purpose God has in fashioning each individual object in creation. Then, planting His eyes on me, He ended, 'I believe God made you to serve as a touchstone for testing the patience of a saint.' " A satsangi lady complained to the Master that she could not get her husband to ask for initiation. He replied with a smile, "What great conquests on the Path have you made since your initiation that you are so worried about your husband?" Sometimes the Beloved Master consoled His children not only with words of comfort, but also with humor. To someone who complained to Him of increasing deafness, He said, "Why do you worry about it? Deafness is a blessing! You are saved from thirteen percent of the sense impressions, but more than that, you don't have to listen to other peoples' complaints." And to a mother who was so worried about her son that she broke down and started crying, the Merciful Master watched her, chuckled softly and said, "Don't you know that the Master Power is always looking after you and yours? You are on the train, and the train is carrying you and also your baggage. Then why do you carry 252 your baggage on your with the l o a d ? " The Ocean of Grace Divine head? W h y break your neck needlessly T h e Beloved M a s t e r h a d a very special relationship with children a n d babies. O n c e at S a w a n Ashram the Master came o u t o f H i s house t o give d a r s h a n t o p e o p l e w a i t i n g for H i m o u t side; a s m a l l c h i l d c a u g h t h o l d o f H i s h a n d a n d p u l l e d H i m b a c k t o w a r d s H i s house. F o r s o m e t i m e H e a l l o w e d H i m s e l f t o b e taken back; then He turned round and returned to His waiting devotees. " Y o u s e e , " H e l a u g h e d , " s o m e t i m e s t h e F a t h e r l e a d s t h e child—and sometimes the child leads the Father." T o w a r d s t h e e n d o f t h e B e l o v e d M a s t e r ' s e a r t h life w h e n H e w a s suffering g r e a t p h y s i c a l p a i n , H e mercifully l i g h t e n e d t h e a n x i e t y felt b y H i s d e a r c h i l d r e n s i t t i n g a t H i s L o t u s F e e t b y m a k i n g t h e m s m i l e — H e n e v e r w a n t e d t o see l o n g faces o r b r o o d i n g looks. O n t h e e v e n i n g o f A u g u s t 6 t h 1974 a t S a w a n A s h r a m , t h e M a s t e r c a m e o u t o n t o t h e p o r c h t o give H i s Blessed D a r s h a n t o t h e v i s i t i n g W e s t e r n disciples. H e i m m e d i a t e l y a s k e d t h e m a b o u t t h e i r m e d i t a t i o n s . " A r e you all g o i n g s t r o n g ? W h a t sort o f strong? E l e p h a n t s t r o n g , horse s t r o n g , w h i s k y strong? I f y o u a r e i n t o x i c a t e d , it is whisky s t r o n g ! " Providential Help Ajit Singh Mehta In 1947 India was torn with Hindu-Muslim riots; my wife and I were at Lahore station waiting for a train to the Dera. My little girl wanted to urinate, so my wife took her a short distance outside the platform. Two young Muslims holding daggers suddenly came rushing at them. My wife was terrified, thought of Hazur, and called out, "Maharaj Ji—Maharaj Ji!" At once the two men drew back alarmed, saying, "Who are these Sikh gentlemen—where have they come from?" And they ran off. Hazur and Sant Kirpal Singh Ji had manifested that moment. My wife came back just as the train was arriving and did not say a word about what happened. But later when we met Sant Kirpal Singh Ji at Beas, He asked, "Any news?" My wife deliberately avoided mentioning the incident. But He said, "What happened at the station?" My wife then said, "What You have done has happened." He then replied, "It was Hazur who saved you from the clutches of those people!" He said this, but we knew He to had manifested to help us also—and this was before He became the Master. In 1958 I was cycling down a steep descent in New Delhi. Suddenly the fork of the front wheel broke. Although I was going 254 The Ocean of Grace Divine at a terrific speed and was flung to the ground, I felt like a child who was falling asleep in his mother's lap and she was laying him gently on a bed so as not to disturb him. But when I looked up I found the cycle was broken in two, and I had a miraculous escape without even being scratched. A few days later I had the chance to tell all this to Maharaj Kirpal Singh at Sawan Ashram. He said, "This is why I tell you people to do your spiritual practices regularly. If you had been regular, you would have seen with your own eyes how Hazur helps His initiates." Sant Ji Mufti Atiquer Rehman Usmani Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj was a great intellectual, a man of great power with a thought-provoking personality. I had the privilege and pleasure of working under His benign love and affection, and profited much from His company. I can say, with all the emphasis at my command, that Sant Ji was an exceptional personality of our age. Because of His practical way of life and spiritual attainments, He had created a wide circle of admirers and devotees not only in India but also in Europe and America. I had seen in His famous Ashram many European men and women who came to seek spiritual guidance and solace. It is difficult to put in words the pure and quiet atmosphere of Sawan Ashram. I often had the privilege to participate in the annual gatherings there. I always felt that this ocean of thousands of human beings was listening with keen interest to the teachings of Islam and sincerely desiring to ponder over them. Due to the august status of Sant Ji and His spirit of dedicated service, I always was happy to participate in such holy gatherings. I visualize before my eyes the practical and dedicated way He used to work. Like all Saints and mystics, His philosophy was that the image of God is embodied in all human beings, and it shines in everything. Sant Ji believed in the Fatherhood of God; He considered all human beings as family members of one Almighty God. He often used to quote couplets of Khwaja Faridu-din, Maulana Rumi, Araf Jami and Hafiz to stress the need of understanding the esoteric meaning of the Science of Godrealzation. We all profited from this Great Soul. His achievements are everlasting. Notes on a Pilgrimage to the Master Robert Smith When I was in Sawan Ashram in the winter of 1973, the Master expressed great interest in those of us who were writing down accounts of His wonderful darshans and the day-to-day pace of Ashram life. Whenever possible, He wanted to see our notes before we would return with them to show to others. "You see," He once commented, "it is not that I am distrustful of anyone's judgment, but it is just that sometimes people will misquote me and then lead others and themselves astray." I had a chance to show Him about the first third of my account, in which He made a few changes. I regret that He did not see any of the rest, and therefore I alone take the responsibility for any distortions or misinterpretations which may appear. It is also important to realize that when Sant Kirpal Singh spoke to individuals, so often He spoke to each one at his or her own level of understanding or need. He did not always intend to have His specific advice to a certain one to be generalized into a maxim or a principle to be followed by all. It is not for us to try to fathom the spiritual perspective from which He viewed each one of us. It is only for us to bear in mind what He offered to each one of us, and to live up to that. Notes on a Pilgrimage to the Master 257 Monday, December 17, 1973: This day finds me sitting in the international pavilion of New York's Airport. It is somehow unreal to feel that I am on my way to see my Master in India, and that I will be there, sitting before him, in another twentyfour hours or so! The rigors of this journey are frightening. The flight takes about twenty-two hours and goes through ports in four countries, including France, Greece, the Middle-East, and Persia. I see here all kinds of people: Africans and Asians, Arabs and Jews, Indians and Pakistanis. Many of them are going on holy pilgrimages to Jerusalem and other suchlike places. In a sense, this trip of mine is also a holy pilgrimage, although I didn't think of it as such until I saw these other pilgrims. My Master made this journey, less than one year ago, and he did it in spite of being nearly eighty years old and in bad health. I am twenty-four years old and in excellent health. So why am I afraid, then? When Master was in America, one afternoon, he chastized me for slovenly habits in keeping the diaries. I do not believe I have improved much in that regard since he returned to India. I think about this now that I am going to see him, but I haven't been so concerned about it in recent months. Why should it be any different now? I suppose I am worried that he will be displeased with me. Wednesday, December 19, 1978: Twenty-One hours out, and now we're cruising toward Delhi and should be there in another hour or two. I have had all of about six hours of sleep these last forty-eight hours. 9:00 a.m. Sawan Ashram: Good God! Now, total confusion. I don't know who I am, what I am, or where I am. The shock of this culture is immense. At the airport, at least, were dear Gyani Ji and Edna, who were there to meet me. Further jolt upon arrival: Master is in Bombay and won't be back here until Friday, December 21st or later. Thursday, December 20: A very long sleep of about sixteen hours. The shock of being here has subsided a little, but I still can't believe I am here. Temperatures are very cold. Builders are furiously adding to the existing structures. There is a railroad line which runs past the Ashram on the outside wall. Because of 258 The Ocean of Grace Divine the travel, I am troubled by tiredness and a weird sense of otherness. Friday, December 21 (winter solstice): A very bleak, cold day. I am filled with enormous sadness, psychic pain, and guilt, and I don't know why. Spiritual crisis. Saturday, December 22, 8:30 a.m.: Further bitter disappointment. Master will not return today. Maybe not even tomorrow. I eat and sleep a great deal —curious reaction to strange environments, and also to my own fears and self-doubts. Sunday, December 23: Today is by far the coldest day. Temperatures under 45°F (10°C) and no sun. Meditation is the medicine to cure my sickness! (4:30 p.m.) T H E MASTER ARRIVED. WHAT M O R E IS T H E R E TO SAY? Monday, December 24: Two darshans each day. One at 10:00 a.m., one at 6:00 p.m. How can one forget what HE is? Yet, somehow one forgets. He is gentle, kindly, laughing, and radiant. At the same time He is magnificent and powerful and can be very stern. Tuesday, December 25: Question: "Master, in meditation, I have difficulty stilling myself, my hands, I am so very nervous." Master: "When you are going to meet a friend, do you get nervous? Your nervousness is from lack of wholehearted attention to Master. When sitting in meditation, T H I N K OF N O T H I N G ELSE and only look into the center of whatever you see. Stillness comes from LOVE. Run your race swiftly, and do not took to either side to see who is running there alongside you. Look neither to left nor right. Let the desire to win this race become your RULING PASSION." Question: "Master, as it is our Christmas Day today in the West, I wish You a Merry Christmas." Master: "That is so kind. I, too, wish all of you a 'Happy Christmas!' But what means Christmas Day? You, young man, what means Christmas?" Our Master directed this question to Stewart. Stewart replied: "Christmas means celebrating the birthday of Christ." Notes on a Pilgrimage to The Master Master asked: "But what means Christ? W h a t is t h e significance of b e a r i n g cross? Show us what it is, to bear the cross!" Stewart stood up and spread out his arms, as though in a cross. Master: "Okay! That is very good! Now, go up!" All laughed. "You see, this is the REAL SIGNIFICANCE OF CHRISTMAS DAY: 'Take cross daily. Die daily.' That is true meaning of Christ. One says 'I die daily.' But it is not death as we usually conceive of it. To us, now, death is a bugbear, is it not? But what means death? It means, merely, a TRANSFERENCE from one place to another. I tell you, death is really a blessing. But how do we know? Only by dying while still alive. By taking cross daily. It is a kind of death which does not sever the silver cord, so we can return to man-body." Arran Stephens got this on a tape-recording. I do not know what Kirpal Singh is. I can detect no sense of egotism in Him, whatsoever. When He looks at me, the feeling is that a sparkling radiation emits from His right eye. Other experiences come from this, too, but it would seem improper to try to describe them. The impact upon the soul is enormous. So enormous that I do not know what it is. Wednesday, December 26: Master dispelled many of my selfdoubts yesterday. Further doubts can be resolved only through the discipline of the meditative experience. Master's people yesterday held a planning meeting for the forthcoming World Conference on the Unity of Man. The meetings were partially in Hindi partially in English. Master sat calmly and impassively, patiently throughout, and He said very little. He let the others do the planning. Many distinguished political and religious leaders were here, including also some M.P.'s, royalty, and academics. Master often chimed in with some puns or jovial comments. After the meetings, we had a "picnic" prepared for us by Master's cooks, followed by tea and biscuits in His own house. Someone said that the President and the Prime Minister of India will attend the Conference. Question: "Dear Master, there is clutching in my meditation, and tensions." 260 The Ocean of Grace Divine Master told him to relax his physical eyes, as they are not the eyes which see inward light, Master then gave him a doctorlike inquiry, to try to diagnose the problem: Master: "Are you aware of breathing while in meditation?" "Where in the body is tension?" "Are you aware of observing process of withdrawal as it occurs?" "Are you accurately keeping diary?" "Are you looking to CENTER of whatever you see, or to whole of it?" Question: "Is it possible that I am too attached to the Master's physical form?" Master: "Now, look here, when an electric light-bulb provides you with light, do you love the bulb for its own sake, or for the sake of the light that it provides!" (And the Master laughed!) Thursday, December 27: By now I am so inundated by this experience that it is beyond the realm of possibility to record all of it, even if I have unlimited ink and paper and the ability to write volumes in a matter of hours. Master's Darshans are incomparable. Truly, in gazing at his eyes, one feels that it is not "Kirpal Singh" looking out at the world, but rather, that it is some kind of higher Divinity looking DOWN from on high. Yet at the same time there is such a fundamental humility to Him that there is no selfhood there at all. It is no longer "Kirpal Singh" who looks at us. Question: "What are the purposes of attending separately to Light and to Sound?" Master: "Both are really the same life-force, the same Naam, expressing itself in different vibrations. The Light shows us where we are; the Sound brings us there." In the evening, Master gave a long talk on the subject of marriage, which was quite curious to me, in that His talk came in response to a question which (ostensibly) had nothing to do with marriage. Someone must have been thinking of this question. Later in another context, Master elaborated by speaking further on the benefits of chastity. Ram Ji is the servant in our Guest House in the Ashram. Notes on a Pilgrimage to the Master 261 In his great intoxication, he goes about all day and all night long, in a mirthful glee, singing, "Sat-a-Naam-a-Ji! Sat-a-Naam-a-Ji!" And in addition to this, Ram Ji is an incurable prankster. Often he will ambush someone from behind when they are not looking. Yesterday, we ran short of spoons in our kitchen, and I asked Ram if he could go to the langar to get some more. "Pardon me, brother," he asked, "what means 'spoon'?" I tried explaining it to him but he didn't get it. Finally I took a piece of paper and drew him a picture of a spoon. "Aha!" he exclaimed, in his limited English, "I know what this thing is! I go and get some!" Promptly, he ran off to the langar chanting, "Spoon-a-Ji! Spoon-a-Ji!" There is a sort of natural quality of devotion and submission which the Indian people seem to manifest here. I believe it is part of their culture, and yet it seems so alien to me, a Westerner. And yet, our souls are of neither East nor West. Friday, December 28: These last two days, I've slid backward a bit, both physically and mentally. My senses seem dulled, and I feel cut off from Master's radiant warmth. I profited greatly from this morning's darshan. Quite unexpectedly, a very interesting lad from Canada stopped in to pay his respects to our Master. He was not an initiate, but was rather a devotee of Baha'ullah, the Persian saint who founded the Baha'i Faith. Yet, this young man (no more than twenty-one years old, probably) had heard of Kirpal Singh and had heard that Kirpal Singh is a Perfect Master, and so he wished to come to see for himself. The fascinating dialogue which unfolded went like this: Question: Sir, I heard you're a Perfect Master, and I wanted to verify this for myself. Are you, or are you not, perfect? Master: See here, my friend, I wish to speak to you manto-man. Now, tell me what it is that you want FOR YOURSELF. Question: I'm perturbed, sir, by one thing that my Master Baha'ullah wrote in one of his books. He said, "After I pass, there will not be another incarnation of God or of Master for at least another 1,000 years." Master: That is all right. I have great love for Baha'ullah, 262 The Ocean of Grace Divine and since you love him also, I have great love for you. Have you read his books? Question: Sir? Master: Have you read his books for yourself? How many did he write? Question :About one hundred volumes, sir. Master: Okay, that is all right. Now, have you met Baha'ullah for yourself? Question :He died long before I was born, sir. Master: I mean, in meditation. Let me ask: Do you practise any meditation? Question: I do, sir. Master: Okay, very good, all right. Now, have you ever seen Baha'ullah in your meditation? What is it that you see, what is it in the way of inward experience, that you have when you meditate? Question: I believe, sir, that Baha'ullah was a perfect— Master: (interrupting) No, you are not answering the question that I ask! I am ASKING you, what do you see when you meditate? Question: I...when I meditate, I have a great feeling of love for God. Master: Very good, God bless you. Now, what have you SEEN? Question: (Long pause) I feel that—I have had an experience of light, and some sensation of passing above and beyond the body. Master: Very well, I accept completely what you tell me. I also tell you, again, that I love your teacher Baha'ullah, and because you have great love for him, I have the same love for you that I have for him. Now, I tell you, this is what you must do: go further in, into your meditation, and do not assume that this light that you have seen is the final stage. It is just the beginning. If you go in further into it, you may ask him what it is that you should do further in the way of spiritual development. And you may come here further, if you desire, for you are completely welcome here. The young man thanked the Master and then left. Notes on a Pilgrimage to the Master 263 The question of whether Kirpal Singh is "the Perfect Master" is thus besides the point. If we love him, we will do as he requests, to see whether he is or not telling us the truth. What good would it do for us if he himself, or if someone else, were to say," "Yes, Kirpal Singh is indeed the Perfect Master"? We must see for our own selves! Saturday, December 29: I got very bold today. I asked a question. Question: "Master, sitting before your physical presence, I feel bewildered and a little bit afraid, and I don't know why." M a s t e r : "Well, what is it that you are afraid of?" Question: "Well, I'm not exactly sure. I can't think of what it is that I fear in you, but I am afraid." Master: "Well, I do not have two long arms which will come to haunt you in the middle of the night, now, do I? Your fear is because of the color of the spectacles that you are wearing. But then there is something more there, too, I think. That something more is very good. It shows that you are developing love for the Master, and that you are going up in love. When you love someone, you are always thinking, 'I hope I have pleased him, I hope I have done nothing to offend him.' This is a very good sign, and it is good when you feel like that." Three traveling German scholars came today and asked very pointed questions. Before leaving, one of them gave Him a painting of a radiant and multi-colored sun, and said, "This is the radiant sun." After they had left, Master sighed and said to us, "Do you see? Sometimes people come here to test me." Later, Gyani Ji brought in the telephone and interrupted our Darshan, saying that it was an important Swami calling long distance from Bombay. Master seemed upset by the contents of the telephone message. To share it with us, he spoke to the Swami in English, thus giving us half of the conversation: "Speak more slowly, please! No, I have not received word of this, what you have done. No! I have received neither letter nor telegram from you!...I TELL YOU, please be quiet and LISTEN TO W H A T I AM SAYING....NO, I WILL N O T GO TO BOMBAY N E X T W E E K - N O , I TELL YOU, I HAVE N O T 264 The Ocean of Grace Divine received word of this...That's right!...What do you mean to tell me? This is the FIRST W O R D I have received of this.... All right, then....All right....But no promises, I tell you. All right, if my health permits it, but no promises." Then He hung up rather emphatically, and looked at us wistfully. "You see what they do? They use my name on a programme without telling me ahead of time. Then they call me up and say, 'You M U S T come, because we have already printed the programme with your name on it, and people are expecting you here.' They use my name to draw a crowd, and then they ask me to come! Do you see what has become of my name?" Sunday, December 30: Master conducted large Satsang in the Ashram courtyard. The Westerners sat near the front. The Master was incomparably radiant today, even seeming to glow at times. I became aware of the meagerness of my own receptivity. He started by giving us a sitting, after which time he asked to see how many of us had had this or that inward experience. As always, He wrote down the numbers of people who had seen one experience or another. I do not know why He does this, but the impression that it gives is that He is a Holy Accountant! The discourse which followed was mainly in Hindi. Then the "music Master" Pratap Singh Ji sang a bhajan, which seemed to give Master immense pleasure. Master closed His eyes, nodded along with the rhythm, and seemed to be in ecstasy! Then it all ended abruptly and He told us, "Okay, go and take your food!" Later in the day, Master spoke about the diary and suggested that we might take one column at a time and work on it concertedly in order to weed out that particular failing. "Always do one thing at a time," He said. Monday, December 31: A disappointing day for me. I posed a question. Master did not even bother to answer it, but said, "This has been answered already," and was very curt and blunt. I should have been more considerate than to ask such a question. He seemed to be in much physical pain today. Tuesday, January 1, 1974: New Year's Day to the Western world. Master said that we should sit for at least two hours at a time, and that the hours of 3:00 to 6:00 a.m. were best Sawan Notes on a Pilgrimage to the Master 265 Singh once said, "I am going out in the early morning hours to spread grace, but nobody is awake to receive it!" Master added, "I quote His saying that, only to help you develop more incentive." There are others around the Ashram and visiting here who regularly see the Master's radiant form within. What an awesome blessing that must be! For the rest of us who do not have that experience, there is some blockage. As Master drives home to us regularly, we must not fault the technique of Surat Shabd Yoga because of this deficiency. It is not the technique which is blocked, but it is we who are blocked! Tuesday, January 2: The workers have done remarkable work in building new structures here since I arrived. The same ones seem to be working through twelve or fifteen hours straight, every day. When I rise in the morning at 7:30 a.m., they have already been on the job for about an hour. When I go to sleep at night, some of them are still on the job. The Master's message is so very repetitive and invariant, and yet he pounds it home tirelessly. He has said that none who came before Him, nor any who will come after Him, will plead and beg with us as much as He does. What is most astounding is the incredible work pace that He keeps up. He will soon pass His 80th birth anniversary. Yet His work pace would ravage a man of twenty-five or thirty-five in the peak of physical health. Several days ago, a typist in Master's correspondence office was away for the day, and I was asked if I would like to fill in for him. I was placed before a somewhat battered typewriter. An enormous stack of envelopes was placed before me. "Please do type, upon these envelopes, the names and addresses of the people who are to receive these letters from the Master." And an enormous stack of letters was placed before me. I typed approximately thirty of these envelopes. I was then given thirty more! The letters went to people in every conceivable part of the world. Each and every one was proof-read and signed by the Master. Question: "Dear Master, when misfortune befalls me, I am sometimes perplexed as to why it is happening. Is it the fructification of some past karma? Or is it an immediate reaction to some 266 The Ocean of Grace Divine error which I am making right now without knowing that I am doing it? Let me add that when all goes well, I have no such dilemma; I take no credit at all for the good in my life but attribute it to the Master." M a s t e r : "This, I would say, is an excellent question. Yes, some misfortunes come from past reactions, past karmas sown in earlier lives. Some surely come from error we are now making. We have no way of distinguishing until we have risen up above astral plane, into causal plane, where our past karmas and present destinies can be revealed to us. Until you rise up that far, simply do your best in all things, think nothing of results of your work, and trust in the Master Power. This is true selfless service." Question: "Please speak to us about child-rearing." Master: "It is far easier, I tell you, to beget a child than to raise one. Everyone wants to beget a child, but how many want to raise one? Children will copy whatever example is set before them. The teaching of the child begins in the mother's womb. She must think kind thoughts and be placing her whole attention upon God at that time." Friday, January 4: Where has the time gone? I leave here tomorrow! My feelings, now so mixed, are difficult to describe. Yesterday, He told us: "Develop love for God. God, you see, is very sensitive. If you think unkindly of Him, then He is hurt. He knows exactly what you feel toward Him at every moment. I tell you, He is pleased if you have got greater love for Him." I'm ecstatic today because of His love and how He expressed it to me last night. As He was leaving, I said to Master, "Sir, I depart tomorrow, may I see You to say good-bye?" "Yes, of course!" He laughed, and he gestured me to follow Him into the inner part of the house, which I had never seen before. I was dazed and quite frightened. He led me into a little sitting room and gestured me into a chair. I was so astounded that I tactlessly sat in the chair—and He in another chair. I should have sat on the floor. "Well!" He said, flashing huge, beacon-like eyes at me, "so when are you leaving?" His smile dwarfed all other human smiles I had ever seen, and the dawnlight pouring from His eyes overwhelmed me. I replied, in shaky voice, "Nine o'clock tomorrow, Notes on a Pilgrimage to the Master 267 Sir." He gestured to a servant: "Some Parshad, please!" Then, "Nine o'clock in the morning, is it?" "No, Sir, nine o'clock in the evening." "OH! Why, that leaves us LOTS OF TIME! Come back and see me tomorrow before you go. And come to the morning session with any questions you wish to pose! Now, go!" And He stared at me, and added, "And God bless you!" This was so devastating an experience that I literally could not sleep the night through. My departure was marred by my forcing a donation on Master. "Do not impose this thing upon me!" He said, vehemently. "I am sorry, Sir. I already signed the traveler's cheque and cannot take it back." "Do you offer money to your parents when you visit THEM?" "No, Sir." "Well, how is this different from that?" OH! HE SAID THAT! "You will have enough money of your own in America? "Yes, Sir." "You will have good paying job?" "I have a scholarship at my university, Sir, and it is ample." "And what is it you are studying?" "Psychology, Sir." "Psychology! Indeed, that is a very good kind of work, for you!" HE T O L D ME THAT!! T H A T WAS T H E ONE THING I HAD WANTED TO ASK HIM T H R O U G H O U T THIS ENTIRE VISIT, B U T I H A D FORGOTTEN. N O W HE WAS TELLING ME. "Mind, one thing," he added, "Psychology, that is on the level of MIND. What we have here, Surat Shabd Yoga, is something different. It is on the level of SOUL. Do not confuse the two." 9:00 p.m.: Taxi ride to New Delhi airport. The cab driver is an initiate. Going through Customs. Air France flight 707 to 268 The Ocean of Grace Divine Paris, with stops in Teheran, Beirut, and Athens. Oh, dear God, here I go again into limbo, the netherworld of being en route in strange and foreign places. Taxing down the runway, we've touched off again. Thirtytwo hours hence I'll be in Philadelphia, and shortly thereafter, home. I've been gone only three weeks, but it seems like a year. Isolated memory-images of Sawan Ashram and of Master now come flooding back into my mind in a strange, intoxicating swirl. This together with thoughts of my future, my destiny in this life, yet remaining to be unfolded. Heaven only knows if I will see H I M again physically. I must strive to glean everything from this visit. Touching down, at last my long journey ended—Sawan Ashram, less than twenty-four hours behind me, one phrase sticks in my mind, now, above all else: "TAKE HEED, T H A T T H E LIGHT WHICH IS W I T H I N Y O U BECOMES N O T DARKNESS." The Embodiment of the Lord J.M. Sethi A Saint is the embodiment of the Lord, He who desires to see God, let him go to a Saint. The physical body of my Beloved Satguru Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj was the very abode of Sat Purush. He was a rare specimen of manhood and radiated compassion. He had the deepest love for all mankind, and worked incessantly for the spiritual uplift and regeneration of suffering humanity. He practiced and preached the brotherhood of man and the Fatherhood of God. He was an embodiment of peace and harmony; He was Love personified. He was all divine glory, beauty and humility; His radiant divinity attracted all towards Him. The weak found solace in Him; the oppressed received inspiration. He had a unique gift of treating humans at various levels of understanding; His kind heart was moved to uplift all who came to Him. During the later days of His earthly sojourn He worked round the clock despite His failing health. He was ever serene and sublime in His serenity. Godliness played on His broad forehead, and His deep set large blue eyes radiated kindliness and compassion. True to His name He was a veritable lion of mercy; He rendered protection to all who turned to Him. 210 The Ocean of Grace Divine One day an old man named Mehr Chand came to see the Master; he requested financial help. The Master told him that since He had recently retired from Service and was now living on His pension it would be unfair for him to continue demanding the stipend the Master had been allowing him up to then. The old man was adamant and would not budge without getting his share. The Master then gave him Rs. 100, and told him to start some small business so that he could stand on his own feet. After this man had left I was told the following story. Mehr Chand was at one time an affluent person living at Lahore. In the early forties he attended a Satsang of Maharaj Kirpal Singh Ji which prompted him to ask for initiation from Hazur Baba Sawan Singh. After initiation, the process of winding up his past karmas ensued, and within a few years he lost all his wealth and became a pauper. He was very much perturbed over his fate, and started drifting away from the Path, so much so, that he not only stopped attending Satsang and practicing meditation, but chose to seek help from a Muslim mystic who was known to bestow worldly bounties. Mehr Chand narrated his tale of woe to this Muslim Darvesh and pleaded for his help. The Darvesh asked him to come on the following day as he would ask his ascended Master for a boon during the night in meditation. This Darvesh met his Master in meditation and put forward Mehr Chand's plea. But he was told it was not possible for them to help Mehr Chand as he had been initiated by Hazur Baba Sawan Singh who was the Emperor of all Darveshes. This was a stunning blow for Mehr Chand. He was then struck by the spiritual magnitude of Hazur and his own infidelity to Him. He wept bitterly and came back dejected. His abject poverty had become unbearable and he decided to take his own life and that of his wife and children also; he bought some poison, planning to finish off the whole family at midnight. On this day Maharaj Kirpal Singh reached home very late, having delivered Satsang in the evening. The first thing He did was to ask for any money which was available at home. His wife immediately handed over about Rs. 200. The Master hurried to the house of Mehr Chand. The poor man was all in tears. The compassionate Master consoled him and handed over the money The Embodiment of the Lord 271 to tide him over the situation, and told him never to think of suicide again. From this day onwards the Beloved Master had rendered him financial help every month, and sustained this family until Partition in 1947. The rare distinction of Maharaj Kirpal Singh Ji as compared to the ascended Masters was that He stressed the importance of personal inner experience of divine Light and Sound Principles at the time of initiation. As a matter of fact most of His initiates are still not fully aware of the significance of this boon. The human body is given to us through the grace of God, and it is due to the evolution of some noble karma of our past lives that a yearning has sprouted in our hearts for taking up the Holy Path. It is the rare grace of the Master that He accepts us for initiation into the Mysteries of the Beyond. Holy initiation granted by a Perfect Master is the first step towards spiritual grandeur and beatitude. It is an injection of cosmic consciousness in the spirit of the seeker. This is the visa for the soul to travel ultimately in the astral, causal and higher planes under the protective guidance of the Master. This is in reality the imparting of His personal life impulse for burning the past karma stored since ages untold and unaccounted for. It liberates us from bondage in the cycle of birth and death, enabling us finally to merge with the Father in our True Home. When Maharaj Ji was at Meerut giving a mass initiation in the early fifties, there was a man present who had come purposely to test the competency of the Master. After the initiation sitting, the Master inquired, as He usually did, about the inner experiences had by everyone there. When this man's turn came, he said that he had not received Light or Sound. The Master of course knew that he was lying. He told him that he should give a fair trial to his meditations which would enable him to have inner contact within a few days. It was explained to him that if he insisted on being taken up it would be very hard for him to undergo the strain of forcible withdrawal. But he did not agree. Maharaj Ji then told him to look into His eyes and sit for meditation as explained earlier, and the man was immediately withdrawn out of his physical body and fell senseless to the ground. He remained in this state for about two hours. The Master 272 The Ocean of Grace Divine called a doctor to test his physical condition, and it was found that his heartbeat had slowed considerably but that the prana currents were all right. Later, when the Master brought him back, he fell at His Holy Feet and begged forgiveness for his obstinacy. He said that when the sensory currents were withdrawn from body consciousness he felt as if a million flashes of lightning had struck him—it was a horrible experience of death in life. This man lived for a few months and then left this world. While the Master was on tour in Western India, at Ulhasnagar several persons came for holy initiation and sat in a big hall. It was usual that before their names were taken down the Beloved Master would come to see them to make sure they were ready for initiation. When He came, He stopped in front of an outwardly quite impressive person belonging to a middle-class family; He told him that he should wait for some time, and that he would be considered for initiation later on. This was a great surprise for us all, and of course that man was very sad to hear the decision of the Master. Afterwards, the Master told us that this man was not ready for initiation as he had not earned enough good karma to qualify him for holy initiation. This judgement is reserved for the Master Who alone can see the seal or Moharchhap on the forehead of humans, which entitles them to initiation. Sweet Remembrance of My Master Ann Grubich I went to India for the Unity of Man Conference in 1974. I stayed at Sawan Ashram from January 27th to March 3rd. Those five weeks were unforgettable! I had said in November 1973 that I would like to go to India and spend some time with Master at the Ashram before He left His physical body. When the open invitation came, I was not sure about going because of my work and finances. A sister initiate talked me into going. I realized Master was granting my wish. I am grateful that I decided to go, especially since my Master left the earth-plane almost six months later. When we were at the Ashram two bus loads of about a hundred disciples went to Manav Kendra. When we arrived there, Master came out of His home to greet us and wanted to know when we would be leaving India, each one individually. Then He told us to go to our rooms and have something to eat. While eating, all the lights went out. I started back to my room in the dark. Just as I was about to open the door, I heard someone say, "Master is here!" He had been driven in His car to where we had been eating. We all hurried back. Master was sitting in His chair facing us, and had started talking. Then 274 The Ocean of Grace Divine He turned on the flashlight, and beamed it on everyone's face, one by one. He said, "You came here to find the light, and this is where the light is coming from." Then He turned the light on His own face. The most beautiful smile, and He shook with laughter. All of us sighed audibly; I know I never saw anything so beautiful—in the pitch darkness; only one Light, one Face! That is one remembrance of Master. Another sweet memory was when we were leaving Manav Kendra. Our bus was to leave around 8:00 a.m. Master was scheduled to leave at 6:00 a.m. As I was walking to our bus, I thought it would be parked at the roadway in back of Master's home, but it was parked across from Master's home, in front of the meeting house. But I was heading the other way, going past Master's house. As I passed the gate I looked at the house, and saw Master's car was surrounded by disciples. I had a glimpse of Master getting into His car. I stayed outside the gate with two or three people, and the car started coming out. I will always remember what I saw. I stood in front facing the car in full view of Master. I will always remember Him that way. I remember thinking—I wish I had my camera! But looking at Master I could not think, I was awed at what I saw, because later I found my camera in my purse, hanging on my arm. There was my Master, sitting so regal in the car, the two people in the front seat were so small, hardly noticeable, I only saw Master's white beard, white turban, white coat. He seemed to be sitting so high, as on a throne with His hands folded, blessing us. He was the King of kings riding in His golden chariot (His car was a gold color). I will never forget. I did not snap His picture, but the picture is in my mind forever. The Lord of Life Joseph E. Newman I came to Master not by accident nor by chance but by a magnet of love that I felt from His glance. Meeting Master Kirpal Singh Ji could be described as meeting the purest form of Light and Love. To look into His eyes was like looking at a thousand blazing suns that let me know that I was undone, that I was in the presence of the Holy One. He taught us that we have the ability to raise our consciousness so that we can become channels for that Light to be impressed on our mind-structure in a flowing, direct, and purposeful manner. As I gazed into His blazing, loving eyes, I could hear John 8:12, "I am the Light of the world: He that followeth me shall not walk in darkness, but shall have the light of life." Teachers such as Christ, Master Baba Sawan Singh Ji and Master Kirpal Singh Ji were God in fullest form and could well say, "I am the Light of the world." His teachings are not confusing nor disturbing but enlightening and can be approached in a beautifully simple manner. In our meditations, and by embracing a pure life, we are preparing to make ourselves receptives to the Light, and to raise our consciousness to a level on which it does not normally operate. 276 The Ocean of Grace Divine Light is one of the keys, Sound is the other. Let me offer this humble prayer: O! Great Master, we know Thy Name is our healing, And sweet remembrance of Thee is our remedy. Nearness to Thee is our hope, And Love for Thee our companion. Thy people have turned in the direction of Thy manifold blessings, And have set their faces toward the tabernacle of Thy wisdom. Thy love for us heals the sicknesses that have assailed the souls on every side. In sweet remembrance we are clinging to the hem of Thy riches. And by faith we are holding fast to the cord of Thy healing. O! Great Master, as we meditate on Thy goodness, Fix Thou our eyes upon Thee because Thou art truly the Lord of Life. Blessed Are Those Who Die at the Feet of a Satguru Dhani Ram Sharma I was living in Lahore around 1926. I often had the opportunity to go to Satsang along with Maharaj Kirpal Singh Ji. Once Hazur also came to hold a large Satsang and on this occasion Dr. Johnson, Hazur's disciple from America, was also present. This may well have been around 1929 or 1930. It was about this time that Maharaj Kirpal Singh entrusted me with the responsibility of maintaining the accounts for the Lahore Satsang. Some time after Partition my second son became a tuberculosis patient. During his sojourn at the hospital, my son was in touch with Maharaj Ji and would write to Him at Sawan Ashram. Once when I was visiting the Ashram, Maharaj Ji and I talked about my son and He suggested that I bring the boy to Delhi. Thinking of all the problems of having a T.B. patient at home and giving him proper care, I somehow did not carry out Maharaj Ji's instructions, and put the matter off. Not long after, we received a letter from the hospital informing us that our son's condition had got worse. My wife and I went to see him. The boy had been operated on and the operation had not been successful. The end was obviously near, and the day we reached 278 The Ocean of Grace Divine him, he gave away all his clothes and things to the poor, and seemed preparing to depart. It was rather late in the evening when my wife and I left our son's bedside and came back to our room. We had hardly been back and rested for half an hour or so when my wife wanted me to accompany her back to our son. I tried to remonstrate. But she said she had seen, as though in a vision, Maharaj Ji walking with the boy to our cottage and then walking away with him. We went back to find our son had already left for his heavenly home; it was a comfort to know that he had been looked after by the Master. Whatever our travail, his agonies at least were over. But as we were strangers, a new problem presented itself: how were we to arrange for the cremation and final rites? I could have left the disposal of all this to the janitors and menial staff at the hospital but I was determined to do my very best. My prayers were answered. As the next day dawned the son of another patient in the hospital arrived to see his father and he offered to help me out. We bore the body to the cremation ground. In spite of all the difficulties I was able to carry out things as best I could. When I returned to Delhi I related everything to Maharaj Ji. He looked at me and said, "Attending to all this in a strange place must have been so very difficult for you. It was anticipating this that I had suggested to you some time back that you bring your son to Delhi. Anyway it is all over now." Not long after this my third son, who was then studying in high school, also developed tuberculosis. We had him admitted to a hospital in Delhi, and after examining him very thoroughly the doctors decided that he needed an operation. When I met Maharaj Ji I told Him about the boy and He said He would like to see him and took his full address. Some time after, Maharaj Ji visited the hospital to see the child. He inquired about his illness, and when the boy touched the part of the chest which was affected, Maharaj Ji placed His hand on it and ran it over, reassuring him that he would not need an operation and that he would get perfectly well. I was at the hospital when the scheduled day for the operation arrived. Before operating, doctors give patients a final check-up. The senior doctor present on that occasion examined my son and was surprised to find that there was Blessed Are Those Who Die at the Feet of a Satguru 279 no spot on his chest; although he had been marked down for an operation there were no symptoms to justify it. At this they were told of Maharaj Ji's visit. The boy progressed so speedily that within a few days he was discharged from hospital and returned home. Such indeed was the grace of Maharaj Ji. I come now to my wife's last illness. Maharaj Ji was departing for Dehra Dun and on the way He stopped to see her. At the time we were living in the Ashram. After seeing her He turned to me and said, "Have her properly examined and treated. Hazur will help." After He left she was admitted for a thorough checkup to the hospital; it was found that she was suffering from cancer. Maharaj Ji visited her at the hospital and discussed her condition and treatment with one of the doctors. The doctor explained there was very little they could do: their primary concern was to help reduce the pain and make it more bearable. I was advised to bring my wife home as there was nothing that the doctors could do. When we brought her back to the Ashram, Maharaj Ji sat by her side, placed His hand on her forehead and encouraged her to focus within. But such was her pain that she found this rather difficult. When leaving, He turned to me and remarked, "Dhani Ram, patients suffering from cancer find it very difficult, so intense is their pain, to collect their faculties within." This was on Saturday, and the following day Maharaj Ji was very busy. On Monday, after meeting the brothers and sisters from the West and giving darshan to the Indian Sangat, Maharaj Ji came over to see my wife in the morning. He once again placed His hand on her forehead and asked her to gaze within. "Do you see anything now?" He asked. "I see Light," came the reply. "Gaze more intently and deeper still." "Yes, I can see Maharaj Ji within the Light," she said. "Well, focus your gaze on Him from now on and engage in Simran," Maharaj Ji instructed. From then on my wife was much more peaceful. It was as though her spirit was withdrawn inwards and for two or three hours at a stretch she would lie quietly. When she would come back again, she would be in great agony and would ask for water. Monday passed in this fashion and so did most of Tuesday. At 8:00 in the evening she asked me to spread her bed on the floor 280 The Ocean of Grace Divine and to lay her down there*. My daughter-in-law was there so I asked her to help me, and quickly we spread the bed on the floor and laid my wife on it. I noticed that her eyes were changing and that her hands and feet were cold. Leaving her in the care of my daughter-in-law I quickly went to Maharaj Ji. He was having His meal so I waited outside. When He finished and got up to wash His hands, I slipped in and told Him that my wife was preparing to leave the body. Maharaj Ji picked up His flashlight and walked back to my place. On entering, He looked at my wife, and then at His watch, and said, "She's not gone yet, she still has five more minutes." He placed His hand once again on her forehead, and the end was extremely peaceful. While He sat there my daughter-in-law broke down and began sobbing. I said, "My child, what is there to cry about? The Satguru who is to look after her within is not only there but is also sitting beside her outside. What greater blessing could one ask for than to have the Satguru within and without?" Knowing that He Himself was not too well, I begged Him not to join us at the cremation ground. "Dhani Ram, do you think I can stay back?" He answered with deep emotion. There were a large number of satsangis who accompanied us for the final rites. When all the preliminary ceremonies were over and it was time to light the pyre, Maharaj Ji arrived in His car and He was there when my wife's body was consigned to the flames. On the third day, as customary, we collected the flowers (bones left over from cremation). That evening Maharaj Ji called me in and asked where I intended to consign them. I explained that I hoped to have them immerged in the Ganges at Haridwar. Two days later, He called me again, and told me that He was leaving for Dehra Dun the next morning and that if I so wished the flowers could go in His car with some member of our family so that the last rites could be performed. Blessed indeed are those who can die at the Feet of a Satguru. I mention all of these facts in order to bring home Maharaj Ji's great concern for those around Him, His care for every detail. *In India it is customary among the Hindus to lay down a dying person on the floor. This is supposed to help the soul. Blessed Are Those Who Die at the Feet of a Satguru 281 When Maharaj Ji went on tour, it used to be my great privilege to accompany Him. I would help look after the sale of books and photographs. If He was giving initiation, I would assist in screening candidates, finding out whether they had attended any Satsangs or read the literature and had followed the theory. Once after imparting the instructions, when Maharaj Ji stepped out He looked at me and said, "I have to carry out the orders of Hazur and have to go from place to place. But why on earth have you got to drag yourself like this? Why not sit at peace at your own home?" Tearfully I answered, "Maharaj Ji, I have come to Your door and cannot find a better one. If there is one better, direct me." On hearing this, He was much pleased and moved. Three weeks before Maharaj Ji left the physical body, He once again asked me to help during the initiations in Delhi as I did while He went on tour. And so I was there to assist in screening the various candidates at His last initiation after the July Bhandara. It was the 29th of the month and there were well over a thousand people who sat for initiation. After having checked with each candidate, I walked over to Maharaj Ji's residence to tell Him everything was ready. He came down, and being very weak, sat in His car and drove across to the large tent. He sat down; His face was so grave. He asked me if we had carefully checked each seeker. I said we had; His eyes swept the congregation from one end to the other. He then turned to me and pointed out a blind man, and asked how he came to be there. I explained that he must have been allowed in while I had gone to fetch Him. They may seem like us and we may regard Them as limited individuals, but Sants, and great souls like Them, have an eagle eye and They can perceive the Truth at a single glance. Precious Moments Eddie Boon Our memories of the Beloved were sweet; they were precious moments that we now prize—they filled our lives with bliss. Help me and teach me the more, Master—I am abashed. The chimney smoke curls upwards and upwards, the beard of time becomes greyer as it grows longer, but I am still ignorant despite my years. The waterfalls' music my ears cannot understand; the larks' graceful flight is too swift for my aged eyes; the flower in my earthen vase withers, and I know not how to save it. Oh, I am truly ashamed of my ignorance, my Master. Teach me within and let me meet You face to face again in the temple of my heart. The wonder of wonders and the most happy and worthwhile experience of my life was the time when I was beside the Master for six months in India. This happened in 1968. Busy as Master was, He asked me to have lessons with Him every day at 4 p.m. in His room upstairs. Now when I think it over, how precious and selfless was He. He would not spare Himself—even when He was thirsty. Once, during such a session, due to my carelessness, I asked Him a question when He was drinking water but He answered me nonetheless; the water spilt from His lips and wet His beard...O Master, where am I able to find such a Man like You in this world? I am crying now because of acute pining, an eternal wound, and this will always be so. The Lion of Mercy Vidyawanti Sethi I was very young when I was initiated by Hazur. When He left the physical body we were sad and unsettled. Because of the Partition of the country we were also thrust into domestic problems. We were anxious to find Hazur's true successor. Some ladies in our neighborhood said that He had appeared to them inside, and that His Power was now working with them. So for five or six months I served them with devotion. Later on I was drawn to Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj. He was gracious enough to make me sit in meditation, and He took my soul up to higher planes. I gave up my devotion to those ladies. But my husband still believed in them, and was very angry with me; he threw a metal utensil at my head. But Maharaj Ji was holding me tight; He was showering His grace upon us. My children also started going to Him, and He helped us in every way. Then my husband left us and went off to Beas, intending never to return. The day he reached Beas and sat in meditation, Maharaj Kirpal Singh appeared to him within and told him that kind of meditation was not acceptable; his family was suffering in Delhi and here he was trying to pray—he should go back. He returned home next morning. Since he had left the house, no food had been cooked; we were hard up. When he returned, my husband told us all that had happened. I went to Maharaj Ji and told Him all this; He said, 'I did nothing—it was all your love." He was so very compassionate; His doors were always wide open. It Is He Who Draws Us Harcharan Singh It is not for us to speak or write about a Being such as Maharaj Ji. There is such a gulf that separates us from Him: we are blind—He knows everything. It is not we who find Him, but He who finds us and draws us to Himself, either by direct revelation or by some other means. I started with some family background. My father was fond of reading the Gurbani. My sister encouraged me to hear it being chanted. So sweet did the Gurbani sound and so full of meaning, that I began to lose interest in the material world around me and hungered for the gift of Naam. It was in 1955 that I had my first darshan of Maharaj Ji, but it was not until 1960 that I started going regularly to Sawan Ashram. In the first week of November of that year I saw Maharaj Ji in a vision, and begged Him for Naam; He agreed to give it to me. A few days later I was given initiation. As time passed I wished to help with seva; I was overjoyed when one day Sardar Dalip Singh, who was in charge of the Ashram office, called me in for typing. From then on I would help him with the office work. I was rather shy about going to see Maharaj Ji; but to my great surprise, He would often, in It Is He Who Draws Us 285 His grace, come and visit the office giving us His darshan. During a World Religions Conference, I took leave to do some seva. One day Maharaj Ji, taking me by the hand, turned to Muni Sushil Kumar the Sponsor of the Conference, and said, "From tomorrow he will be there to help you out with the work." My prayer had been heard and from now on I was directly involved with day to day seva. While serving at His Holy Feet, I witnessed a number of interesting incidents. At the time of this Conference, a group arrived one morning in strength and wanted Maharaj Ji to do things their way. He met them with courtesy and asked them to bring their proposal for organizing the Conference in writing and He would be glad to accept it. They made a draft and brought it to Him. Maharaj Ji looked at them and said, "Make doubly sure that this is what you want." They looked at the draft, took it with them and after some time brought a fresh draft. Maharaj Ji quietly signed it and gave it back to them. Later, to their great chagrin, they realized that the proposal they had brought Maharaj Ji to sign really meant not the slightest alteration in the way He was already organizing things. On another occasion, a group of satsangis from outside Delhi pressed Maharaj Ji to give a Satsang program for their town. They said that the Sangat carried more weight than the Guru, and if the Guru was twenty bisvas (Indian land measure) then the Sangat was twenty-one, and He must therefore accede to their request. Maharaj Ji very sweetly agreed to visit their town as and when He had a tour program nearby. As for the relative weight of the Guru and the Sangat, He remarked, "If we take away the Guru from the Sangat, twenty out of twenty-one, what are we left with? Just one. Now you can see for yourself that the Sangat is what it is because of the Guru and without Him it is nothing." Sometimes I helped Maharaj Ji with the Indian correspondence. Once a brother had a rather loaded question. "Those who follow the path of lies seem to prosper, while those who follow truth only get stoned. This being the case, what path should one pursue?" He was obviously hard put to it, being honest, and he wanted Maharaj Ji to be indulgent. But He wrote back to explain The Ocean of Grace Divine that untruth was like sugarcoated poison and truth like a medicine, which though it did not taste sweet, acted slowly but surely. It was interesting to see how He dealt with every satsangi in an individual way. Besides their spiritual problems, they brought their worldly problems as well: someone did not have a child, another had lost his job. At times Maharaj Ji would be extremely sweet and loving and reassured them that Hazur would help. At others, however, He would say, "Do I have a factory here for making babies, or for creating jobs?" It was not that His love differed from satsangi to satsangi. It was simply that the needs of each satsangi were different. Those trying their best needed encouragment. And those who would leave everything to the Guru needed to be scolded and pushed on. Maharaj Ji expected us to work hard and do our very best—and leave the rest to God. If we did so, the Master Power was always there to help us. I accompanied Maharaj Ji on His last world tour, and there are some incidents from that time which come to my mind. We were in California and I was with Maharaj Ji in a room when a visitor arrived—a lady dressed in black, coming directly from London for her first meeting with Him. She explained that while she was walking down a street in London He had appeared to her there, had told her that He was in California, and had asked her to come and meet Him there. She had never heard about Him nor had any plans about meeting Him. However, He had called her in person and so she had come. Her account was a vivid testimony that the Shepherd knows His flock and can reach out to His sheep no matter where they are. While in Florida, I suddenly had an idea to take a movie of Maharaj Ji along the sea shore. When we were in Miami I gained courage and asked the Master if He could let me take pictures of Him along the sea's edge as a record for our brothers and sisters in India. He graciously agreed. No one knew of it, and yet as Maharaj Ji came from the hotel a large number of brothers and sisters turned up and followed Him. The water was lapping some distance away and we all walked along with Maharaj Ji as little children with their father. Suddenly a great wave rose up in the distance and came straight towards us; it It Is He Who Draws Us 287 was tumbling across all the dry sand between us and the sea, and washed right up to where we were. It drenched those nearer the water, but surprisingly, the moment it reached the Master's Feet, it touched Him and quietly receded. A single wave rising up like this, rushing across, and then quietly retiring after just touching His Feet—it was too extraordinary to be merely an accident. Maharaj Ji had come to bless the seashore with His presence and the sea was reaching out to pay its homage. One had heard of such things in legends, but now the legend was being enacted before our very eyes. To be at Maharaj Ji's Feet was, indeed, to realize afresh each day that all the traditions and legends about holy men one had heard were not mere tales for children but literal truths. On one occasion, I had gone to the Ashram from work. Maharaj Ji sent me to the office to locate some papers, study them, and bring them to Him. When He got the file He began turning over the pages. Suddenly He asked, "How is your daughter?" I had not breathed a word about her to Him, but she was ill and I answered, "Maharaj Ji, she is ill." "But why don't you have her treated? If you don't do someting she will die," He told me. "Life and death, Maharaj Ji, are Your slaves and the girl is in Your hands," I answered. "But you must have her treated," He said very firmly, and then with great emphasis repeated, "take her to a doctor —this is my command!" He then explained to me the nature of my daughter's special respiratory problem, and a little later asked me to return home. It was rather late when I got back; I did not tell my wife what Maharaj Ji had said until next morning to save her the worry. We took the child to a homeopath who only had to go through the motions of giving her the medicine. He gave her a dose right there, and the child was soon back to normal. During His final months, Maharaj Ji gave many an indication of what was coming. On at least two occasions He cryptically remarked, "This body is getting useless now. Wouldn't it be a good idea to have a new one?" I would answer that since everything lay within His power why not mend the existing one? To this He gave no reply. Once while He was traveling from Rajpur, referring to His spells of illness, He remarked that they 288 The Ocean of Grace Divine were heralds of death. I asked Him what was the real cause of His malady, why His normal spells of work alternated with such anguished pain? He explained that the blood circulation in His limbs was insufficient. When He had to work, He concentrated so entirely on it that He had no awareness of the pain; but when He lay down to relax He had to live with the agony. Some three weeks or so before the end, I had failed to visit the Ashram for a whole week. When I came, on seeing me Maharaj Ji asked, "Are you going to come here only after I'm gone?" If I could, I would have buried myself alive. During His last days He once asked me to go downstairs to fetch a book on Guru Nanak. I did so but I could not find it. When I came up and told Him of this, He was talking about the Conference that had been proposed to be held on Guru Nanak's birthday. "I, myself, may not even be there then," He quietly said. On 11th August, after the last Sunday Satsang He was to deliver, as He struggled back indoors, visibly suffering and broken in health, He stopped and said, "However ill I may have been, however much my body may be giving way, who can say I have neglected my duty? Whether it has been Satsang or the satsangis, I have worked to my uttermost and have not failed in my calling." There is no grief like unto the grief of losing one's Satguru —even though in spirit He is always with us. There is no blessing greater than that of dying during the lifespan of one's Master, and since He passed into Mahasamadhi, plunged in grief we have, each in his own place, been measuring the extent of that blessedness which has been denied to us. A Tribute to Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj Pir Zamin Nizami Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj was one of those great souls who enriched this land with the sweet melodies of the oneness of God. He spent His life in the service of humanity and dedicated Himself to the spiritual uplift of man. He supported integration at all levels and strived hard to demolish the barriers of caste and creed. His piety, devotion, spiritual greatness and magnetic personality attracted seekers after truth from distant parts of India and lands beyond. He met everyone with great humility. His was a saintly way of life. Thousands used to partake of the free kitchen at His Ashram. His Naam-Daan initiation ceremony was a sight to behold. Each initiate was given some experience of inner Light and Sound. Sant Kirpal Singh Ji was a strict vegetarian. In His, Ashram even foreigners were served with vegetarian food. He was so much against injuring a living soul that He decided against cutting down a tree though it obstructed the construction of His house. It was left untouched and its branches were allowed to go up through the roof and spread above it. Sant Ji Maharaj used to have great respect for DargahHazarat Nizam-U-Din Aulia and always participated in our Urs celebrations. On a couple of occasions He even participated in the spiritual discussions on the Five Names. He was a man of such varied qualities that it is difficult to enumerate them. Sant Ji had great respect for all religions and such was the depth of His study that it would be no exaggeration to say that He was a living encyclopedia of religions. His Mission is a living force and will continue to be so. The Master's Last Months Kate Tillis The Presence on earth of the Luminous Godman Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj was a miracle of such magnitude that it passes comprehension. His acceptance of us as His spiritual children was a personal miracle for each one of us; ever afterwards we lived and breathed miraculously in Him. To try to pull out any aspect of His Divine Grace is just to catch one drop from that limitless Ocean of Love; we can only tell of the little we can comprehend with our limited vision, just that tiny drop, while all the time He loves us and lifts us in ways too marvelous for us to grasp. He changes us. Even those of us who only saw Him once, even those who received His Initiation but afterwards did not follow the Path; none of us can ever be the same again: we have each been touched by the Finger of God. That He allowed Malcolm and me to stay close to Him in India and work for Him on His manuscripts for the last ten months of His earth life was all His merciful Grace—it is surely those most in need of help (and a good scrubbing!) whom He draws close to Himself. During those months we watched Him pass from one phase to another, from outpourings of intense the Master's Last Months 291 spiritual radiation and love to periods of withdrawal, from benevolence to sternness and back to benevolence, from delicious bursts of humor to admonition, from periods of radiant vitality to sickness, and finally, to that fatal illness culminating in His departure for higher planes. When we came to His Holy Feet in October 1973, it was realized that His precious talks given daily to visiting Westerners were only being recorded in the most haphazard way by anyone who chanced to have a tape recorder at that time, and that these dear ones who made the recordings then returned with them to whatever corner of the world in which they happened to live. Master gave permission that these heart-to-heart talks should be officially recorded and documented for future publication, and this was begun in January 1974 when the necessary equipment arrived. In the meantime, notes were taken by hand of the rare gems as they fell from His lips, some of which are given below. Master frequently told us that we had not come to the Ashram to make friends or indulge in idle talk and idle pursuits. So on the last night of her stay, an English satsangi said to Him, "We don't come here with the intention of making friends, but when we arrive we can't help it—we grow to love people here because we have so much in common. Is this wrong?" The Master replied, "No, because you love the Master and they are all the Master's children, and you are closer to each other than members of your own family. This relationship remains even after death. You love these people because of your love for the Master." On another occasion someone asked the Master, "What should we do on our return ho me to convey to others what we have learned here." The Master said, "You must be changed, not the same old person in any way—in your behavior, in your dealings with others. Of course spiritually you are a little better. But let other people say you are changed! You need not act or pose. The more you progress the more it is a joy to me." Master often told us to "Go jolly!" So someone once asked Him how could we go jolly? And He replied, "Only when you come in tune with nature. Your soul is to be happy, not your physical senses. If your whole attention is absorbed, then you will go jolly—there will be joy!" The Ocean of Grace Divine An Italian lady came to the Ashram and there was no one who could adequately translate to her what the Master was saying. After a lot of false starts and struggles the Master stopped all that, and remarked, "I think she can absorb more without words!" To someone who admitted to Him, "I feel the Master knows all my faults and weaknesses," He replied, "Well, try to weed them out. Fear of the Master arises through love—it is good to have fear. A man sees through the spectacles he is wearing—so have loving regard for all. When a man begins to fear displeasing Him it is a sign of going up; from fear will arise true love." In November the Master took Westerners with Him up to Manav Kendra, and while they were there invited them to spend a whole golden day with Him at His house at Rajpur. For some dear ones, however, the day was being spoilt by their inner criticism of the behavior in front of the Master of other dear ones—this the Beloved washed away in His Divine Love by remarking, "You are all beautiful to me." He once told us, "The whole atmosphere is full of thoughts; if you think evil you will drain it from the atmosphere." On selfless service He said at another time, "It can only be selfless if there's no personal gain in it. It is only selfless if it is done by your own wish and pleasure. If it is done by force or through fear it is not selfless service. It must come from natural impulse—it all depends on the intention." In December the Master left on His last tour—a fifteen day trip to open the new Manav Kendra at Baroda and on to Bombay, with many stops on the way. He took a bus full of Indian and Western satsangis with Him. On tour with the Master one learns gratitude for the basic things of life which are usually taken for granted: a place to sleep (even if it's the floor), water to drink and to wash in, meals, and a hot cup of strong reviving Indian tea! On tour these things might be forthcoming or they might not; in this the Indian satsangis were a great example— they just trusted to Him to give what He would when it pleased Him. The Master told those traveling with Him, "All this is a lot of inconvenience to you. I am always tossing about, that's the Master's Last Months 293 my fate, but you don't have to do it." One young American remarked, "On the last tour I was always worrying and asking questions: What time shall we arrive? Where shall we stay tonight? Where will the Master's darshan be? But now I simply get into the bus and it takes me where I have to go when I have to go." Another Westerner said, "If we only come to understand that everything around the Master is given to us as a test, then we'll say to ourselves, 'In order to progress I must get through this next one.' When we come to that understanding then nothing will pull us down." As the time for the World Conference on Unity of Man drew nearer, the tests increased as the whole Ashram became a building site; whole new storeys were rapidly seen to top the existing buildings. The work went on night and day, sometimes exactly over one's head. One day in late January the Westerners were moved into the main meditation hall for their meditation session—at this time one end of the hall was a carpenter's shop; the hammering and banging and sawing and conversations of the workmen never stopped! When the Master entered to take everyone out of meditation He was beaming. He said, "When a student attends some class, after some training he is tested whether he has learned the lesson given to him. You have been putting in time for meditation for the last few days, now today was the test day. It was to be seen how far you have succeeded concentrating—a sort of test, you see? So how many of you have seen Master's form? Hands up please." And Master continued to ask for everyone's inner experience. Tests also took a much more personal form. All sorts of tensions build up round a Master causing clashes of personality, clashes which at times appeared to be fostered by the Master Himself. This was an essential part of His man-making for the disciples. One visiting satsangi became exasperated by another very nervous and talkative satsangi; Master's way was to throw these two together—until they came to love each other! He also taught His children to be as flexible and fluid as possible, not to clutch at preconceived ideas. At the time of the Conference, for instance, Malcolm was told he should give a speech during one of the Panel Sessions, and it was to be on comparative religions. 294 The Ocean of Grace Divine So we wrote a speech mainly quoting our Master's words and teachings from His books. The convener, Mr. Srivastava, told us next day that the speech had been accepted, just one or two small changes would have to be made as it was to be given at a different Panel and would now be on the subject of "The Drug Problem Facing Youth Today." To be in the blessed physical presence of the Living Master is not of course all one long test—it is indeed to drink the pure Nectar of Spirituality at its very source. No one who was present during that early January can ever forget those extraordinary silent darshans when the Master seemed, for a time, to let us have a glimpse of Himself— a rare gift of pure Grace. The room became immensely charged; no one spoke, and the Master simply sat and looked at His children. At such times the soul is lifted out of the body and given illumination and bliss beyond compare, beyond expression. Someone who tried to give expression to one such experience wrote the following lines: His Face is a thin veil between us and God; the veil shimmers and Light shines through, the veil melts and Another Face appears. Round Him moons, manifest and overhead a Radiant Form is seen. His Eyes are Pools of Light, His Eyes are Fountains of Mercy, His Eyes are the Ocean of Love. Awestruck, we gaze not at flesh and bone, but at the Living Substance of God. During this darshan the Master did, at long intervals, speak to us. The words carried tremendous charging and seemed to come from a great distance. He said: Silence is more eloquent than words. We have to go down into the very silence of the heart. That silence becomes vocal. That silence sprouts forth into Light. Those who went deep down into that silence gave us the scriptures. The scriptures are the result of such people. The Master's Last Months 295 At the moment we are physically still and mentally still we learn more by radiation. These words were written down by Malcolm as they were spoken. Next day he took them to the Master for His correction (nothing could be released in any form which had not first been passed by Him). Malcolm said, "Master, apparently nobody recorded what You said yesterday" and the Master, as He took the paper, remarked, "You took it down. So you were one of the nobodies." Master then corrected what He had said and put a large tick in the margin. Once when He was talking to His children He told them, "I am not the Master—God is the Master; He is working through me." And at another time He said, "Masters are never born— historically we have Their birthdays." During that winter the Master gave this advice about group leaders: "They have to be extra careful to be a good example to others and do things correctly. They are put on a pedestal, and if they do anything wrong they are pointed out—there is a great fall." He advised those on the Path, "Instead of thinking of others, think of your own Self. Did you ever think of your own Self? Once a man was looking for the center of the world, but the center of the world is within you, right inside. If you know your own Self you can move the world." Someone asked Him if we commit sins in dreams how should we mark it down in the diary, and He said it should go down as failure in thought. When asked to give parshad to a late-comer, He replied, "No one can have parshad if he was not here when it was given out." On another occasion He said, "The Kingdom of God is for children—not for the childish." And again, "Chastity is the foundation on which the house is built—the house of spirituality." Of someone who was always changing clothes and obviously thought a lot of outer appearance, the Master asked repeatedly, "When did you come?" as if to a new-comer. Everyone laughed and said, "But Master, this person has been here for weeks!" The Master, however, was playing the game of non-recognition. "Oh," 296 The Ocean of Grace Divine He said, "You keep changing your form," by which He meantdress. "You are looking after the horse and forgetting the rider. You are taking care of the house and have forgotten the indweller." At this time when the Master gave darshan in what appeared to be a noisy passage with members of His household and staff continually passing, talking among themselves and telephoning, some dear ones from the West complained they could not hear Him. But His reply was that everyone could hear perfectly well if he concentrated. After one of His terrible coughing spells someone asked, "Master, are we tiring You?" The Master replied, "No, you are my solace." He told us we should have right understanding and that right thoughts and right speech would give us right meditation. He said, "Safeguard the principle of right understanding and you will guard yourself." On New Year's morning He gave a talk from which the following is an extract. Progress depends on your devotion and ruling passion. So work in a way that you may be able to fly with the Master within to higher planes. Always have the highest ideal before you. If you want to jump ten feet, don't jump four or five. If you don't have lofty ideals you will remain where you are. A man is really a man if he catches God. That is the highest ideal. Start this year by having the highest ideal. When God sees you are running to Him He will give you a boost. If you are always lying on the floor who will help you? I am only telling you all this to give you a new incentive. That's my New Year message. Once you reach the destination, then lie down. An open invitation was given to all satsangis to take part in the Unity of Man Conference in February, and to celebrate the Master's Birthday; nearly five hundred Westerners accepted the Master's invitation to come and stay at the Ashram. One or two of the more perceptive of them said quietly that they could not help thinking this huge gathering of the Master's children from all over the world must have some deeper significance than the obvious one of the Conference. Indeed now we can see it as His The Master's Last Months 297 generous gesture to all His spiritual family to come, without the usual special permission, for the last time on earth to His Holy Feet. During this time, in spite of the tremendous extra burden of work the Conference entailed for Him, He gave the Westerners two long meditation sessions every day followed by talks of profound spiritual depth. He poured out His love, concern and guidance in such a way that each person felt him or herself to be supremely blessed, and to be the center of the Master's care and attention. Here was the Divine Sun of spirituality radiating in all His splend—and here was the loving, tender Father, the solace of all hearts. How could we understand what was happening— far less describe it? We used to think if we could really absorb one millionth part of what was being poured out we'd all become instant saints! Living at the Ashram one could not but be aware that there was hardly a single moment of the day or night when the Master was not giving Himself. People came to see Him without ceasing: His secretaries with the huge load of daily correspondence, His household staff, Indian families or individuals with every kind of earthly and spiritual problem to lay before Him, and Westerners who wanted to concentrate as much of His counsel and blessed darshan as possible into a short visit. The work for the Conference, of course, tremendously increased His burden. A Master is the only authority on all points and on all occasions, thus every person and every detail is under His direct supervision. No man could begin to undertake what a Master willingly and lovingly does day in and day out—the human frame which held this Gigantic Soul was taxed to the utmost. We would often be appalled by the sight of His physical suffering—the cough which wracked His whole frame so that it seemed He would never get the breath back in His body, His muscular contractions or cramps, those agonizing pains which wrung involuntary groans from Him— all the more appalling that these sufferings must have been caused by His acceptance of our karmic load. And yet He had the most extraordinary resilience; one moment He would be seen to be deathly ill, and in almost the next moment He would be glowing with vitality and sparkling with loving smiles. No spectator, and indeed no doctor 298 The Ocean of Grace Divine can ever understand the interaction of body and soul in a Master Saint. Since a Master is perfectly in tune with God at all times and in all situations, His sufferings, and of course His physical death, must all be perfectly accepted and undergone by Him according to the Divine Plan. Yet the sight of such suffering starts painful self-questioning in the satsangi. As each one is indissolubly linked to Him, impulses pass back and forth between them in ways of which the satsangi is but dimly aware. In a sense everything the satsangi says and does must be registered within Him. Then so intolerable becomes the thought of personal imperfections that a profound restlessness and a bitter anguish is endured until, through His Grace, each one becomes as He is; until there is no intervening friction nor flaw, until the double image is the perfect reflection. This culmination, this consummation is His supreme Gift and Grace, never earned, never deserved. In February, the Master took us all up to Manav Kendra, where He blessed us all by a period immensely rich in the outpouring of His teachings and His love, and He gave daily meditation sessions. The clear mountain air soon cleared away the coughs and colds so many people had suffered from in Delhi. Manav Kendra, especially the Mansarovar, is so highly charged that even when the Master left us for days or weeks at a time we still felt the glow of His pervading Presence. That year the April Bhandara to commemorate the passing of Hazur was held at Manav Kendra. Almost overnight those beautiful tents and canopies in glowing colors of red, purple, saffron and sea-green in geometric designs went up everywhere looking like the setting for some medieval tournament of knights. Thousands of people were housed and fed and sheltered from the sun as they gathered to sit before the Master. The devotees who came were so quiet, so gentle and orderly and sweet-tempered that they came and went leaving no mess nor any disturbance; everywhere you went people smiled at you. It was a poignantly moving event as the Master showed His deep sorrow at the loss of His Master on the physical plane; one time, while speaking to us, His voice broke, and tears fell from His eyes. The bhajans then sung were of a heart-rending beauty and sorrow. The whole The Master's Last Months 299 atmosphere was immensely charged with this divine grief; Hazur Baba Sawan Singh could be seen manifesting time and again, appearing through His great Spiritual Son and Successor. On April 6th the Beloved Master blessed with His Presence the marriage of David Kippen and Tina MacKnight at the Gurdwara in Dehra Dun; it was such a warm-hearted and delightful occasion—He was the true Father of us all, and this was an intimate family affair—the air was filled with showers of rose petals and good wishes! The following day the Master left for His camp at the Kumbha Mela at Hardwar, the great twelve-yearly gathering of saints and holy men from all over India where thousands of people come to sit at the feet of saints, hear spiritual discourses and take the ritual bath of purification in the sacred river Ganges. As the heat of summer increased, the visiting Westerners were advised to leave, but their place was taken by those dear ones who were schoolteachers and students and whose only free time was during these months. We all moved up to Rajpur; some stayed in the Master's bungalow there, others stayed in Kirpal Ashram nearby. The Master was ill and withdrawn. He only saw us for a very short time each evening, and sometimes He scarcely spoke. When the Master left for Delhi on July 4th, we understood He would soon be back, and many of us were advised to stay on at Rajpur and wait for His return. However, as the time for the Bhandara in Delhi on July 27th to commemorate Hazur's birthday drew near, we were all asked to go back to Delhi. We imagined we'd be back in Rajpur with the Master after a few days. At the Bhandara it was obvious that the Master was very ill; nevertheless, He carried on through all the ceremony and speeches, and on the last morning He initiated over one thousand souls into the Holy Naam. The Master was the first spiritual leader to address members of the Indian Parliament; this meeting was arranged for August 1st. Although the Master was then so ill that He could scarcely speak, He kept that appointment. He began by apologizing to 300 The Ocean of Grace Divine the audience for the weakness of His voice. He was always deeply concerned that those with national responsibilities understood that they hold the welfare of millions in their hands. That evening, as He was too ill to come downstairs, still the Master gave us His blessed darshan in His bedroom. A few days later the Master indicated that the taping of His talks should be stopped; the last officially recorded talk, given on August 7th, He devoted to the reiterated theme, "Burn all scriptures! They are useless without the Living Master." Once the taping of His talks stopped, Malcolm, who was at first rather bewildered, found he was able to sit in front of the Master with no tape recorder or notebook to attend to, and could absorb the divine radiation of bliss with undivided attention for the first time in eight months. Some of the last words the Master spoke to him were in acknowledgement of this blessed state, for He said, "You must be happy now!" It was always impossible to tell how long we would stay in any one place. We thought we'd be in Delhi for a short time during the Bhandara, so we'd left most of our work and equipment up at Rajpur. We knew that the Master was desperately ill —but He had been apparently just as ill many times before, and had recovered. So we were waiting and waiting for Him to take us all back to Rajpur—so that we could rescue the equipment, Master's precious tapes and manuscripts, many books and papers which we feared would be mouldering away in the monsoon. When it became obvious that the Master could not travel because He was too ill, we asked His permission to go up to Rajpur for a quick visit to collect our things there, and He said that we could go. Before we went we were present at His last Darshan Talk, the last time He spoke to His children from His bed on the roof terrace outside His bedroom. This was Saturday August 17th. During that night one was shaken by wild uncontrollable sobbing —why? Because the soul knew what the mind did not. Next day was Sunday, but the Master did not give Satsang; instead a tape was played. Afterwards, from the roof terrace, He appeared for a few minutes to give the Sangat His last silent darshan and blessing. On Monday we traveled up to Rajpur, and indeed found everything there much in need of drying out and attention. The Master's Last Months 301 On Tuesday Malcolm—like many other satsangis—became inexplicably very ill and had to stay in bed. On Wednesday morning, while walking down the lane from Kirpal Ashram to the main road, a dazzlingly brilliant white sun began to manifest exactly before open eyes. With closed eyes it was even more brilliant. We sat for half an hour, while it persisted, in meditation on the roadside. What did it mean? Did it mean that our Beloved Master was leaving the body? This thought was so unthinkable that a hundred reasons why He could not leave us rushed into the mind: there was the pending Asian Conference, there was the new Manav Kendra at Baroda under construction, there were the houses for the Westerners being built at Rajpur, and so on. (Other satsangis also reported seeing this sun at this time—was it perhaps the sun Baba Sawan Singh referred to when He was passing from the earth-plane?) That evening a message was sent to us to tell us that the Master had left the physical body, but this message never reached us. At three o'clock in the morning we were woken by people with torches (the electricity was off) saying, "The taxi is here, why aren't you ready?" Bewildered, we lit a candle and asked, "What taxi?" They replied, "To go to Delhi." Then they told us, "The Master left the body at seven o'clock last evening." His Mission of Mercy on earth completed, the Resplendent Sun of Spirituality had ascended to the highest Heaven. And yet, miraculously, He remains with and within each of His children. At the end of a visit to Him in Sawan Ashram five years previously He said, "I am your Father, I have you by the hand and I shall never let you go." The Light of the World M.M. Chopra Sant Kirpal Singh Ji, the true spiritual Son of Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji, gave motivation in spheres of religious truth, world peace, moral regeneration and spiritual consciousness. Sant Ji is adored by millions in India and abroad as the Divine Harbinger of Fundamental Truth and Ultimate Reality. Those of us who were fortunate to be blessed by Him know and believe that a Godman came to awaken mankind, to rekindle the dying fires of divinity by providing the luminous spark from the abundance of infinite knowledge and bliss. His Holiness's message, which instead of limiting the frontiers of religion to a fixed doctrine, stresses the fundamental Principles common to all religions, which have advanced society and lit a bright flame which cannot be smothered. It is in this sense that our Master's Light is still with us. It will remain with us to illuminate mankind for years to come, and one thousand years hence that Light will still be seen in India and abroad. The world will see It, and It will give solace to innumerable hearts. Throughout His life, Sant Ji carried on the Mission of bringing harmony among people with utmost devotion and enthusiasm. He pursued the Cause unmindful of the physical and mortal limitations of the human body, and He virtually died in harness. The Light has gone from our physical sight, the Light which always showed the right direction to wandering minds, the Light which disseminated the idea of the unity of mankind and the love of one for another. Yet in more than one way this Light has not gone out: the Master sends His benediction from Heaven and urges us to remember that even the lowliest of creatures possesses in him the Divine Spark. A Servant in His Household Hayat Singh- I was just a boy of thirteen or fourteen when I left my village in Almora up in the hills. It was in 1968, and I had left home to look for work in Delhi. I became interested in finding out about God, and asked someone what I should do. He told me that God was about in the very early hours of the morning, and one should seek Him then. I got hold of pictures of Rama, of Krishna, and of Durga, and began getting up very early doing aarti (burning incense and lighting candles) and praying to them, especially to Goddess Durga. The family with whom I was working at the time happened to be satsangis. I began reading Sant Mat Prakash published from Beas, and Sat Sandesh from Delhi. The satsangi with whom I worked, told me about Naam and about the need for a guru. But I would always say, "I am a Hindu—how can I become a disciple of a Sikh guru?" To my great surprise however, Maharaj Ji began appearing in dreams, and on one occasion He took me in His lap and gave me much love. I told Him I wanted to be at His Feet and He said He would grant me Naam. I told my employer I wanted to go in for initiation. "You are too young for that," I was told, and when I insisted, he said. 304 The Ocean of Grace Divine "Maharaj Ji does not give Naam to boys of your age. But if you will not listen to me you can go and demand it yourself." After my dream I was determined; I took a rickshaw and got to the Ashram. The sevadar would not let me go in; dejected and desperate I came back. I went again, and on meeting Maharaj Ji complained that He had told me He would give me Naam and yet I had to return disappointed. "If the sevadars would not let you in, did you tell them I had called you from within, and did you send in a note?" I was asked to come next time and I did so with Mata Sheila who lived near me. And so on 7th July 1969 I was initiated at the age of fifteen. Wanting to serve the Master, in March 1971 I went to Manav Kendra, and a month later became a member of the Master's household and helped with the cooking. I was a little fellow then and at first no one would let me get near the Master. But seeing the Master's love for me, people soon let me go in and out as I pleased. I do not have the words to describe what it was like, being with Maharaj Ji. He would joke with me and pull me up. At times He would playfully call me "Yahya Khan," and at others He would call me "Para Singh." Yahya Khan was very much in the news at the time and Para Singh was a popular wrestler. He would call me Para Singh because, He said, I was like mercury (para in Hindi) and could not stay still. In the last year He suddenly told me to begin learning driving at Dehra Dun, adding I could become a driver that way. By then I had lost all reserve and would tell Maharaj Ji everything. I said, "But Maharaj Ji, if I do that I would be stuck at Dehra Dun and be away from You." He went on, "But once you learn driving you will get a good job. You will be a rich man and then I can come and stay with you." Putting on a mock sternness, He added, "Don't back out. You must give me a place. No excuses—mind that!" If I prepared food for Him out of a spontaneous impulse, He would be sure to have it. Once in Rajpur a kulfi (Indian ice cream) vendor came by and I had a kulfi. It tasted good, and I took one for the Master. Not sure if He would have it, I told the vendor not to take it out of its container; you might say I carried it in on approval. I told the Master I had tried one, it seemed A Servant in His Household 305 good, and had brought one in case He would have it. He not only took the kulfi but gave me two rupees to pay for them and to keep the change for myself. We would always keep crystal sugar, cardamom, and cloves handy. Maharaj Ji was given to coughing, and when He coughed He liked to have these. Instead of running for them each time, I would often carry them for Him in my pockets. As for sleeping, I doubt if Maharaj Ji ever slept. He was always up and working, and when He would be tired and there was time, He would just stretch Himself out for a little. He was extremely fond of the Jap Ji and read it every morning before starting work. In 1973, my father was taken seriously ill and had vomited blood. On getting the news I had to go home to be by his side. When I talked to the Master about it, He asked me, "If your father goes, what will you do?" I told Him that I would come to Him; I had no worries. He was preparing me for what lay ahead, and when I departed, filled a whole bag of puffed rice parshad for me to take home. Generally He would give a handful to each devotee, but for me He took a large paper bag and filled it up. When I got back home, I would give some parshad every day to my father. On pooran-massi day (full moon) in October, I gave the last parshad left to my father around 10:00 at night. At 4:00 in the morning He was gone. That night as I lay fast asleep, Maharaj Ji appeared in a dream, and with His stick marked out a particular spot in the open. Next day when we took my father's body for cremation, the pyre was laid out at the very spot He had indicated. After various ceremonies, I returned to the Ashram; Maharaj Ji was upstairs. It was November and I ran up the stairs. He was with His elder son, His daughterin-law and a couple of others. As I looked at Him, His head was one mass of bright Light. I could not distinguish His face. Two or three days later I asked Him about my father: not being an initiate, I was worried what would become of him. "But you are his son, and you are an initiate. He will be looked after. Why do you worry?" Maharaj Ji inquired. "Will he again get human birth?" I asked. "And what if he does not need to come back at all?" He said. 306 The Ocean of Grace Divine Maharaj Ji gave us many hints about His departure during the final months. Unfortunately we did not understand them. Once He told me in the morning, "If you want me, get up early and have your bath, and after praying to God in whatever form pleases you, then only come to me." There was a certain solemnity and sternness in His command, and from then on I was particular to bathe early, and after a little Simran, then only would I show myself for work. In early August, when the Master lay in His room upstairs, I told Him, "People get well through simply remembering You. Then why are You ill Yourself? Why don't You make Yourself all right?" Maharaj Ji answered, "What is the point of getting well now—I shall be going soon!" I thought He was just joking, and responded, "And where will You be going?" He answered, "Oh, where we all go." "But You must take me there first before You go Yourself," I said. But Maharaj Ji lay silent and made no reply. A few days later He was indeed gone from us as He had warned. In Sweet Memory A. R. Manocha I came into contact with the Beloved Master in 1955. I was passing through Shakti Nagar when I saw some people going into Sawan Ashram; on enquiry I came to know that Satsang discourses were held at this place. Just for curiosity sake, one Sunday, I went there and heard the Master's Satsang. On that first occasion I felt a great charging and radiation and was attracted as iron is attracted by a strong fully charged magnet. Such was the effect on me that the next week I requested His Holiness for initiation, and by His grace, this was given. During the many years that followed, I found that whosoever met Him, was attracted similarly and conquered by His great Love. He Himself was the Personified Soul, the mouthpiece of God, and strived so that every disciple of His should reach the same state. How far we could understand Him and follow Him in practice depended upon our receptivity. He never looked or cared for our shortcomings as human beings or our outer appearance, but having overpowered the base instincts and being one with God, treated everyone from the angle of Soul, as a part of Himself. He expanded Himself beyond the body, relatives, caste, creed, nations and thus became the Master of the Universe. His 308 The Ocean of Grace Divine qualities were unlimited, indescribable in any tongue or language or by any pen as is Almighty God. He was one with the GodPower working through His body. I would like to recall a few instances which will remain always fresh in our minds and which will give inspiration to all humankind for thousands of years. One of His general teachings was that the moral and ethical life is a stepping stone to Spirituality and secondly to rise above body consciousness, of which He used to give practical experience which is called Surat Shabad Yoga—The Science of the Soul. He would attribute everything to His Beloved Master Hazur Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj and thus overcame the ego of self-praise. On 28 th July 1974 in the morning when He was sitting on the dais, and the Sangat was in meditation, I was fortunate to be standing beside the stairs at the back of the dais. His Holiness started a conversation which remains always fresh and inspiring in my mind. He just leaned on the pillow towards me and said, "Manocha, it appears that the Science is affecting the masses and mankind is being benefitted by it." With profound joy, I said, "It is all by Your Holiness's grace." He nodded His Head and said, "No, it is the grace of Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj." I again humbly said, "Master, let me know if there is any difference between Hazur Sawan Singh Ji and Yourself? I, at least, do not feel so." On this He smiled and said, "No, no, Kia pidi aur kia pidi ka shorba" (meaning that while comparing Himself to His Master, He was telling us, that He is nothing). This shows His deep humility and how much He had regard and love for His Master. On 18th August 1974, just three days before He left His physical body and disappeared from human sight, He was physically not feeling well and at the time the whole Sangat was waiting outside for His Sunday morning Satsang. He was lying on His bed on the first floor. We, who were present there, requested Him to rest and not to move from the bed. A tape recording of His voice was played. But after a time He put on His turban, sat in the wheelchair and started going towards the balcony to see His Sangat, saying, "Sipai voh hai, jo maidan-ejang main kam aae" (meaning: A solider is one who gives his In Sweet Memory 309 life in the battlefield). Looking very grave, He came to the edge of the terrace; the tape was stopped, and He gave His Beloved Sangat His last silent blessings. One minute later He returned to His room; the Satsang was over. This was the type of love He had for His Sangat. Whenever He was bodily sick and someone would come to Him, He would immediately get up and it would appear as if He had no sickness at all. Such was His charging, His radiation that He imparted happiness and peace of mind to all who came to His Lotus Feet. In the middle of February 1974 after the Unity of Man Conference, a thanks giving function was held in Sawan Ashram for those who had worked for the Conference. He specially pointed out that whether His body lives or not, the Spiritual Current working through Him will not stop, and the spiritual revolution will go on. Let us all jointly strive hard to advance and further His Mission for the benefit of mankind. How I was Taken Up in His Fold Gurdial Singh It is always the long and strong arm of the Master that finds the lost sheep from wherever it may be. I was told about His being a Living God on earth by my friend, Gurmail Singh, a noble and dedicated soul. He would always talk to me about the Beloved Master and His Mission. I, of course, used to speak in a layman's way—why should one try see the sun, moon, and stars by closing one's eyes when all of them were visible to the open eyes? He would then ask if I could see the sun at night and the moon and stars during the day. All this fantastic talk ultimately brought me to the Lotus Feet of the Master at Amritsar where I was, at the time, studying in dental college. I was by nature emotional and sentimental. It was because of my disturbed mind that I gave up the Path for one year. During this period I had a chance to meet many spiritual teachers; I also read books on spirituality. This was His way to make me realize what religion was. After one year, I found myself once again at His Lotus Feet; I then realized I could not get out of His strong hand. The first time I went to see Him at the Ashram, I met the age-old problem of "no permission to go in," as one generally How I was Taken Up in His Fold 311 meets at private residences of officials. I started thinking that there was no difference between the place where a Living God lives and the place of ministers and officials. The moment I thought this, the gatekeeper came running, opened the gate and asked us to come in. It was midnight. The Master greeted us and asked me to explain the purpose of my visit. I started putting questions one after the other, but the Master politely asked others to wait outside, and with a wave of His hand He detained me. When all the others were out and I was alone with the Master, He began consoling me and prepared me for asking for His grace rather than useless questions It was in March 1971 when I got a chance to do some physical seva at Manav Kendra. His instructions to the sevadars were to stay in their places and go on working when He went on a round to the different work sites. By His grace, I kept doing the work allotted to me when so many of my brothers and sisters ran after the Master as He came out of His residence. I alone remained at my post with my work. The Master came directly to where I was working. He asked for a chair and sat before me for about half an hour. I inwardly rebuked myself for not going to the Master but troubling H i m to come to me. I was feeling fatigued; the Master laughed at me saying, "Be a lion!" At Manav Kendra we had a unique opportunity to have His darshan daily. It was there that I learned the Master could read our minds without our asking any questions. Again He would never allow us to speak anything not to the point. This is how He would guide us. I had so many things to discuss with the Master, He would say, "Do not tell me anything; tell these people present." I was in the habit of narrating the Master's miracles. This is how I learned that the Master did not like listening to His praises. The Master advised me to open my dental clinic at Jagraon. So many of my friends wanted me to open my clinic at their places, but Master always ruled it out by saying, "Ask me a hundred times again and again, I shall say what I have said already." So with His blessings I settled at Jagraon. The Sangat there pressed me to request the Master to give a Satsang there. The Master blessed us with a one day program on 28th October 312 The Ocean of Grace Divine 1973. This was His first and last visit to Jagraon. It was one day in the month of July 1974 that I saw Master physically for the last time, on the occasion of the July Bhandara. I don't know how it happened, but suddenly I started weeping before the Master. The Master consoled me and in a subdued tone said, "A day will soon come when there will be none to stop you from weeping." I could not understand what He meant until on the morning of August 22nd, 1974, I learnt to my great despair that the Master had left His physical body. The moment I learned this I experienced all His grace flowing towards me, so much so that He appeared to me once again in His physical form. A Favorite Poem of the Master's Bibi Hardevi It is a blessing to have this Punjabi poem which the Beloved Master would often recite in the sweet remembrance of Hazur. It has been translated into English, and in expressing Maharaj Ji's grief at the passing of His Master, it helps to articulate ours. In those early days, there were no tape recorders, else it would have been such a treasure to have the words in Maharaj Ji's own voice. He would murmur the verses softly and tunefully — such beautiful verses, such pain, such anguish! The one gift which I ask Is that of Your wondrous Love. May I never forget the anguish of separation, And may I die in the sweet remembrance of Your Love. When the soul leaves the body, May no other thoughts arise, And may I go singing of You alone. The one gift which I ask Is that of Your wonderous Love. May I never forget the anguish of separation, And may I die in the sweet remembrance of Your love, And in full realization of Your Ineffable Grace. His Selfless Love Gloria Smith It is the greatest blessing on earth to be in the physical presence of a Perfect Living Master. Those fortunate souls who came within the Divine radiation of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj know the depth of this truth. To come within the personal aura of the Beloved Master was to come in contact with a Power which could transform human lives. It was His Love which drew us to Him—a Love unknown to man. His Love was universal, encompassing all of God's creation, not just man alone. The Master was a Living Bible, and by His example one slowly began to understand the previously hidden and simple truths concealed in the sacred scriptures of the world. He frequently told us: "Spirituality is simple—it is you who have made it difficult." He taught us to have love for all, to serve all. He often repeated: "Animals live for themselves; man is one who lives for others." He transformed the meaning of Love into a practical day-to-day experience capable of being performed by all—then He requested that we live up to the knowledge He had given us. He impressed on us, "Don't harm anybody, God resides in every heart." Thus He began to lift the veil that separated God's creation from itself. As the awareness, the consciousness His Selfless Love 315 begins to dawn that all creation is just Him disguised in different forms, then how can man bear to see Him suffer in any form which He may take, be it the form of man, animal, bird, or even the plant kingdom? The Master's reverence for all life opened our hearts and expanded our capacity to love. He showed us by His daily example what Love is, and how we could live Love. He would give out truths, and then give us unlimited opportunities to live up to and realize these truths in our daily lives. These lessons, when given in His physical presence always were very intense and frequently painful—for the Beloved was before us daily reminding us that "Truth is highest, but higher still is true living." He demanded that we strive to live up to what He had taught us. It was a training ground, a School of Spirituality at His Holy Feet, and the Great Teacher would not allow His students to waste their precious time with Him. We had come for one thing and one thing only—the Master—all else was to be left behind. Those who were able to do this, by His Grace, experienced profound transformations in their lives. Once at Manav Kendra an initiate was trying to work out a means to live in India so as to be near the Master. The Master lovingly listened to the entire plan, nodding His head back and forth saying, "That's all right, that's all right," in seeming agreement. Then He uttered profound words which changed the life of the initiate: "Look here, we must leave these things up to the Master Power, for only He knows what is best to wind up our karma." The charging of His words went deeply into the heart and the initiate realized that one should not be attached to anything—not even to places. The Master, in His complete selflessness was showing that the desire should be to go to our True Home rather than any place on earth. If it is our karma to live in the physical presence of the Master, then that Power will make all arrangements and it is nothing that we can do ourselves. All life is just a series of give and take—we have come here to wind up these debts and the Master Power, if we will surrender to It, will guide us, taking us where we need to be in order to finish off, so that we might once again be free and merge into Him—ending all separation. Our Beloved Master was the personification of Truth, Love, 316 The Ocean of Grace Divine Simplicity, Humility. He was the abode of all virtues. And by His great example, His life of total selfless service, He showed us that we too could regain our forgotten Godhood, but it would require the same complete dedication, the absolute and total surrender of ourselves to the Guru, so that He might clean and prepare the vessel to be filled. This surrendering He had done with His Master, thereby showing us what one man has done, another can do. O Beloved Master! We knew You but a brief moment—yet You have stolen our hearts. You came to earth in Your beautiful garment of flesh, disguised as man. With the delicateness of Your pure Love, Your Simplicity, Your Humility, You awakened our slumbering souls and put us on the way back Home. But the deep pain; Your total selflessness, Your life was given to humanity, yet You took nothing for Yourself. In your Humility, Your Love, You did not unite us with Your physical body, but with that Eternal Master Power which never dies. O Beloved! Your selfless Love breaks the human heart. Accept the offering of this prayer: have mercy on our souls; we are blinded by so many veils—forgive us, for we know not what we do. The Saga of Love Bhadra Sena The spirit of inquiry: where have I come from and where am I going? and the "Why" and "wherefore" of the world—all these questions haunted me from my very early age. In my quest I frequented temples, mosques, gurdwaras and churches, but never found satisfaction. It was in the fall of 1936 that I was picked up at last by Maharaj Kirpal Singh. From then on there grew up a personal bond which gradually developed into an indissoluble link. Now began the period of intensive training as He took me into his hands; I started attending Maharaj Ji's Sunday discourses in Lahore given under Hazur's instructions. After several months I decided to go to Beas. At the Dera, Maharaj Ji took me to His brother's bungalow where His family was staying. At night we went to see Hazur who was relaxing on His roof, it being summer season. Introducing me to Him, He requested that I should be given initiation the next day. Hazur kindly remarked, "Very well, it will be done." From then on the Dera became a place of pilgrimage for me. In one Satsang, Hazur remarked that by initiating a person the Master took over the responsibility not only for the initiate 318 The Ocean of Grace Divine but for everyone in his family, including even the rats in his house! After Satsang I had my kerchief full of sugared puffed rice as parshad from Hazur before leaving for Lahore. At home after dinner we all partook of it, and tied the rest in the kerchief and suspended it from a wall tack. The next morning as we came down we were surprised to see the sugared rice scattered on the floor. Looking up we found that the kerchief had been bitten by the rats who had indeed come to partake of the parshad! Once I persuaded my wife to visit the Dera for hearing the Great Master and having His darshan. It was in the hottest months of June and July. My wife had fear of heat. Anyhow, she agreed and we reached Beas. Maharaj Ji was there to greet us first. He placed us in a room next His. By evening my wife developed a high temperature with cramps in her legs and a severe headache. She was shivering in spite of the quilts which were placed over her. In the evening Maharaj Ji came and took some homeopathic pills out of His pocket, and turning to my wife said, "Take these pills. You will be all right. Don't worry. These will one day bring you to the Path as well." (She received her initiation some years later in early 1949). By morning she was all right and dressed for Satsang. After hearing the Great Master we returned to Lahore. On reaching home she explained why she had that bitter experience of cold and fever. She was quite reluctant to travel in the summer heat, and had inwardly prayed, if the Great Master was really a Godman she should not feel the impact of the summer sun. Hazur however, would not change the course of nature for her, but gave her a cold fever, and she not only escaped the heat, but had to be wrapped in quilts. Later when I told Maharaj Ji what had happened, He gave a hearty laugh and remarked, "We try to test Godmen, and we do not even know what to ask. This is why our prayers at times go amiss, and we have to repent afterwards." After Hazur had passed away, I heard that Maharaj Ji was in Delhi and staying at Lodhi Colony. One day I went to see Him and sat at His Feet. With His characteristic warmth He pulled me up, made me sit alongside Him, remarking, "I am not an untouchable; even if I am, when you get home you can take a bath and clean yourself." The Saga of Love 319 Countless are the benefits I derived from the company of the Beloved Master, as I began to address Him in my personal letters and in submitting draft replies to some of His foreign correspondence which He would so graciously entrust to me. The love between a Satguru and a devotee is an uncommon bond. He would teach me how to approach this work not only by His words, but through His eyes as well. He could make me fill in any weakness in my understanding of His wishes; and to my great delight they were always appropriate. He would graciously remark that the power within works with great precision and therefore it is this Power that brings forth the very word the Master wished to use. During one of those early days, I happened to be alone with the Master. Such like occasions He often provided to my ecstatic joy. He was, on this particular occasion, in a highly benevolent mood, and Tai Ji sitting close by, looked towards me, and said, "Maharaj Ji is in a mood to give whatever you wish. Ask for it!" I hesitated and kept quiet for a moment. Again she pressed me to speak out, adding, "Do you want earthly riches?" "No!" was the reply. "Then name and fame in the world?" she asked. Once again the reply was in the negative. "What else then?" she inquired. Thereupon I blurted forth, "I want just one thing, and that is Master's love, and that He should see that the flame of love He lit in me should never grow dim." The Master gave an enigmatic smile, and kept quiet. The saga of love is one of smiles and of tears; it has no beginning and no end. I always felt that His Love was oceanic and came in tidal waves. As I think this over I feel it runs through ages past and will continue till eternity. Once, while on an evening walk with the Master, I remarked: "Master, You are so exalted, so pure and so godly that at times I wonder how You allow a sinful person like me to come near You. Is there any link between us from the past?" He simply replied, "Without any such close relationship from the past, it would not be possible to be together now all of a sudden." One day when the lawn was being laid in the Ashram, the Master and I were strolling in the dark. All of a sudden the Master stopped, turned on the flashlight in His hand and focused 320 The Ocean of Grace Divine it where I was standing. "What is it Master?" I asked. "I wanted to make sure you had your shoes on, lest there be a snake," was His loving reply. I was really taken back by His deep concern for my safety. As for the correspondence work, the Master took great pains to train me in His own inimitable way: "You are just an instrument. You have not to exert yourself. Read each letter carefully noting down the points on the margin. Then take the pen in your hand, and without any premeditated thought, start writing. The Power within will do the rest," Following this advice, I would read the correspondence before going to bed. Early in the morning I would sit at my desk and start the work with a brief prayer: "Master You have to do it—I don't know how." Any references, Biblical or otherwise, would come handy by just opening the books at random, and to my surprise in the right place as if directly marked out for the purpose. It was all His love that did the work. I was just like a pen in His hand. The Master was very particular about the use of words in His correspondence. He always moved in accordance with the spirit of the time and the temper of the individual correspondent. He believed in gentle persuasion with a personal touch, to take each one from the line of least resistance and then leave him off to decide for himself. "In a scientific age like the present," He would remark, "categorical assertions would not do. Everyone wants a rational explanation for everything and more so in expounding abstruse truths. Precision and concision is all that is wanted. There is no need to thrust anything down one's throat. It is God's work and God alone knows how to fulfill His purposes." In the matter of drafting replies, He was once pleased to remark, "Be very, very careful, for once I put my signature to anything, it is as if God had put His signature to it." This is how He would at times give an inkling of the God Power that was working through Him. The Master had in His library a wonderful collection of books on varied subjects, particularly on health: health of body, mind and soul. He was gracious to allow me free access to them which benefitted me so much. As soon as new books would The Saga of Love 321 arrive, He generally passed them on with instructions to make notes for comparative study of the various systems proposed and advocated therein. And then, in between the strenuous work on hand, He would still find time to point out the subtle distinctions between the various system—Theosophy, Anthroposophy, Rosicrucianism, Seventh-Day Adventists, the "I A m " Movement, The White Brotherhood, Subud, Transcendental Meditation, Ultimate Enlightenment, Kundalini Yoga, Kriya Yoga, and lastly Nirankaris, and Brahmkumaris. At times He would provide me with His own copious notes on one or the other subject in hand. He was an indefatigable worker and I remember occasions when past midnight, He would not hesitate to call us in to solve our difficulties so as to enable us to proceed unhampered with the work. The Master was master of all situations. Near the end of my office career (1960) I had serious differences with the management, with the result that I developed low fever which persisted for months on end. I felt such a strain that I resolved to resign two years ahead of my retirement. But before doing so I went to seek the Master's permission. He emphatically said, "No!" and then added, "For thirty years you have worked for yourself. For the remaining two, I order you to carry on. Henceforth you will be serving me, and not anyone else!" It was enough. In a few days I was transferred and taken out of this impasse. At about this time when our home was completed in Kalkaji, the Master graced it, to give His blessings, and He gave it the name of "Sawan Kutir." (Kutir is the Hindi for humblest abode.) Before leaving, He said, "Today I give you a piece of advice—never, for a moment, consider this house as your own." I humbly replied, "Master I have never thought of it as such. It is Hazur's, as You have named it so graciously." He had His own inimitable way of reaching out to those who were unreceptive by an over-plus of love. After the birth of my granddaughter, I accompanied my son and daughter-inlaw with the child to the Ashram. That evening the Beloved Master was exceptionally gracious to my daughter-in-law who was not an initiate. After blessing the baby He turned to the 322 The Ocean of Grace Divine mother and said, "Why don't you come more often? It gives me so much pleasure to see you. Gome again soon. No excuses. Whenever you have time, just give me a ring and I will send the car to pick you up." My daughter-in-law was rather overhelmed and felt embarrassed. Seeing this, He continued: "Yes, I really mean it; whenever you remember me, just phone—the car will pick you up and drop you back." My daughter-in-law stammered that that would be too much trouble. "Trouble!" laughed the Master. Then getting serious, He looked at her, then at the baby, and then at her again: "You yourself have a child. You know what a joy it is for parents to have their children with them. If you had to send your car to pick up your child, would it seem any trouble? That is the way I feel towards you and it would be my joy to have you over." Later, when it was time for us to depart, He made a point of having us dropped home. Once, while I was in a nursing home, He graciously came to cheer me up and said, "What is this operation—just repairing a part of the dilapidated wall. There is nothing to worry about. You will soon be all right." Before leaving the room, He quietly placed a few hundred rupee bank notes under my pillow. My wife noticed it and told me of this. I pulled them out and humbly inquired what these were for? He simply said, "It is possible you may need them." With folded hands, I returned them with the words, "Master, I am yet having enough funds of Yours. Kindly keep these and I shall gladly ask for them if and when needed." Master often used to say that the so-called gurus were always getting things from their disciples. A Satguru, on the other hand, was always giving. When in 1971 Bangladesh was passing through a holocaust of fire and sword I felt so worked up by this event that I went to the Master and said, "Master, what is all this butchering and gunning? Can't it be stopped?" With His characteristic tranquility He said, "You have come to plead for them? I think you hold no brief. It is all a question of action and reaction. If it is God's Will that the world should go up in smoke, who can stop it? Be at peace, and everything will be all right!" In July 1974, the Beloved Master wrote to say that He was in Delhi and that I could come to visit Him. I met Him twice The Saga of Love 323 during that month; after that I did not have the blessedness to be with Him again. On the first occasion, I found Him on His bed in the livingroom downstairs. He appeared so weak that I could not forbear pleading: "All this illness is vicarious. It is not Your own, Master, but on account of us all. I pray that there be no further initiations for the next six months at least." "I have already missed a couple," He answered and dropped the subject. On the second and last such occasion, He was very ill and in His room on the first floor. As I was going upstairs I found Him coming down. When I sat at His Feet, He inquired after my health. With eyes full of tears, I unburdened myself with an Urdu couplet I had composed to the effect: You know me too well for me to reveal the anguish, the anguish of my heart. Too feeble to meet you, I gaze upon your image and weep the weary hours away. When it was time for me to depart, He got up to see me down. That He should even think of such a thing in His condition was quite incredible and with much difficulty I prevailed on Him to stay. Little did I realize then that knowing it was to be our final meeting, it was a parting gesture of that Ineffable Love which He bore for each one of us. During the 70's I had badgered the Beloved Master more than once to take me up within or to relieve me of life itself. As with age I grew less and less able to go to see Him, existence had come to be a burden. I was to repeat my plaint at one of my meetings during the last year. The Master looked at me and asked, "Have you finished your give and take that you want to go?" I submitted that I had nothing to take from anyone and was happily giving whatever I might be owing to others. Thereupon He said, "You still have something to take from Malik (God), and something that you still have to render to me." Every word of Yours, Beloved Master, was pregnant with meaning and I still ponder over the possible significance of your remark. I wish I had had the temerity to ask You to amplify Your meaning that day itself. Whenever I had a question You always helped me find the answer and I know that one day this 324 The Ocean of Grace Divine enigma too will be resolved. Meanwhile, I live with it, not forgetting to water with ceaseless remembrance the garden of our Love. I know that You are ever with me, looking after me and mine. If a Satguru forgets not even the rats in a devotee's home, why need I have any worry for myself! Only the other day, when my housekeeper was ill and wondered if she should not give up work, You appeared to her in the early hours of the morning to exhort her to carry on. But to be cared for, O Heart's Beloved, is not enough. I yearn to have Your darshan, and since the eye of the flesh can no longer see You, open the eye of the Spirit that I may behold You once again and have my fill. It is with this last hope that I linger here a suppliant at Your door, and while I thus wait it is my solace to continue to render up to You what is Yours. Mere Sahib (My Lord) Rajinder Singh Bedi Writing about Sant Kirpal Singh is like an ant trying to figure out an elephant. There was a suggestion during the lifetime of Sant Kirpal Singh that I write about Him in a biographical way. I did not do it—for dates, places and later events in the life of a man, howsoever evolved, were never more than a catalogue for me. One had to be realized inside before venturing to write about Him. Perceiving the Radiant Form of the Master required a discipline and deep meditation of which I was not capable, on account of my mental condition. Again, if one realized His inner and Radiant Form, could that experience be narrowed into utterance? Was language adequate to describe His glory? Sant Kirpal Singh was actually my gurbhai, for we, with a difference of many years, were initiated into spirituality by the same Master, Param Sant Baba Sawan Singh. This relationship continued even as I took Sant Kirpal Singh Ji as the Master's torch-bearer and my Guru. In His boundless love and compassion, He, too, treated me as a brother disciple. But, the strangest of things happened. Sant Kirpal Singh's face resembled that of my later father. As I looked at Him I always melted as a child 326 The Ocean of Grace Divine does in the lap of his father. And, Sant Kirpal Singh accepted this part of our relationship, too, and became my father, brother, and Guru, all rolled in one, and took me under the mantle of His care and affection. He would also, for reasons known to Him, single me out from among His countless adherents for special attention. Or was that my feeling? For all who came to Him felt the same way—such was His embrace which spread from one corner of the earth to the other. His relationship with everyone was personal, special, known only to Him and His devotee. Sant Kirpal Singh never let me feel the myriads of miles that lay between Him and myself, the two disciples of the same Master—one following the hukum, the Divine Will, without any reservation, the other remaining a Doubting Thomas on account of his being a man with left leanings, tending to the rational, knowing little that the Master always laid stress on the word "science" in describing spirituality as "science of the soul." I found later that there was nothing really mystic in Sant Mat. And, after the fission of atom, it was clearly established that the finer the thing the more powerful it was. The supremacy of mind over matter, therefore, was not such a cliche. After that, the spiritual side of my life was ever at variance with my left leanings and progressivism. Friends wondered at the strange bedfellowship, but I remained calm and resolved, through the blessings of the Master. When I went to the USSR a decade or so earlier, as a delegate to the Afro-Asian Writer's Conference at Tashkent, I took messages of fraternal greetings from the Master to Baba Khanov, Head of the Muslims in Tadjikistan, and the Patriarch of the Russian Orthodox Church at Zgorsk. Accompanying me were leading communist friends from India and Pakistan, Sajjad Zaheer and poet Faiz Ahmed 'Faiz'. A piquant situation arose when Master Kirpal Singh would chide me that it was from us Bedis that He had taken it all, alluding to Baba Nanak who was a Bedi and My progenitor. And then He would laugh as a flower opening its petals in the morning breeze. He was not chiding me, for that was His affectionate way of hearkening me back to my great heritage. Mere Sahib (My Lord) 327 The heritage of all men and women in the poets and prophets preceding them was superbly brought out in Gurmat Sidhant, which He wrote under the inspiration of Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji. He did the same in scores of books and treatises which flowed from His lucid pen. His writing was simple, so simple that it was liable to be ignored at times. Apart from being simple, He was direct and reached the heart of the matter in no time. His writings were as natural as a duck taking to water. There were no trappings which are a rule with the exponents of our religious philosophies today. He would laugh at the "scholarliness" of the exponents who marvelled at the many meanings to which the scriptural texts lent themselves. Sant Kirpal Singh stood for only one meaning, for there could not be more than one in the utterance of a great Mahatma. In His discourses, the teachings, synthesized from all knowledge ("What is that knowledge after which no knowledge is required?"), flowed freely and effortlessly from Him. It was always a mighty river flowing out to sea, overflowing its banks occasionally. The banks were His compassionate eyes set in a leonine, fatherly face. Sant Kirpal Singh knew our failings. But, a gaze, a pat from Him made us rise phoenix-like from our ashes and we became guiltless, sinless. Only an ocean could take it all by simply saying, "Don't do it again..." The Master would say, with laughter as simple as Himself, that it was not the job of the dhobi (washerman) to question the filth. His job was to wash! So enormous was His compassion that once I fell at His Feet confessing that what He told us to do was beyond me. I even quoted scriptures, after Hafiz: Thou hast tied me to a plank and cast me into swirling waters of the sea And Thou sayest: beware of getting drenched. And I wept. This time the Master's compassion was frightening. He lifted me up, embraced me and said, "Don't...some people get it just like that...!" I had known Sant Kirpal Singh since my childhood. He used to hold weekly Satsangs in Lahore, at the behest of His Master. I went there holding the hand of my father. I understood Him partly and then got restive, itching to stretch my limbs which 328 The Ocean of Grace Divine could not remain folded in a squat for two hours. But going to the Satsang had its own benefits: it built my later samskaras (trends and tendencies). Howsoever I strayed from the righteous path, I had to come back to it. "You may leave your Guru but the Guru will not leave you." That was more true when He gave you initiation. It was a solemn assurance, an insurance, a release, and also a bondage; for the Guru would follow you to your next birth or still the next until you had worked out your salvation and had become one with the Infinite. So, shirking it would be no use; why not do it now and here and finish with it! I went to Lahore where Sant Kirpal Singh Ji lived: a cot, a chair, a table and an asana (prayer carpet) to sit upon and meditate for hours on end with no sleep. He was an important officer in the Military Accounts Department, yet He lived so so simply! Sant Kirpal Singh was already walking in God, with God, I used to meet Him in Dera Baba Jaimal Singh where the Great Master Baba Sawan Singh would entrust Him to hold Satsang occasionally. To my mind Baba Sawan Singh Ji had already elevated Sant Kirpal Singh to be the coming Messiah. One could hear whisperings from the satsangis, "There is none comparable to Kirpal Singh and His kamai (tapas)." So, Kirpal was already our mentor. People have a way of testing Godmen by the miracles they perform. Sant Kirpal Singh Ji was averse to those, for the use of ridhis and sidhis (occult powers) frittered away the energies and, therefore, were not enjoined by the Masters. They would much rather submit to His Will and say, "Not mine, but Thy Will be done." But occasionally, they would become catalytic agents in alleviating human suffering and draw from their deep reservoir to alter the course, paying themselves a high price in illness. If only the disciples knew about it, they would never bargain their health and happiness for the Master's, the kalpavriksha (a wishyielding tree); I have ample proof of this, but I would not go into it for a test of my reader's credibility. This, again, is something between me and my God, my Guru. For me, His miracles were small, almost monosyllabic, but to be meditated upon and put into practice. I give only two examples: Mere Sahib (My Lord) 329 Clear your desk. Do one thing at a time. The more you thought of such utterences, the more you realized that in thinking and acting upon them, one could attain moksha (freedom from transmigration). A man whose desk was clear could die at a moment's notice. He neither whined nor whimpered when the final call came. He did not look back, and merged with eternity, a smile adorning his face. The world today is full of tensions simply because we think and do too many things at the same time, so that nothing is really accomplished. We take our office to the home and home to the office. At work we are with play and vice versa. When you are eating, eat; when working, work... Let me come back to my personal relationship with my Father, my Mentor. The day He was to attain His parinirvan (His conscious rest in the Great Consciousness), He appeared in a vision and gave me the date. A miracle! A call comes and booking a seat in the plane is no problem; going from the terminal was no trouble for the coach is waiting. I reach Pambari Road on my way to the Ashram and the Master's earthly remains are already on the way atop a carriage. I rush and get mixed with the milling crowds that had gathered to mourn the loss bigger than their gain. Darshan Singh, Master's son, spots me; he singles me out from amongst thousands. Another miracle. He stretches his hand. I jostle to the carriage and he pulls me up. We embrace and break down in common anguish. I touch Master's Feet. He is as serene in death as in life. But...Oh no, how can a promise wither? How can God die?! The Last Darshan Virginia Vidich In July 1974, Master graciously granted me permission to visit Sawan Ashram where I was able to imbibe His Blessings during the last five weeks of His earthly life. Being in His presence was a rare gift but one that unfortunately, I did not appreciate at that time. My mind rebelled and I had desires to escape the Ashram and the oppressive heat of Delhi and go to the mountains. I even asked Master for permission to leave for a few days. He replied sweetly, "Yes, if that is your desire." Then, fortunately for me, the two people who were going to accompany me changed their plans and the trip was cancelled. From that day on Master showered His Love on me, stilling my mind and filling my heart with joy. At one evening Darshan, I asked Master about the power of grace. He gave a beautiful discourse on the subject for nearly twenty minutes, never taking His eyes off me. This demonstration of grace for one who was so unworthy of His Blessings was a lesson I have never forgotten. I was bathed in His glances of love and as I gazed into His deep blue eyes, His whole form began to glow with a beautiful white radiance, all Light and Love. On August 17th, in the evening, Master gave two of us our The Last Darshan 331 last Darshan for we were leaving in the morning. Master was on His bed, resting with Hs son, Darshan, at His side. Although Master was in pain, He was so sweet to us, asking us about our departure plans and blessing gifts for friends. I told Him I was going to Kashmir for a few days before leaving Delhi on the 21st. Master smiled and said, "Go jolly." He was so cheerful that it eased the pain of our good-bye. Little did I know that was to be my last glimpse of His physical form. The next two days were incredible; Master not only granted me my desire to go to the mountains but filled me with such intoxication for God that I felt His constant presence. Although I had left the Ashram, Master had not left me. The locket of Kirpal which I had always worn seemed to be specially charged —like a magnet it drew people, who inquired about His picture. One peddler in particular became charmed as he was trying to sell me some jewelry. Slowly his eyes began to focus on the image of Master. His voice slowed to a halt and then he stopped and asked in a wistful tone, "Please tell me who He is." I spoke about Master and the Path and he was eager to hear more. In the evening he returned with three friends and a ring and locket made from two small snapshots of Master I had given him. They had many questions about Master and I was overjoyed to share His teachings. I took a bus to the foothills of the Himalayas. It was a beautiful drive. On the bus some passengers engaged me in conversation about Master—the charm of the locket again! I rented a horse from one of the many herdsmen and we started up the trail, the herdsmen walking and I on horseback. Two crows accompanied us for a short distance, flying in front of me, cawing very persistently. I felt they had a message for me but I was too ecstatic to allow myself to worry. Though I am not musical and seldom sing, during that ride up the mountain, songs about God and Master flowed out of the depths of my soul. Both the tunes and the words were spontaneous creations and expressions of the sense of beauty, harmony and unity of the Universe, which Master conveyed to me. Unselfconsciously I sang the entire trip up the mountain. At the top we stopped and had some tea. We were joined by several herds- the Ocean of Grace Divine men, all Moslems. Again the conversation focused on Master and they listened attentively, nodding their heads and praising Allah. That day it was effortless to see God in everyone, for all faces were shining with Light. Not only the children, but everyone smiled at me as I walked in the village streets. It was a golden day. I didn't walk but floated on Master's vibrations. All were bathed in glory—children scampering on the streets, women gracefully bearing bundles of sticks on their heads, old men crouching in doorways, soldiers prancing in their uniforms. I felt no separation. We were all one—young, old, male, female, Moslem, Sikh, Christian, Hindu, American, Indian, Kashmiri. God's Love radiated intensely from each and everyone. Tears were flowing down my cheeks, an expression of the intensity of my experience. Oh Kirpal, what was the meaning of this God intoxication—this holy ecstasy? On August 21, still high on God, I flew back to Delhi late in the afternoon. As I was collecting my luggage, a young Indian steward, no more than 19, walked up to me and said, "My Master is Kirpal Singh too. Let's go to the Ashram." I thought, of course, why not? He tried to phone first but the line was busy, so we decided to go anyway as Phul had to return to his job in an hour or two. We arrived at Sawan Ashram at quarter to six. It was deathly still—even the birds seemed strangely quiet. An American student ran over to our taxi and told me that Master had been taken to the hospital. Although He was very ill, He said we should not worry. I was stunned by the news. There was no point in staying so we got back into the taxi. As we were leaving, an Indian lady ran out and asked if we were going to the hospital. I told her we had to return to the airport. It was then 6:15. Phul wanted me to meet his family who lived in a hamlet near the airport. I agreed, and that cheered him up considerably. We had to walk a short distance across some fields to his family compound. They were all there to greet me—his blind father and his uncle who were both initiates of Sawan Singh together with all his sisters, brothers and cousins. Such a happy scene! They offered me a coke and gave me their one chair which I tried The Last Darshan 333 to refuse. They insisted, and I sat awkwardly while they stood around me. We all communicated through that universal language of smiles and embraces since only Phul and I spoke English. During these moments of joy I noticed that the Western sky was aflame with golden-red clouds. The blind father stood with his back to the sun, his white hair wreathing his head like a halo, his arms embracing his sons. Phul ran into the house bringing out the only picture of Master his family had in their home. He presented this mounted picture of Master as a gift to me. We all looked at the picture, murmuring, "Sat Guru." I refused to accept this generous gift, so he offered me a picture of himself instead. The children by this time were crowding around me, giggling and happy. The adults, more bashful, were smiling. We were one family united by God. I shall never forget how everyone was bathed in a special golden haze as the sun slowly set behind the clouds and the Great Sun of Spirituality, Master Kirpal, left the earth plane. Only when I arrived at Kennedy Airport did I learn that Master had indeed left the earth at the time we were having His Darshan in a simple hamlet in India. Let His Words Be Part of Ourselves Leora Herold Through His grace, I am His representative for Mexico. I have tried to give out His sacred teachings as He wished. He blessed Mexico, the country where I was born to work for Him, and also gave us strength through His third world tour. How true this is! For me, His Words are Truth. I have not experienced all of this, but I feel nearer to Him now than before He left the physical plane. His last words to me in Mexico were, "Remain in contact with me." This I try to do to the best of my ability. But the words He gave us concerning the instructions for Holy Initiation are the most sacred ones to me. I think it would be good for all satsangis to hear them again and again. There is a partial copy of the instructions at the end of this article. I would also like to relate that months before His passing I twice had a vision of Him lying covered in white. I then knew He would leave us physically. And so it was. But when I heard this on August 21st during a trip I made to the different Satsangs in California, I could not help but feel a deep inner release that I cannot explain in words. He no longer had to suffer our karmas. Yes, this grateful feeling overcame my heart, and this was why I had Let His Words Be Part of Ourselves 335 to shed tears. Later I remembered the words of a past Master; we should not wish that the Master should not leave, but rather let Him be free of the pains of the physical body, which the Master takes on Himself to enable us to start on the Path of Liberation. How grateful I was, even with the grief knowing I would never see Him again in the physical body. And then, I really felt the tremendous blessing of His presence, more than ever before! No words can express this, nor can words express the love He lets us have and give to Him, as well as the love we give to others. How can we be grateful? I think by trying to let His very words be a part of ourselves. Live with and through them. Then, we can really experience His presence within ourselves. Then, we will start to experience that He is the Doer, and that He moves our fingers and body. It is the Master Power that is keeping us going and living in the body. How can we then, start to criticize or see the failures in others if we would see Him within them? He smiles at you when you try to see Him within others, no matter who it is. He is purifying us, one by one. He is bringing the Diamond out of the dirty, stone-hard filth we allowed to be put on ourselves. Only He can do this work, so allow Him to do it. This is what we should think and work toward. Not to show to the world the failures of others. We have enough ourselves! But know He is within us. He loves us, more than we can imagine. I cannot put on paper what I have experienced through His grace. His grace is beyond expression. I do not deserve it, but He gives, gives and gives. I would like to learn to give, give and give as He gave and gives at every moment. In the vineyard of the Lord, the crop is almost ready; so many hands are needed to bring it to hungry or starving people, our sisters and brothers everywhere. So, please let us remember His sacred words which were conveyed at the end of the Holy Initiation. Master said: There are three retarding factors: 1. Do not convey the method of practice to anyone unless with the permission of the Master. By doing so, you will lose the Master's thought transference, and your inner progress will stop. Moreover, you will not be The Ocean of Grace Divine 336 2. 3. able to give inner experiences to them, nor guide them. Do not tell your inner experiences to any other except by permission of the Master. You may convey your experiences to the Master! If a form appears within while in practice, repeat the five Names. If it is the Master it remains—if it is not it disappears! If anything is offered to you, do not accept it. Do not pay homage to anyone but the Master. Do the Simran test. By doing Simran all apparitions of the negative power and maya will disappear, and will not harm you. Last of all—my relation to the initiates: Respect my words more than my body. That will give you real lasting good. Be true to your own self. God is in you and the Master is also in you, and you will receive help. God Came To Me Trudy Ravens Where does one seek to find the answer to all life's riddles? Who does one look to for release from the give and take on this earth plane? How does one escape from the fears, frustrations and anxieties heaped on us from all sides? Since the age of ten years, on the death of my beloved mother, determination to seek the truth became of paramount importance to me. I embarked on many paths. Each helped a little to disengage me from meaningless values, but somehow the import of life seemed always to be elusive. Through the medium of my son, Michael, I came to the feet of my Beloved Master. God came to me in the form of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj, who was a Personification of love, and through His love He accepted me as His own. He poured out His love to other members of my family also. One night my son, Bobby, was stranded outside in the bitter cold of winter. Not a soul in sight. The door through which he could reach a phone to call for help was locked. Freezing, he didn't know what to do. Suddenly he remembered the picture of Master in his wallet. He took it out and prayed, please help me. He then put his hand on the door and it opened as if by itself! 338 The Ocean of Grace Divine He blessed me by the privilege of seeing His Form and that of Baba Sawan within. No longer is there anything more for me to seek. With Beloved Sant Kirpal Singh Ji came all the answers. Now it only remains to follow His Path and pray that He holds me tightly in His grasp. Straying as I do, He still bestows His Grace. Three Flowers For Kirpal Sandra English Dare I to die In Joyous Fusion to fathom Thy Heart! Let me understand Thy depths. Thy Deaths, O Love Divine, With Thee Into the depths descend and heights ascend. To know Thee is to become Thee. To drink in Thy Love. Let me taste the depths of Thee, My Lord, My Love. If I were close to Thee I'd hug all the trees, and kiss all the flowers. I'd touch my forehead to the dust under Thy Holy Feet and weep at the sight of Thy Face. Three Flowers for Kirpal From the depths I cry out, to commune with Thee but cannot weep. You ask me to, but dare I? Your eyes speak Holiness. Holiness thunders from Thy Voice, and Thy Heart Heaves like sea-waves. May my soul enter the doors of Thy Great Heart to drink the sweetness of Thy Song, Subtle Sound, from afar muffled by Thy cries, seeking me, Prodigal Daughter deaf through centuries, deaf to Love and dumb to Light that undulates behind the darkness, pleading, "Child, end this sojourn in the dung hills of the mind." "Bow down O Soul, and leave Thy fears behind, bow down and worship Him, the King of Kings." "Be shattered by His Gaze as the Sun on the windows blinds Thy Eye, and only the Sun Remains." The Greatest Miracle Jamna Das Akhtar You may call me a conservative, but despite the atomic age in which we are living, I believe in miracles. I used not to believe in God—I used to laugh at the idea of spirituality—but the moment I had the privilege of seeing Hazur Baba Sawan Singh, my way of thinking changed. It was a miracle. His beaming face and His sparkling eyes attracted me, and His very first sermon impressed me so much that I had to surrender myself to Him. He even changed dacoits and murderers into God-fearing humans. Is it not a miracle? I do not agree to the idea that a devotee does not stand in need of guidance from the new Master after the demise of one's own Master. The Master does not die; He leaves one garb and enters into a new one. I remember that Hazur Baba Sawan Singh's elder son, Sardar Bachint Singh, refused to recognize his Father as the new Master. He was of the view that as he and his Father had their initiation from Baba Jaimal Singh, therefore, he did not need spiritual guidance from Baba Sawan Singh. However, after about twenty years, he realized his mistake, and touched the Holy Feet of Baba Sawan Singh, saying that he had now seen Baba Jaimal Singh in Him. The Greatest Miracle 341 Incidentally, there was a time when I did not believe in Sant Kirpal Singh Ji. I knew He was a saint, but not my Master. It so happened that I became seriously ill. Doctors failed to restore my health. I was helpless. I prayed to Hazur Baba Sawan Singh. He appeared before me and said, "Go to Kirpal. You will see me in Him. He will make you all right." This was another miracle. I wrote a letter to Sant Kirpal Singh Ji praying for mercy. That night He appeared before me and gave His blessings. The next day I felt that I needed no doctor; His blessings had cured me. Several times I saw Hazur Baba Sawan Singh's picture changing into Sant Kirpal Singh's picture. To me both were one. The Light had not disappeared after Baba Sawan Singh Ji's worldly demise—It reappeared in Sant Kirpal Singh's person. It was because of this that a large number of Hazur's devotees gathered together under the spiritual canopy of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji and received His blessings and grace. Is it not a miracle that the new Master was able to change the lives of millions of men in different parts of the world? Like Hazur, He preached the eternal Truth. He tried to break all those barriers that stood in the way of reorganizing human beings into one single and compact spiritual society. It was one of the greatest achievements that the world has witnessed. A true devotee of the Master does not believe in barriers that divide mankind into warring communities; he forsakes bigotry; he loves everyone because he has been taught to see God's Light everywhere. That is the greatest miracle the Master performs. The Beloved Master Never Left Us Robert Gildener I am twenty-eight years old and have been an initiate of Great Master Kirpal Singh Ji since 1970. After our Beloved Master's departure for His Home Eternal in August 1974, I, like all of Master's children round the world, experienced deep pain and grief. Although I kept up my worldly duties and job, my heart was not in it. Life for me had become a hollow nothing. On August 27, 1974, I started for lunch from my job at about noon. It was my custom to drive a car to a grocery store, buy some food there and then return to work. However, I do not remember going through this usual routine on this day. It seems on this day Master took me above my normal body consciousness while I acted out my usual luncheon routine. During my ride to the store, my car was struck by another car going about sixty miles per hour. In the impact of the collision, my head struck the dashboard of the car full force, resulting in a severe open cut on the head and a concussion. Now, although I have no conscious recollection of the accident and was not in control of my outer faculties, by Master's grace I managed to get myself out of the car and lay myself on the nearby sidewalk. I am told that I told some ladies attending me, "God bless you, thank you." I now The Beloved Master Never Left Us 343 wonder in amazement at the power of the Master which controls one's outer personality in situations like these. Later in the hospital I received twenty-four stitches on the head wound I suffered. One sister and two brothers came to the hospital. They told me that during the operation I seemed to be in quite an ecstatic state, singing bhajans, quoting Master's sayings to the doctor, and alternately sadly asking if it was indeed true that our Beloved Master had left us. Again, during this period of time I was functioning in another state of consciousness which only Master would understand, for I have only vague recollections of saying anything or of the operation itself. My first strong memories and resumption of normal consciousness came, after the operation in a room at the hospital. There my smiling sister and brothers helped me "go jolly". Night fell and I found myself alone in the room. I did Simran and the Sound Current was clear to me. Master's grace was all around. Yet somehow I kept thinking that if Master was gone, I too should die. Then as I gazed at the open doorway of my room a beautiful white Light began forming there. The Light sped up; and lo! in its center appeared the physical form of our Beloved Master, in His usual black topcoat and vest and white pajama pants. He smiled a most wondrous and mysterious smile. Yet I must confess I became restless with joy at His appearance and within five seconds He disappeared. I bowed my head in thanks, and was now truly happy and peaceful. I had seen with my own eyes that our Beloved Master had never left us. He was still with us in the Form we knew if He so chose, and His protecting hands still guarded us from the sting of our own sufferings. In Remembrance of Our Master James Forte How can one speak of one's Master? Tears are words enough. His total humility let the total Divinity shine through and pour down upon us, drenching us with love through every pore. If the longing to see Him was of supreme intensity, the agony at His departure from the physical world was still greater, and His inner grace and consolation since has made all before it seem as nothing. So intensely is He loving us that we are vibrated through and through. We, worthless as we are, have a supreme lover who does not go away. He would often say, "Words cannot describe that experience." Only sobs of the heart transformed. How to speak of Him? How can we who have nothing praiseworthy in us praise Him? But it is all a tale of love. He came for love, He gave love, He is loving. He was always concerned with the real, the living, the alive, and was not at all concerned with monuments, and yet His total humility was monumental. He told the tale of one disciple who was writing the life story of his Master, and after years of no written pages being produced, he explained that he was writing all the time. The true story of a Master is to live up to what He says. As initiates Remember of Our Master 345 we are all meant to be the living story of our Master's life, for His life was not a story or a tale of events. His life was living love—alive and vibrant, not just a description of it. Then we would be true disciples constantly demonstrating the story of our Master's life, just as He was the constant living story of His Master's life. If ever beauty of Nature was a promise of something higher, He was that promise come walking among us. He loved us—He loves us. We were more lost than we could realize, and He came to save us. So immediate yet so infinite. It seems impossible that any picture frame could even get around any picture of Him. In His presence infinity shone out—and we were happy, we were joyful, overjoyed. He said that when we are on the same earth-plane as our Master, that is beatitude. Then He said, "You are having that beatitude but I am not." Even He, the Master Himself, could not have that beatitude on earth, for His Master had left the physical form. It would seem that by His leaving us on the physical plane we have suffered an irreparable loss. Indeed we have. Where can we go? Yet His sacrifice—and sacrifice it was— so purified us. Even His departure from the physical was a gift. The longing is greater and we are dragged in, for nothing else can satisfy us. We must see Him and be with Him. His essence and life force was love itself. Every word He uttered was to bring us away from all other lives to the life of love; that is, life with Him, for life with Him is a life of love. Like the proverbial salt dolls, we are dissolving slowly into the ocean of Love as we follow His instructions and do our spiritual practices. We may sometimes think that we are more like some insoluble tar doll, but though we may not know it, the process is going on. To the degree that our attention resides in Him we are at peace. Who was this man—none less than the very presence of God Himself. He is writing the true story of His life in the salvation of each one of us. Overflowing Grace B.R. Misra I am very grateful to my Beloved Master Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj for accepting this soul at His Lotus Feet and initiating me into the mysteries of the Beyond. Since I came into the fold of the Master I have received immeasurable inner and outer guidance which cannot be put into words, as the Grace of the Master is beyond human description. I was at Sawan Ashram for the April Bhandara in 1967. I had attended every Satsang for two days and listened to discourses given by the Master, religious heads and holy men. I knew I was blessed to be there, but I was just one among many thousands, at the back of this great gathering. I had an intense longing to come closer to the Master and have His darshan. I became miserable in body and soul because I was so far away from Him. On the evening of April 2nd, knowing He would visit the langar to bless the food, I placed myself in His path. I stood there dejected and hopeless. After some time, the Master came out of His house; He walked through the crowd with folded hands, looking at the people on either side. He passed the very place where I was standing, but did not look at me; my courage all ebbed away. Suddenly, after He had gone a little distance Over flowing Grace 347 beyond me, I cried out in desperation; "Maharaji! I am so sad and miserable." The Master immediately turned back. He came to me and embraced me and looked into my eyes for a couple of seconds. He said, "Tell me what is the matter." In those brief seconds He lifted me out of myself—I was lifted so high and experienced such bliss that I cannot describe it in words. It was not because the Master touched me or talked to me for a few seconds, it was because He filled my inner being with so much Divine Grace that it overflowed from my body and my soul. I became as happy as if a dying tree had burst forth into blossoms. The love of the Master overflowed my body and soul for a very long time afterwards. I am too small to know and to contain the Grace of the Master. The Compassionate One Prem Chand Gupta It was His Compassion that drew us to Him, It was His love that raised us to His arms. Like refreshing spring rains He showered His grace on all. "Mankind is all one" He said, "No high no low. We are all brothers and sisters in God." He backed these words with the Light of His Life, He gave the demonstration thereof in the time of His Life. Oh! those glorious days, When we sat in His radiant circle, His love-laden glances a soothing balm on our lacerated hearts, Without Thee we are lost souls in a Land of Shadows. The Mission of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj Darshan Singh How does one encompass with words the attributes of a personality so cosmic as Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj? A Light broke out in the East and spread to the West. A Fragrance sweetened our hearts and minds and penetrated to the inmost depths of our souls. A Master of the Tavern, with a heart as large as the ocean, poured out with abandon the Wine of Life, whose intoxication is eternal. A Beauty was born on whom Nature expended its grace and splendour, whose every glance was a transport of bliss, and whose every word was a song of spiritual awakening. Ours is the age of materialism in which man has lost himself in the world of the senses. Having forgotten his true identity, his True Home, man wanders in a labyrinth of darkness. It is to get us out of this wilderness that Maharaj Ji came among us. He pointed out the Path of Light so that we may once again live in God. Those who were seekers, He blessed with the seed of Naam or Word and enabled them to develop further. At a time when the atom bomb and the hydrogen bomb seemed to destroy man's humanity, He helped to revive it by the gospel of love. The Mission of the Masters is to lead us from darkness to The Mission of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj 349 Light, from untruth to Truth and from death to Immortality. The Saints are above the dualities of this world: life and death, success and failure, mine and thine, good and evil. They are liberated Souls; and They are born, not in consequence of reactions from past lives, but to free us from the prison-house of this world by bestowing the gift of Naam. They are Love personified and it is on account of the lack of this Love that the soul, caught in the duality of good and evil, loses itself in the wheel of life and death. Given the seed of Love from the Master, the soul nurtures it as Guru-bhakti—devotion to the Master—and develops it until he himself becomes permeated with Love, unites with God and reaches his Eternal Home. Ours is an age of science and it has furnished us with all kinds of opportunities. It has provided us with marvellous means of communication and transportation which have brought us nearer to each other, narrowing the world into a compact mansion of the Lord. Even language is becoming less of a barrier. But in spite of all this, if we look to his heart, man stands divided from man. Maharaj Ji, making full use of the facilities of modern technology, undertook three global tours and travelled the length and breadth of India. He endeavoured to bring us together, to remind us of the Fatherhood of God and the brotherhood of man. In undertaking all this, His purpose was to sow the seed of Naam. We begin by loving our immediate kin, and as we develop, this love in due course becomes universal love and love of God. It is through such love that the Kingdom of God can be realised. We need to bear in mind that in spreading this Mission and in sharing this supreme wisdom, Maharaj Ji used the simplest words to reach everyone, the learned and the unlearned alike. We have also to remember that the Masters are the embodiment of Truth. Our soul too is of the same essence, but entangled in the material world it has forgotten its divinity. And Maharaj Ji would charge those around Him with this Truth through His love-glances. This capacity for charging others with His glance is the prerogative of a true Master. That is not all: a Master, from thousands of miles away, using the principle behind telepathy, links His devotees to Truth and moves their hearts 350 The Ocean of Grace Divine to righteousness. If needed, He can manifest Himself at several places simultaneously, here and on the inner planes, in order to carry on His work. The Master Saints alone are able to give us this inner link by means of Their attention. Kabir has said that through His powerful attention He can launch us forth. In this connection one may recall an incident from Maharaj Ji's life. During His first world tour, He was giving a Satsang discourse to an audience in Germany. An interpreter was translating what He said into German, but the translation seemed to be an interruption to the listeners. Some members of the audience requested that the translation be dropped for they could understand Maharaj Ji's meaning much better by simply gazing into His eyes. Para Vidya, the Knowledge of the Beyond, is the mother of all sciences, for it is from its roots that all other forms of knowledge originate. Maharaj Ji was Para Vidya personified; and in this age of science, He embodied the Source of all other sciences. On the behest of His Master, Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji, Sant Kirpal Singh Ji commenced His Mission in 1948. During the twenty-six years that followed, He worked ceaselessly around the clock, imparting spiritual understanding through countless discourses, through His books, through letters, through personal interviews with all who came to Him—educated or uneducated, men or women, young or old, rich or poor, believers or sceptics. He not only gave out the theory, what is more, He imparted to vast numbers a firsthand experience of the God-Power latent within. He established over eighty Satsang centres within India and two hundred and nineteen abroad. Insanyat, or man-making, was Maharaj Ji's religion. In His discourses He would focus on what constituted being a man in the fullest sense and on what was true Dharma. Dharma, or true living, He would explain, centred on linking oneself to that Power which is all-pervading, all-sustaining and all-controlling. The English word "religion," He would go on to explain, pointed to the same principle—re meaning "back" and ligio "to bind," that is, to bind us back to our Source. Thus Dharma is as old as man himself because the questions—Who am I? From The Mission of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj 351 where have I come? Where do I go?—have been with us from the outset. The true religion lies in the soul knowing its true identity and returning to its original home. The founders of the great religions spoke from their own personal inner experience, and the different creeds were started to help preserve their message. Men of realisation have all shared in the same experience, and teach that Seeing is believing. Men of realisation, from time to time come to impart the True Knowledge, but later on those who follow them, in spite of their sincerity, move away from this universal core because of lack of firsthand spiritual experience. In the absence of inner knowledge, men begin interpreting the words of the Saints in terms of their own limited reasoning, and so Dharma or religion becomes increasingly a subject of intellectual wrangling, and no longer serves to unite men in the common quest for peace and salvation. This process of decay reaches its climax when those who have little awareness of spirituality become the official propagators and ministers of religion, reducing it in course of time to mere rites and conventions. With time, these rites and conventions grow increasingly rigid, and religion becomes the sphere of those given to blind orthodoxy. Through the grace of His Satguru, Hazur Baba Sawan Singh Ji, Maharaj Ji was blessed with first-hand inner knowledge, that knowledge which is at the root of everything. He founded Ruhani Satsang and Sawan Ashram as a common ground for all religions. He taught only what He Himself had tested in His own inner laboratory, and He imparted to those who came to Him a direct contact with the reality within. In the West when one gives a talk, one is usually paid for it. At many places those who came to hear Maharaj Ji during His world tours, wanted to recompense Him with money. He would answer that He gave His discourses not for Himself but in obedience to his own Guru, and that spirituality like all the gifts of God, such as air, water, and sunshine, was given free. Maharaj Ji had the gift of stealing men's hearts, and whomsoever He met He drew to Himself. Such was His humility, His love, that people were drawn towards Him, and through gentle persuasion He would rescue them from their rituals and narrow 352 The Ocean of Grace Divine outlook and direct them towards a true conception of the purpose of life. Whoever came to Him as a seeker, He bestowed on him the priceless treasures of spirituality. Speaking on the basis of inner experience—experience which He could grant to those who came to Him—Maharaj Ji emphasised that the human body itself was the true temple. "God does not reside in the temples made by human hands," He would say, and, pointing to the body, would add, "He resides in this temple which He has made Himself." In our times everything seems to have reduced itself to politics. We have no lack of political persons even in religion, and they profess one thing in public and practise quite another in private. Such people have done great harm to the cause of religion and to the public at large because they tend to divert us from our inner goal and from our desire to know ourselves. Seeing this, even those who are religiously inclined become sceptics. As a result, the majority in our times, in the absence of a true understanding of religion, feel alienated from it. Consequently religion has been reduced to mere rituals, an expendable superfluity in our lives. It was at such a dark time that Maharaj Ji came to spread His Light among us. He helped us to understand the basic principles of religion and emphasised that religious fraternity held the key to world peace. He therefore helped organise the first World Religions Conference in 1957 in Delhi. The second Conference followed in 1960 in Calcutta, and the third and fourth at Delhi in 1963 and 1970 respectively. These Conferences were attended by religious leaders of all denominations and representatives of various sects and faiths. He was the Founder President of the World Fellowship of Religions and presided on all the four Conferences. He helped to disseminate the spirit and the message of these Conferences during His three global tours. Maharaj Ji, at the Ardh Kumbhi in 1968 and the Kumbha Mela in 1974, helped bring together on a common platform the heads of various Hindu sects and orders. The result of all this was that representatives of various faiths who had once eyed each other with suspicion, learned to live in harmony with one another and to see that the real threat to any religion comes The Mission of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj 353 not from other religions but from the growing scepticism in the general public. In the Christian world, those who have rendered meritorious service to the Faith and humanity are honoured with the Order of St. John of Jerusalem, Knights of Malta. In 1962 Maharaj Ji became the first non-Christian to be thus honoured. At the time of the Kumbha Mela, Swami Ganesh-waranand, an authority on the Vedas, remarked that men like himself had only studied the Vedas and could only comment on them. Sant Kirpal Singh Ji on the other hand had lived them, and was a living embodiment of Vedic teachings. He had given their quintessence into a single phrase—Manur bhavah—Become a man—and made it available to humanity at large. On March 14th, 1972, Mr. V.V. Giri, the then President of India, while on a visit to Manav Kanav, remarked that Maharaj Ji was carrying on God's work. On August 1st, 1974, Maharaj Ji was invited to address the members of the Indian Parliament and became the first Saint to be thus honoured by the supreme body of the land. When writing Gurmat Sidhant, Maharaj Ji had envisaged man's at-one-ment with God as a universal religion—a religion that in course of time would come to be accepted by all mankind. While continuing to live within their different social orders, men would be able to experience God, and honour the memory of all the sages, saints and mystics of all ages. This religion has been an ideal from the earliest times. It was in pursuance of this ideal that the World Religions Conferences were organised. But there was a limit to what such gatherings could accomplish, and in course of time He sought to tackle the problem at its very root. Man-making was a prerequisite for at-one-ment with God. As Maharaj Ji would put it, "Finding God is not difficult— what is difficult is learning to become a man in the true sense." With this subject in view, Maharaj Ji founded Manav Kendra at Dehra Dun in 1970. It was based on the three principles of Man Making, Man Service and Land Service which includes Animal Service. By developing these, one could realise more fully one's human potential by seeing one's relationship not only to other human beings but to all life. He laid great emphasis on education, and besides establishing a school, there 354 The Ocean of Grace Divine was a hospital, a dairy and provision for farming. Man-making, He would say, involved perfecting oneself in every possible way. To be a man in the fullest sense one had to exercise great selfdiscipline. Man is a conscious spiritual entity, and it is the spirit which is sustaining the body, the mind and the intellect. If one can be spirit in the true sense one can function simultaneously on the spiritual planes and the physical plane, using the body at will as a mere instrument. According to Him, that form of education which taught us how to free the spirit from matter was the only true education. "Knowledge without action is insanity," He said, and stressed that that knowledge which was purely theoretical was a hindrance, not a help. He wanted children to be taught the first principles of right understanding from their early years, for which purpose He set up the school at Manav Kendra. In establishing the hospital, He proposed that all systems of medicine be made use of for the relief of human suffering. Keeping before Him the object of man-making, the first lesson He taught us was the lesson of Unity. The whole human race is God's family, and in February 1974 on Maharaj Ji's sponsorship, the first Unity of Man Conference was organised in Delhi. About five hundred delegates from eighteen foreign countries and some sixty thousand Indians took part and experienced what it was to live together and work as one family of God in spite of differences of race and religion. In this manner, Maharaj Ji endeavoured to help us raise ourselves at every level. He always told us we are spiritual entities and should be linked with the G6d-Power and become conscious co-workers of the Divine Plan. We have minds and bodies and should learn to stay healthy and cultivate clear thinking. We should learn to be useful to others, and this not merely to other members of the human community, but to birds and beasts alike, for all life is of God's creation and we should live in harmony with it. Race, colour, creed, community—all these factors which seem to divide us from one another are, in fact, no barrier. They only bring out the infinite variety of God's family, and as for different religions and social divisions, they were created to help man and not to be a stumbling block. Maharaj Ji was the great scientist who made us sit within The Mission of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj 355 the laboratory of the human body and experience the spiritual reality for ourselves. During His first world tour a distinguished American scientist met Maharaj Ji and had a discussion with Him. After the questions and answers were over, Maharaj Ji turned to him and asked, "In spite of all the scientific development, can you produce an ounce of consciousness?" The answer was in the negative. Science and philosophy have to do with mind and intellect, whereas the spirit goes beyond both intellect and mind. When we can learn to withdraw our spiritual currents and focus them at the centre between the two eyes, then from that point religion, in the true sense, begins. This point is the seat of the soul in the laboratory of the body. In developing spirituality as a science, Gurmat Sidhant is a unique gift which Maharaj Ji has left for mankind. This treatise comprising two volumes of about two thousand pages holds the quintessence of all the scriptures of the world and provides quotations and references from them to bring out their true mystic import. In most prevalent schools of thought purity of mind is emphasised as the highest virtue. Such purity is ultimately a means, not the end. Ethical living is the prime religion. Maharaj Ji emphasised that we must overcome our limitations and shortcomings, and become the abode of all virtues. It is only after one becomes a man in the true sense, that one can become a Godman. He who loves the Creator, loves all His creatures and is a stranger to fear or hate. He would practise Ahimsa or non-violence in thought, in word and in deed. He would not engage in hypocrisy, fraud, falsehood and deceit, nor would he in any way seek to exploit others or deny them their due. In keeping with this attitude he would refrain from meat and drink. In all things he would seek to cultivate purity in thought, word and deed, and seek to serve God's creatures in a spirit of humility. To help seekers transform their lives by rooting out their failures and cultivating in their place the cardinal virtues of Ahimsa, chastity, love and humility, Maharaj Ji devised a daily diary. At the end of each day if we could look back and remind ourselves of our failures and shortcomings and maintain a systematic record, there was no reason why our lives could not begin to undergo transformation. 356 The Ocean of Grace Divine The headings He devised for the diary speak for themselves: I. Failures a. b. c. d. Truthfulness: falsehood, deceit, hypocrisy, fraud and illegal gain. Non-violence: thought, word and deed. Chastity: thought, word and deed. Humility: vanity of knowledge, pride of wealth and intoxication of power. II. Meditation a. b. Meditation (Simran-Dhyan): how much time devoted. Contacting the Holy Sound (Bhajan): how much time devoted. III. a. b. Selfless Service Physically and intellectually. Financially. Maharaj Ji enjoined His disciples to maintain such a diary regularly and to send Him the same periodically. The diary also included a section on spiritual progress, and He would make concrete suggestions to help each individual overcome his difficulties so as to progress further. This spiritual diary is a unique method. It is a systematic instrument of introspection and is typical of the scientific and practical manner in which He reinterpreted the timeless teachings of the Masters for modern man. In fact, He used to say that such a diary could help anyone. Even a non-initiate if he experimented with it, would see his life taking a turn for the better as he plotted it out day by day. Maharaj Ji was omniscient from the very first, and above the deceptions of duality. In Gurmat Sidhant He explained the various aspects of spirituality and illumined the nature of God. God is not only All-Knowing, but the Creator, Sustainer, and the Ultimate Refuge. He is eternal and it is through His Will that all the worlds were created and are being sustained. The Mission of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj 357 The world is still ignorant of the true nature of a Godman. Maharaj Ji brought home to us that such Beings are indistinguishable from God, and it is God Himself Who works through Them. Their eyes are the eye of God, Their words the word of God. "The heavens may fall, but not the word of a Master." Maharaj Ji would often cite a parable from Maulana Rumi to bring out the nature and Mission of a Godman. Once a mouse was scampering along, and a bird flying by asked him where he was off to in such a hurry. "I am going to Mecca," replied the little creature. Hearing this and taking pity on him, the bird picked up the mouse and flew him to Mecca. The Masters ferry us across the ocean of this world to our ultimate goal. They are the bridge between the soul and the Lord. They look after us in the world without and the world within, and at the time of initiation take Their abode within the soul, protecting and guiding us at every step; for once we come to Their Feet They are with us evermore. Maharaj Ji defined evil as, "Every thought, word or deed that keeps a man away from God is a veritable sin," and good as, "That which brings us nearer to Him." The Science of the Soul is a matter of self-knowledge which precedes God-Knowledge. To practise this science we have to withdraw ourselves from the world outside and concentrate our attention at the eye focus; to do this is to learn to die while still living. Once we master this technique, we overcome the fear of death, and Maharaj Ji has left with us this secret of dying while still alive. The words of a Master have great power, and on reading or listening to them the veil of ignorance in a receptive heart is suddenly lifted. Maharaj Ji has written about a score of books and pamphlets on all aspects of spirituality which have been translated into various languages, and His teachings have had a far-reaching impact on seekers all over the world.* They bear upon the most fundamental problems of life, and embrace the widest conceivable scope. Like Guru Nanak, Maharaj Kirpal Singh crystallised the message of the Masters and presented it to the people at large in a simple and lucid way. Such was the force and charging of His words that those who came to Him gave up * Details of His works are given at the end of the book. 358 The Ocean of Grace Divine meat and drink and accepted a whole new way of life. Even as a child He had told His family when pressed to partake of meat, "I do not want to make a graveyard of my stomach." He could compress a whole world of meaning into a single phrase and through it change the lives of those who came in touch with Him. To take some examples: Love, Light and Life. His teachings centred on these virtues, and He explained that love was an innate attribute of the soul and it could not find fulfillment except in God Who is the Ocean of Love. Without love we were no better than beasts, and the more we developed this quality the more our minds would be illuminated. Be Good, Do Good, Be One. In these words He brought home the basis of an ethical life and the need for living in harmony with the world around us. So long as you are in the body, give, give, give. This saying of Kabir's was very dear to Maharaj Ji and summed up His philosophy of life. He would frequently say love knows service and sacrifice. If we could begin to live by this principle we could soon attain universal love and brotherhood in this world. We have tensions and conflicts only where we seek our own advantage at the expense of others. If we only seek to give, there is no room for tension, only for peace and love. People should rise above isms, and kings above kingdoms. During His last world tour Maharaj Ji was repeatedly confronted with the question, "How can we have peace in this world?" His answer was as penetrating as it was simple—there could be peace only if we as individuals rose above narrow loyalties, and those in authority rose above territorial loyalties. It was only when we looked to our own narrow good and not to the good of all that there was unrest and conflict. Modern science has revealed how even the smallest atom in our material world is constituted of Light and Sound. When you break an atom it resolves itself into these two elements. This Light and Sound are at the heart of all that is, and in the human incarnation it is possible for the soul to traverse back through the inner planes to its Source with the help of the Light The Mission of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj 359 and Sound Current. As it moves higher and higher, the Divine Light and Sound become subtler and more absorbing. The inner planes are progressively more enchanting than the world we know and the more we get absorbed in the beauties within, the more we are able to detach ourselves from the love of the material world. Progressing thus from plane to plane, with the power of Naam cleansing us further, we can arrive at our final destination, that is, Supreme Truth, Supreme Consciousness and Supreme Bliss. Maharaj Ji taught us that the Path of Spirituality demands that we earn our livelihood by the sweat of our brow. He who seeks to be spiritually free can hardly hope to attain his goal when he depends for his very sustenance on others. In our times Maharaj Ji imparted to us a method, a technique which anyone could follow without having to give up hearth and home. He shared with us the highest form of mysticism and taught us to complete cheerfully the give and take of our karmas. Living our normal lives and accepting whatever Providence brought our way, if we pursued our daily meditation in obedience to our Master, we could eventually attain to the highest goal. By initiating thousands and by helping them develop spiritually while continuing to live their normal lives, Maharaj Ji demonstrated to the rest of the world that the Spiritual Path did not demand that we escape from life or that we opt out from our social or family responsibilities. In fact, He stressed that by developing spiritually we could function more efficiently in other spheres as well, for the spirit is the basis of everything and if we neglect it we deprive ourselves of much of our real potential. What was needed was the guidance of a Satguru and our willingness to reshape our lives in obedience to Him. "If you love me, keep my commandments," He would say, and brought home to us how in every religious tradition there was the same insistence on surrendering oneself to the Will of the Divine Guide. Whether it was the Hindus, the Buddhists, the Jains, the Christians, or the Muslims, they all stressed the need for surrender, and the Sufis spoke of Fana-fil-Sheikh— merging into the Master. In spite of phenomenal scientific progress in modern times, we are further away from happiness than we ever were. This is 360 The Ocean of Grace Divine because material knowledge by itself is not enough. What is needed is the strength to put spirituality into practice. Maharaj Ji had this capacity in an absolute measure, and the secret of His power lay in the fact that He taught only what He Himself had experienced and practised. How does one express in words the anguish at the physical passing from among us of such a One who was All-Wisdom, AllGrace, and All-Love! He was an image of Truth, and to have His glimpse was at once to engage in worship and devotion. He was the Perfect One who came to free us from the wheel of birth and death, and through His boundless grace bestowed upon us Life Eternal. He was all mercy and compassion, and His was the hand of God, His the eye of the Almighty. He was Love personified and our hearts are now smarting with the pain of separation. The more we can sit in His remembrance and develop one-pointed concentration, the more this anguish will be sharpened and will help carry us back towards Him. The pain of our separation from Him is not a pain that will go away in a day or a week or a year—it is a pain that will be with us forever. As we sit in loving remembrance of Maharaj Ji, tears well up and flow down in spite of ourselves, tears which wash away the attachments of many an incarnation, and cleanse and purify the soul. These tears have brought us to the condition of which Guru Amar Das spoke when he said, "When I forget Him even for a moment, it is like a burden of fifty years." Thus even in passing physically from among us Maharaj Ji is continuing the revolution He began in each of us. The Mission He undertook was nothing less than transfiguring us from within, and the anguish of physical separation from Him is as much an instrument in furthering it as the joy of His physical darshan had been in the past. The conqueror leaves behind testimony of his greatness through the extent of his empire, the builder through the bridges and towers that he builds, the sculptor through the monuments executed in wood, bronze or marble. But a Master Saint works with the subtlest of all materials—the human soul—and the testament He leaves behind is the transformation He effects in those who come to His Feet. His Power is boundless, but we can know The Mission of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj 361 Him only to the extent He chooses to reveal Himself. This is His precious gift of Love. Let us pray to Maharaj Ji that He may purify us further and extend our inner receptivity so that we may realise His teachings to the full, and thus become torches that carry the Light of His Mission of Love to the darkest corner of the world. Flowers of Ashes at Rishikesh Susanne Horatschek Just a glimpse could be had by mortals— but blessed by vibrations of clear, pure light, not to be imagined is the devotee, seeing— When sacred waters carry along holy flowers of ashes, strewn into a tenderly golden dust followed by thousands of eyes withering up...blowing away... When light gathers over the waves and holy Masters quickly approach, those left times ago...who knows their names— who knows the number of all the bright figures... now Kirpal returns home, received... Oh mind, wise soul— the Master Kirpal—giver of the Naam takes His seat thousandfold in ready hearts which are the dwelling-place of the Lord... how should one describe it! There is lack in words and thoughts do not rise—how to put it?— which soul can imagine the grace witnessing the return of a perfect One; Kirpal returns home! Kirpal returns home to the fountainhead of His Being to the Masters who receive Him... and at once His seat is within me— this unworthy soul! A feel of eternity—in sacred intoxication— this soul receives the light rising from the holy ashes... and rises as well, to accompany Him she loved—Him she loves... Important Dates in the Life of Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj 1894 February 6th. Born at Sayyad Kasran, district Rawalpindi—now part of Pakistan. 1905 Read of Ramanuja and, like him, became determined to give out the Wealth of Spirituality if He received it. 1908 Joined the inner circle of Dev Samaj in Peshawar. Met Baba Kahan there. 1910 Matriculated from Edwardes Church Mission High S c h o o l , Peshawar. 1912 January 4th. Joined Government service in the Military A c c o u n t s Department. 1917 Began seeing His future Master, Baba Sawan Singh Ji, in His meditations, but thought it was Guru Nanak. 1919 Formed a social service corps during influenza epidemic. 1921 September 14th. Son Darshan Singh was born at Kountrila, district Rawalpindi. 1924 February. Met Baba Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj, and received Naam initiation. 1929 Had an inner vision of the death s c e n e of Hazur Baba Sawan Singh. 1929 Birth of son, Jaswant Singh. 1935 Began writing Gurmat Sidhant. 1939 Initiated over two hundred persons at Dera, B e a s , on the orders of, and in the presence of, His Master. 364 1944 1946 1947 The Ocean of Grace Divine September 5th. Death of His elder brother, S. Jodh Singh. July 22nd. Death of His eldest brother, S. Prem Singh. March. After thirty-six years of meritorious Government service, retired as Deputy Assistant Controller of Military A c c o u n t s . October 11th. Went to Amritsar on an urgent call from His Master. October 12th. A s s i g n e d the task of Naam initiation by His Master. Planned Ruhani Satsang—spirituality stripped of all outer encrustations and presented as a science. 1948 March. One day in the early morning hours, called by Hazur to sit in meditation so as to attend a meeting of the ascended Masters to decide about the future stay of Hazur on the earth plane. March 28th. Last Satsang held by Sant Kirpal Singh in the Dera during the lifetime of Hazur. April 1st. Last meeting with His Master at which Hazur transferred to Him His Spiritual Wealth through the eyes. April 2nd. Hazur passed from the earth plane. April 6th. Left B e a s , and came to Delhi. Then went to Rishikesh; stayed there for five months devoting His time to meditation. Gave His first initiation to Shri Gopal Das, at the behest of Hazur, in Rishikesh. December 2nd. Started His Mission, and began giving regular Initiations at Delhi. December 31st. He fell into the Dasna Canal, on the Delhi-Hapur Road, while looking for a suitable site for Sawan Ashram. In deep waters He saw in very bright red light Hazur and Baba Jaimal Singh, who rescued Him. In the Horoscope of His son Darshan, it had been written that his father would leave the earth plane in 1948. A new lease on life enabled Him to do the work entrusted to Him. 1950 Ruhani Satsang established. 1951 June. Sawan Ashram founded at Shakti Nagar, Delhi. 1955 May 3lst. Went on His First World Tour. 1955 November 5th. Returned from World Tour. 1957 First Conference of World Religions. Elected President by unanimous vote. 1958 First tour to Pakistan. 1960 Second Conference of World Religions in Calcutta. 1962 First non-Christian to be honored with the Order of St. John of Jerusalem, Knights of Malta. 1963 June 8th. Went on Second World Tour. 1964 January 30th. Returned from World Tour. 1965 Third Conference of World Religions. 1968 April. Ardh Kumbhi Mela (Hardwar). 1969 February 6th. Diamond Jubilee celebrated in Delhi. Important Dates 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 365 Fourth World Conference of Religions in Delhi. Manav Kendra established at Dehra Dun. April 3rd. His wife passed away. June 29th. Operated upon in the Mahajan Nursing Home, Delhi. March 14th. President V. V. Giri visited Manav Kendra. A u g u s t 26th. Left on the Third World Tour. January 3rd. Returned from His last World Tour. February 6th. Eightieth Birthday celebrated. February 7th. Abhinandan Patra presented by Raja Mohinder Partap at Vigyan Bhawan. April 2nd. National Integration Day celebrated at Manav Kendra, Dehra Dun. April 13th. All India Freedom Fighters Convention at Vigyan Bhawan. April 14th. His Excellency Akbar AM Khan paid an official visit to Manav Kendra. January. Inauguration of second Manav Kendra, at Kandari, Baroda. February 3rd to 6th. Sponsored and Presided over Unity of Man Conference in Delhi. April. Kumbha Mela, Hardwar. July 26th and 27th. Rashtraya Sant Samagam, Delhi. July 29th. He gave His last initiation sitting in which over 1,000 souls received the gift of Holy Naam. A u g u s t 1st. A d d r e s s e d the Indian Parliament. A u g u s t 15th, Indian Independance Day. Last Satsang Talk in Hindi, Sawan Ashram, Delhi, on the importance of human independence. A u g u s t 17th. Gave last English Darshan Talk at Sawan Ashram. A u g u s t 21st. Entered Mahasamadhi. Publications by Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj, Books Vol. I 1935 Gurmat Sidhant is a compendium of all aspects of spirituality. Vol. II 1936 Originally written in Punjabi, it was published under the name of Baba Sawan Singh Ji at B e a s . 1959 Jap Ji: The Message of Guru Nanak. This is an English translation of Guru Nanak's beautiful work with a comprehensive commentary by the Master. 1959 Prayer: Its Mature and Technique. To whom should we pray, and for what should we pray, and what is the true prayer? All these questions are answered by the Master. 1959 Spirituality: What it is. This is a lucid and comprehensive analysis of spirituality which is so simply explained that it reaches the hearts of all true seekers. 1960 Naam or Word. In this book the Master takes quotations from all world religions which refer to the Sound Principle or Audible Life Stream: this is the Manifestation of God vibrating through all creation in the form of Light and Sound, contact with which, as given by the Godman, leads the soul back to God. This is the basic teaching of Sant Mat and indeed of all world religions although it has often been overlaid or lost. "In the beginning was the W o r d . " Publications 367 1960 A Great Saint: Baba Jaimal Singh. The Master describes the life and teachings of the "Soldier Saint," the Great Master Who initiated Baba Sawan Singh Ji. 1961 The Crown of Life. In this all-embracing study the Master explains and compares all the forms of yoga which man has developed from time to time in order to help him reach his spiritual goal, and it emphasizes the special relevance of the Surat Shabd Y o g a — t h e Path of the Masters—to our times. 1965 The Wheel of Life. T h e law of karma—cause and effect—is inexorable and only a Satguru can take us off the wheel of recurring life and death. Both good and bad actions keep us in bondage from life to life. It is only by being linked with Naam by the Godman that we can e s c a p e . 1967 Godman deals with God-in-man or man-in-God. Who is a Master? What is the nature of this Being Whom we s e e at the outer level as our teacher, but Who on the inner planes is revealed as God Himself? He sustains and protects His initiates at every turn and is there to take them into His lap at the time of death. 1967 Spiritual Elixir. This is a collection of selected excerpts from the Master's letters to His disciples in which He answers questions on spirituality. Included also are some of His mess a g e s sent out from time to time. 1968 Mystery of Death. T h e Great Masters of spirituality tell us what they actually s e e and know of the higher planes to which they daily ascend. This unique work on the nature of death and life in the Beyond could only have come from a Supreme Soul Who had Himself conquered death during His lifetime. He teaches us how we may, with His Grace, ultimately merge in God. 1970 Morning Talks. In these recorded talks, the Master spoke informally to a group of disciples on many a s p e c t s of spirituality and daily living, explaining that "ethical life is a steppingstone to spirituality." 1975 The Night is a Jungle is a collection of fourteen discourses given by the Master which are a continuous source of inspiration to His disciples and an invaluable introduction to the Path for new seekers. Vol. I 1975 Heart-to-Heart Talks is a compilation of a series of question Vol. II 1976 and answer s e s s i o n s between the Master and His Western disciples held in Delhi and Rajpur. In these informal and intimate talks which date from 1970, many aspects of the Path are covered, difficulties solved and guidance given. The Ocean of Grace Divine Pamphlets 1949 A Brief Life Sketch of Baba Sawan Singh Ji Maharaj describes the main events in the life of the Master's own Guru, and illuminates His teachings. 1954 Man Know Thyself is a summary of the basic teachings of the Masters of Sant Mat. It describes how, by following the Path, the seeker c o m e s to know his true Self and to know God. It has been translated into many languages. 1954 Simran: The Sweet Remembrance of God. Simran is the technique by which the five charged Names given at initiation, may be repeated by the tongue of thought, thereby stilling the mind and holding the attention at the seat of the soul. 1962 Seven Paths to Perfection. This is a pamphlet which emphasizes the virtues to be practiced for spiritual advancement. They are: non-violence, truthfulness, chastity, humility, selfless service, a vegetarian diet and abstinence from alcohol and drugs. 1963 God Power, Christ Power, Master Power explains how the Power of God manifests through different human poles at different times and under different names, but in e s s e n c e is always the same. 1969 Manav Kendra. This is about the Master's great project for Man-making, Man Service and Land Service. It has been put into practice at Dehra Dun where the Master established a free school, a free hospital, an old people's home and a farm. There are two other Manav Kendras, one at Baroda and another in the State of Maine in U.S.A. 1970 Ruhani Satsang: Science of Spirituality. Spirtuality is a s c i e n c e which is exact in theory and practice. This pamphlet describes the purpose of Ruhani S a t s a n g . 1972 How to Develop Receptivity. This is a collection of three circular letters the Master wrote to His foreign disciples. He explains how the Grace of the Master can be had not only at His Feet but also from thousands of miles away, if receptivity is developed and the commandments of the Master adhered to. T h e Master emphasizes the importance of keeping the spiritual diaries for self-introspection so that faults may be recognized and weeded out. Magazines 1956 1968 Commenced publication of Hindi and Urdu Sat S a n d e s h . Commenced monthly publication of English Sat Sandesh. S a n t Kirpal S i n g h : T h e Ocean of Grace Divine. It is not possible to describe the greatness of a Being Who outsoared all human limitations into the highest spiritual realms. Sant Kirpal Singh Ji Maharaj lived among us from 1894 to 1974. He compressed into His brief Ministry of twenty-six years, work which would have taken an ordinary man a century to accomplish. Among His many achievements were the founding of Ruhani Satsang and Manav Kendra, His three world tours, the many international honors which were given to Him, the Conferences of World Religions over which He Presided, and the great Unity of Man Conference which He inspired in the last year of His earth life. His supreme Mission, however, was the linking of the soul with the Oversoul by means of the primal Light and Sound Principles vibrating within each one of us. No mere theorist, He gave a practical demonstration of the God-into-ExpressionPower to those who had the good fortune to come to His Feet. For this scientific age, He presented spirituality in lucid terms as a s c i e n c e shorn of all rites and rituals, a science to be proved within the human body itself. We are fortunate that we can read and re-read the wonderful legacy of His many books which carry His Divine Message and His spiritual charging, and which will be read as holy scriptures by future generations. This book is a collection of tributes to Him from s o m e of His devotees all over the world. Each writer has tried to express some a s p e c t of His Divine love, compassion and protection. T h e s e accounts of spiritual awakening, of Grace Divine, will undoubtedly give hope and inspiration to all seekers after Truth.